INFORMATION TO USERS
This manuscript has been reproduced from the microfilm master. UMI films the text directly from the original or copy submitted. Thus, som e thesis and dissertation copies are in typewriter face, while others may be from any type of computer printer.
The quality of th is reproduction is dependent upon the quality of the copy subm itted. Broken or indistinct print, colored or poor quality illustrations and photographs, print bleedthrough, substandard margins, and improper alignment can adversely affect reproduction.
In the unlikely event that the author did not send UMI a complete manuscript and there are missing pages, these will be noted. Also, if unauthorized copyright material had to be removed, a note will indicate the deletion.
Oversize materials (e.g., maps, drawings, charts) are reproduced by sectioning the original, beginning at the upper left-hand comer and continuing from left to right in equal sections with small overlaps.
Photographs included in the original manuscript have been reproduced xerographicaily in this copy. Higher quality 6" x 9” black and white photographic prints are available for any photographs or illustrations appearing in this copy for an additional charge. Contact UMI directly to order.
ProQuest Information and Learning 300 North Zeeb Road, Ann Arbor, Ml 48106-1346 USA
800-521-0600
UMI*
CRITIQUING THE CLASSICS :A STUDY OF GENDER ISSUES IN AMERICAN LITERATURE WITH HIGH
SCHOOL STUDENTS
DISSERTATION
Presented in Partial Fulfillment of the Requirements for the Degree Doctor of Philosophy in the
Graduate School of The Ohio State University
By
Patricia Bums Zumhagen, B.A., M.A.
* * * * *
The Ohio State University July 30,2001
Dissertation Committee:
Anna Soter, Chair
James P. Phelan
Maia Mertz
Brian Edmiston
.pproved by
Advisor
College of Education
UMI Number: 3022611
UMIUMI Microform 3022611
Copyright 2001 by Bell & Howell Information and Learning Company. All rights reserved. This microform edition is protected against
unauthorized copying under Title 17, United States Code.
Bell & Howell Information and Learning Company 300 North Zeeb Road
P.O. Box 1346 Ann Arbor, Ml 48106-1346
ABSTRACT
The purpose of this study is to investigate the responses of high school literature
students to sexist gender representations and patriarchal ideology in selected early 20th
• century American literature. Addressing the need for the design and implementation of
a gender-conscious pedagogy for the study of literature commonly taught in the high
school, this research also explores the effects of specific teaching approaches on the
students’ literary responses.
The study developed from a concern that without a critical pedagogy for the
study of this older literature, the sexism and androcentrism evident in such classic texts
may result in students either dismissing the works as irrelevant for their time, or
succumbing, without resistance, to coercive textual powers that threaten to position
them in patriarchal ways, and further perpetuate gender inequality.
The study, which combines feminist and interpretivist approaches with a self
reflexive component, investigates the responses of students enrolled in a high school
American literature course. It specifically addresses the responses of a focus group of
representatives from the larger group. During the course, students studied seven classic
American literary works through the lenses of various teaching approaches.
Student responses to selected literary works and specific teaching approaches
and strategies were examined in order to determine (1) whether students reported or
exhibited an increased awareness of sexist representations or androcentric perspective in
the literature; 2) whether they reported or demonstrated that particular teaching
approaches and strategies were effective at heightening critical consciousness o f literary
ii
gender issues; (3) and whether they reported or demonstrated a heightened
consciousness to gender issues in their lives as result o f the study.
Analyses of written responses, documents, audio- and video-recorded
transcriptions of discussions, improvisational drama activities and focus group
interviews, helped to identify students’ developing responses to the literary
representations and governing ideologies in the literature throughout the course.
Analyses of the teacher's journals and ‘dramatic scenes’ written as a method of inquiry
were also used to investigate the developing responses of the students.
Analyses revealed that the course was instrumental in increasing students’
sensitivity to stereotypes and double standards in literature. It also revealed that while a
combination of teaching approaches proved successful for serving the students’ diverse
needs and interests, that discussion and social imagination activities (educational drama,
creative writing, and art) were determined to have been the most successful techniques
for heightening students’ awareness of gender issues in the literature.
The study also indicated that students did make some progress in the
identification of textual positioning of readers and governing androcentric ideology in
the literature. However, their difficulties with critical reading skills resulted in limited
success in that area. The study also revealed that students did report that the course had
increased their consciousness to issues and inequalities in their lives, and the research
data corroborated their reported increased awareness. The students’ ambivalence about
the roles of males and females in contemporary society, however, continued to result in
confusion about and, resistance to the adoption of what they saw as a feminist
perspective.
Ill
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
I must begin by thanking Anna Soter for her continued support, unwavering
encouragement and kindness throughout this project. Her dedication to my project was
beyond the call of duty, especially considering her responsibility to a host o f others. I
am eternally grateful for all o f the help and for the encouragement to do my best work.
I would like also to thank Maia Mertz, Jim Phelan and Brian Edmiston for reading this
tome, and for their expertise, encouragement and wisdom during my candidacy
examination, and dissertation writing and defense.
My sincere appreciation, thanks and love also goes out to the focus group
participants— Dale, Ellen, Candy, Sarah, Brenda, Howard, Hillary, Charles, Maynard
and Marie—whose dedication and generosity of time and spirit was heart warming.
Without them, there would have been no study. Their patience with me, and their
willingness to dedicate hours o f “exploring and improvising,” not to mention filling out
just “one more questionnaire” , was enormously appreciated. Thanks also to Richard
and Alicia for the help they gave.
In addition, I would like to extend my appreciation to the larger group of
students in the two American Literature classes and to thank them for their help with
this project and for the insights we shared while exploring gender issues in the texts.
I would also like to thank ‘Margaret Johnson,’ to whom I owe an enormous debt of
gratitude for the time spent as peer de-briefer, co-teacher, advisor, coworker and jolly
friend and conversation partner. I sincerely appreciate her time and effort.
I also want to thank Pam Lombardi, my beloved friend, and Mike Kindred, my
beloved friend’s husband (and my friend too), for tending to me, feeding me,
entertaining me, and pulling me back into the land of the living whenever I needed it
throughout what seemed like an endless process of dissertation writing. Thanks for
understanding.
I would like to extend a special thanks to Elisabeth Robinson for the emotional
support.
Finally, I would like to give special recognition and thanks to Karen and Brian
Zumhagen who never accused me of being too old to be engaging in such a project as
this. I thank them for being proud of me and for appreciating lifelong learning.
VI
VITA
1965.............................Bachelor of Arts in English, Rivier College, Nashua, NH
1965-1966...................English Teacher, Moody Junior High School, Lowell,
Massachusetts
1980-1982..................Public Relations Director, League of Catholic Women of Detroit,Michigan
1982-1984..................Public Relations Account Manager, General Electric Plastics,Pittsfield, Massachusetts
1984-1985..................Public Relations Account Manager, Chan Cochran PublicRelations, Columbus, Ohio
1986-1988..................English Teacher, Linworth Alternative Program, Worthington,Ohio
1992............................ M aster of Arts in Education, OISE, University of Toronto,Toronto, Canada
1998-1999.................. Graduate Teaching Associate, Department of English Education,Ohio State University, Columbus, Ohio
1991-2001.................. English Teacher, Internship Coordinator, Linworth AlternativeProgram, Worthington, Ohio
V ll
TABLE OF CONTENTS
ABSTRACT...............................................................................................................................ii
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS....................................................................................................... v
VITA.........................................................................................................................................vii
LIST OF TABLES.................................................................................................................xiii
LIST OF FIGURES............................................................................................................... xiv
CHAPTER........................................................................................................................ Page
1. STATEMENT OF THE PROBLEM...................................................................................1Introduction....................................................................................................................IBackground................................................................................................................... 3The Need for Research.................................................................................................4The Rationale................................................................................................................ 6
Resistance to Feminism.................................................................................. 7Sexism in the Society.......................................................................................8Sexism in Popular Media...............................................................................10Sexism in Classic American Literature........................................................13
The Study.....................................................................................................................16Significance of the Study........................................................................................... 19Conclusion.................................................................................................................. 20
2. RELATED THEORIES AND RESEARCH.................................................................... 22Introduction................................................................................................................. 22Part I: Review of Related Theoretical Foundations ............................................ 22
Reader Response Theories............................................................................22Feminist Literary Theories............................................................................34Critical Pedagogy.......................................................................................... 48Ethical Theories.............................................................................................53
Part II: Review of Related Research Studies...........................................................60Introduction.................................................................................................... 60Gender ^ d Adolescent Culture................................................................... 60Gender and Schooling................................................................................... 62Gender and Reading...................................................................................... 64Cultural Criticism and Classroom Studies..................................................70Feminist Dialogic Studies.............................................................................72Poststructuralist/ Psychoanalytic Classroom Studies................................ 76
Conclusion.................................................................................................................. 81
3. METHODOLOGY..............................................................................................................83
ix
Introduction.................................................................................................................83Research Design Overview....................................................................................... 84
My Role as A Reflective Feminist Interpretivist Participant...................85The Research Questions................................................................................88S ite .................................................................. 89Participant Selection..................................................................................... 91Selection of the Literature............................................................................ 95Selection of Teaching Approaches and Strategies.................................... 96Rationale for Selected Approaches/Strategies...........................................96
Data Sources...............................................................................................................97The Larger Group.......................................................................................... 98The Focus Group..........................................................................................103Self Reflective Exploration.........................................................................107Method of Analysis......................................................................................108
Interpretation of the D ata.........................................................................................I l lPatterns and Them es.................................................................................. 112
The Interpretation and Presentation of the D ata..................................................114Realist T ale................................................................................................. 115Confessional Tale....................................................................................... 116Impressionist T ale........................................................................................116
Validity of Data....................................................................................................... 117Credibility and Confirmability..................................................................118
Transferability...........................................................................................................122Conclusion................................................................................................................ 124
Chapter 4 PREFACE............................................................................................................126The Format................................................................................................................ 126Initial Surveys...........................................................................................................129
4. MARRIAGE AND THE GENERATIONS ...................................................... 133Introduction............................................................................................................... 133WASHINGTON SQUARE......................................................................................134
Written Responses........................................................................................140Discussion.....................................................................................................144Critical Readings..........................................................................................146Critical Essay............................................................................................... 148Continued Discussion (Interview).............................................................150Social Imagination Activities..................................................................... 152Final Project................................................................................................. 154
Reflections................................................................................................................ 154Written Response.........................................................................................158Discussion.....................................................................................................159Critical Reading/Writing..................... 161Extended discussion.................................................................................... 170Social Imagination Activities....................................................................174Social Imagination Activities/Final Projects............................................ 175
Reflections on PM . Class........................................................................................178Conclusion................................................................................................................ 179Reflections................................................................................................................ 185“THE GENTLE LENA” ....................,.................................................................... 187
Written Response.........................................................................................190Discussion.....................................................................................................191
Criticism...................................................................................................... 194W riting........................................................................................................ 195Social Imagination Activity/final project.................................................197
Reflections...............................................................................................................199Written Responses..................................................................................... 206Discussion.................................................................................................. 206Social Imagination/Project....................................................................... 215
Reflections..............................................................................................................216WRITING/IMPROVISATIONAL WORKSHOP..............................................218Conclusion..............................................................................................................226
5. IMAGES OF ROMANTIC RELATIONSHIPS........................................................ 227Introduction.............................................................................................................227THE GREAT GATSB Y.........................................................................................228
Written Responses......................................................................................233Discussion.................................................................................................. 234Literary Criticism.......................................................................................239W riting........................................................................................................244Social Imagination Activities................................................................... 246Final Project............................................................................................... 250
Reflections.............................................................................................................. 252Written Responses......................................................................................257Introductory Character Study Activity.................................................... 259Discussion...................................................................................................259Literary Criticism.......................................................................................267Social Imagination Activities....................................................................270W riting........................................................................................................273Final Projects.............................................................................................. 273
Reflections.............................................................................................................. 274A FAREWELL TO ARMS.................................................................................., 277
Written Responses...................................................................................... 281Discussion...................................................................................................282Literary Criticism.......................................................................................283W riting........................................................................................................ 291Social Imagination Final Project.............................................................. 292
Reflections.............................................................................................................. 295Written Responses......................................................................................300Discussion................................................................................................... 301Discussion/Literary Criticism............................................. 303W riting........................................................................................ 307
Reflections............................................................................. 309THEIR EYES WERE WATCHING G O D ..........................................................311
Social Imagination Activities................................................................... 326Discussion...................................................................................................327Literary Criticism.......................................................................................330Final Project/Social Imagination..............................................................332Other Projects.............................................................................................336
Reflections...............................................................................................................338Chapter Conclusion.................................................................................................340
6. THE VOICES OF MEN AND W OMEN....................................................... 341
xi
Introduction..............................................................................................................341Explanation of the Format...................................................................................... 342“THE UNTOLD LIE”.............................................................................................345REVISIONISM ESr ONE A C T ............................................................................. 347Play Analysis............................................................................................................364POST SCRIPT........................................................................................................ 368
Comprehensive Final Responses............................................................. 368Individual Focus Group Responses to Survey.........................................377
7. REFLECTIONS, FINDINGS, RELEVANCE OF THE STUDY............................388Introduction..............................................................................................................388Overview of the Study............................................................................................390Findings.................................................................................................................... 391
Findings Regarding Increased Awareness...............................................391Findings Regarding Effects of Teaching Approaches/Strategies 392Findings Regarding Impact on Students’ Lives.......................................392Findings Determined From Reflections on My Experience.................. 393
Implications of the Study....................................................................................... 399Limitations of the Study......................................................................................... 401Need for Further Research.....................................................................................402Conclusion...............................................................................................................404
APPENDIX A Initial Background and Literary Survey.................................................405
APPENDIX B Final Survey...............................................................................................406
APPENDIX C Questions for Written Responses........................................................... 407
APPENDIX D Initial Focus Group Questionnaire.........................................................408
APPENDIX E Final Focus Group Questionnaire....................................... 410
APPENDIX F Focus Group Interview Questions.......................................................... 415
APPENDIX G Final Improvisational Workshop Questions..........................................418
APPENDIX H Early Social Imagination Activities...................................................... 419
APPENDIX I Advanced Social Imagination Activities................................................420
APPENDIX J Final Project Ideas.....................................................................................421
REFERENCES.....................................................................................................................423
XII
LIST OF TABLES
Table 4.1 Responses to Initial Survey (Part O ne)......................................................................................129
Table 6.1: Teaching Approaches................................................................................................................. 368
Table 6.2: Realization of Previous N aivete................................................................................................372
Table 6 3 : Im pact on R ead ing ..................................................................................................................... 373
Table 6.4: Im pact on L ife .............................................................................................................................. 374
Figure 6 3 . Resistance.....................................................................................................................................375
X lll
LIST OF FIGURES
Figure 4.1: Amanda’s Project ...................................................................................................................... 154
Figure 4.2: Catherine’s Dress........................................................................................................................ 175
Figure 4 3 : M arie’s Ode to G ertrude S te in ................................................................................................ 216
Figure 5.1: Daisy as T ro p h y ............................................ L........................................................................... 234
Figure 5 3 : Ellen’s Road M ap........................................................................................................................292
Figure 5 3 : Janie’s D iary................................................................................................................................ 332
Figure 5.4: Comic Book..................................................................................................................................336
Figure 5 3 : Imagining the Last Page............................................................................................................337
XIV
CHAPTER 1
STATEMENT OF THE PROBLEM
It is never enough to ‘correct’ our canon by substituting Gather for Twain. We must begin by challenging the very way we think about texts and the questions we brins to them.
Obbink, 1992. p. 40
Introduction
For the last thirty years, feminist educators have been engaged in an effort to
raise awareness about the patriarchal structures organizing society and its educational
institutions. Many scholars have attempted to challenge the ways in which schools have
shortchanged girls (AAUW, 1992; Applebee, 1993: Belenky, Brown and Gilligan,
1992; 1986; Pipher, 1990; Sadker and Sadker, 1994). Others have worked tirelessly to
cite examples of pedagogies through which “women have been taught to think as men,
to identify with a male point of view, and to accept as normal and legitimate, a male
system of values, one of whose central principles is misogyny’’ (Fetterley, 1978, p. 73).
Within the field of literature, feminist educators in the sixties and seventies
focused on addressing sexual stereotypes of women in fiction (Ellmann, 1968; Millett,
1969; Showalter, 1977), and on developing the fields o f feminist history and
gynocriticism (Fetterley, 1978; Gilbert and Gubar, 1979; Showalter, 1977). During
seventies, eighties and nineties, many scholars succeeded at revising the literary canon
to include women writers previously undiscovered or forgotten (Beach, 1993; Eagleton,
1
1986, 1996; Kolodny, 1985 Showalter, 1977;). Other scholars identified the impact of
gender on reading and on literary response (Bleich, 1986; Bogdan, 1990, 1992; Flynn,
1986; Halpem, 1985; Rich 1979; Schweickart, 1986). Additionally, in the eighties and
nineties, poststructuralist feminists identified the ways in which patriarchal texts
promote ways of seeing the world (Belsey, 1980; Davies, 1992; Martino, 1995; Taylor,
1993; Tompkins, 1994; Walkerdine, 1984). Research continues in the twenty-first
century as educators carry on the struggle to develop critical gender-conscious
approaches to the reading of texts (Bogdan, 1997; Harper, 2000; Pace and Townsend,
1999).
The dedication of these educators and intellectuals has been realized in revised
anthologies, canons, college curricular designs, and even in the development of
occasional high school elective courses in which gender issues and media
representations are considered. Despite all of the changes brought about by the
w om en’s movement and curricular additions instituted by women’s studies
departments, the average high school American literature classroom has experienced
little change over the years (Applebee, 1993). Though some female-authored literature
has been added to the high school curriculum, the majority of the works assigned are
still traditional, male authored classics (Applebee, 1993; Whaley, 1999), and there is
still little evidence of revisionist reading practices being employed for the reading of
these older male-authored texts (Applebee, 1993). Additionally, because traditional
new critical approaches are still the preferred analytical techniques used in classrooms
(AAUW, 1992, 1999; Applebee, 1993; Marshall, Smagorinsky & Smith, 1995), gender
issues are sacrificed to, and buried within the search for ‘universal’ human issues in the
literature.
Background
In my experiences teaching American literary classics in the high school during
the past ten years, I have become conscious of a complacency exhibited by my students
in response to the patriarchal gender order which I find evident in that literature.
Stereotypical portrayals of dependent women and independent men, or frequent
representations of nagging wives and henpecked, errant or abusive husbands are seldom
critiqued by my students. Also, double standards for male and female characters are
often accepted by them as ‘normal’ and most often go unchallenged. Also uncritiqued
are the ideological perspectives that often frame the stories within a paradigm based on
male dominance, female subjugation, and traditional notions of masculinity, femininity,
relationship and marriage. Since students seldom challenge androcentric textual
ideologies, they may be easily coerced to accept positions that are dependent on sexist
perspectives (Davies, 1992; Martino, 1995; Taylor, 1993; and Walkerdine, 1984).
Class discussions have revealed to me that this failure to resist a patriarchal
gender order is not limited to literary responses in the classroom. My students judge not
only characters but also each other by standards developed from within a patriarchal
system of gender hierarchies and binary oppositions. They limit themselves and other
males and females to sex-role stereotypes based on rigidly defined ‘masculine’ and
‘feminine’ behavior patterns. For example, students in my classes often label each other
and the literary characters by assigning categories that promote or restrict sexual
freedoms, domestic responsibilities, and/or career opportunities on the basis of gender.
Despite the social changes that have taken place since the sexual revolution, many of
my students accept the traditional notion that men are independent and women are
dependent, and men are rational and women are emotional. They also hold to the notion
that men have careers and children and women have careers or children; and men who
have had multiple sexual partners are “players,” or “studs” while women engaged in
3
similar behavior are “sluts.” Students’ responses have revealed to me the ways in which
traditional gender dichotomies continue to be reinscribed in these contemporary readers.
Consequently, my students’ tolerance for, or familiarity with, stereotypes and double
standards in classic literature and in contemporar)' society has convinced me of a need
for the development of a critical approach to reading that would stimulate awareness of
gender issues in the literature. Such an approach would be helpful in liberating students
from “controlling codes” (Foucault, 1977; Lather, 1991) which may organize their
reading and their lives.
As a feminist committed to the equality of the sexes and the emancipation of
men and women who have been marginalized by such controlling codes, I am interested
in developing strategies for the enactment of “democratic and emancipatory schooling”
(Gore, 1993, p. 15). Such strategies would hopefully stimulate a “problematizing”
(Freire, 1990/1973; Giroux, 1981, 1988; and Shor, 1980) of the sexist gender
representations and androcentric textual ideologies in classic literature and the
underlying social constructs which have been misconstrued as biological imperatives in
defining gender differences. Such strategies would also help students to perceive the
contradictions they experience as contemporary readers confronting the sexist
ideologies framing some of this older literature.
The Need for Research
Some research has been conducted in an effort to promote gender-conscious
reading of classic texts in the co-educational college classroom (Bogdan, 1997; Pace
and Townsend, 1999; Schweickart, 1986). Additionally, some research has been
conducted in exclusively male (Martino, 1995) or exclusively female (Harper, 2000;
Ricker-W ilson, 1999) high school classrooms to stimulate a deconstruction of
patriarchal storylines and/or a critical gender-conscious reading of fiction. However,
research has not been conducted in the co-educational high school classroom to study
students’ responses to gender representation and ideology, or to develop critical
teaching approaches that promote awareness o f the sexist representations and
perspectives in classic literature. Consequently, educators have not succeeded in
implementing a critical gender-conscious pedagogy for the high school literature
classroom. Many continue to express a need for such pedagogy (Harper, 2000;
Martino. 1995).
In order to identify effective teaching strategies and approaches suitable for the
high school literature student, I decided to engage in a three-pronged research project to
provide information necessary for the development of a critical feminist pedagogy. In
this project, 1 intended to (1) identify contemporary high school students’ unmediated
responses (Bogdan, 1992, 1997) to selected classic literature; (2) assess the impact of
particular critical teaching approaches selected to provoke a critique o f the sexist
representation and ideology in the literature; and (3) identify the struggles and
challenges I encountered as a teacher engaged in a research project designed to heighten
high school students’ consciousness of gender inequality in literature and in life.
Firstly, there is a need to identify students’ preliminary responses to gender
representations in order to assess students’ developing levels of awareness of sexism
and androcentrism in the literature. Without a record of students’ initial responses,
evaluating the effectiveness of selected critical approaches would be impossible.
Secondly, there is a need to research the students’ (and their teacher’s) evaluation of the
effectiveness of selected critical teaching approaches and strategies. Thirdly, there is a
need to identify the successes, challenges and discoveries experienced by the teacher
attempting to design a critical pedagogy for the high school classroom for the sake of
other educators attempting to implement a gender-conscious pedagogy.
The Rationale
Fundamentally, my rationale emerged from my perspective on gender equality:
( 1 ) Men and women should share an equal status and equal opportunity; neither group should be subordinate to the other
(2) A governing patriarchal ideology has resulted in the adoption of limiting gender roles and behaviors, still evident in our society and continually reproduced through social institutions and texts.
(3) The dismantling of this system requires continued critical social practice.
This perspective has fueled my commitment to engage in transformative gender
education for social justice. Firstly, I wanted to build awareness in my students of the
likely prevalence of sexist gender constructions, representations and governing
ideologies in the literature to be read. Secondly, I hoped to reveal to students the ways
in which those constructions may continue to generate sexism in literature as well as in
their own lives. Thirdly, I wanted promote an awareness of gender inequity/equity in
students’ own lives. Fourthly, I wanted to identify pedagogical approaches that would
best move students toward gender-conscious reading and living. Fifthly, I wanted to
find ways to ensure that classic literature, despite sexist gender representations and
androcentric perspectives, can remain an integral part o f American literature study.
Lastly, I hoped to share my experiences and struggles in the quest for gender-sensitive
teaching of literature with other educators
Specifically, I base my belief in a need for research leading to the development
of a critical approach to literature on the still present situation which threatens the equal
status of men and women even at the turn of the twenty-first century. Manifestations of
this imbalance are evident in the following:
• Resistance to feminism among teenagers• Evidence of sexism in the contemporary society.• Reinforcement of sexism in the contemporary media• Reinforcement of sexism through stereotypical representation of gender and
relationship in classic literature
Each of these will now be briefly discussed in terms of how they have influenced
my own directions in this study.
Resistance to Feminism
Resistance to feminism by high school students has been reported in studies by
Britzman (1994), Brown and Gilligan (1992), Faludi (1991), Harper (2000), Lather
(1991), Lewis (1990, 1992), Pitt (1994); Taylor (1993); and Wolf (1991). Students
today have not lived with the kind of gender discrimination or sexist behavior that their
parents and grandparents may have witnessed or experienced. Therefore, women’s
recent advancements have blinded many of today’s adolescents to the continuing and
insidious effects of a more subtle kind of sexism than that experienced by older
generations (Brown and Gilligan, 1992; Faludi, 1992 and Wolf, 1991).
Because women have acquired rights and eligibility for jobs and schooling,
many adolescents believe that sexist practices are no longer prevalent in today’s society
(Brown and Gilligan, 1992; Faludi, 1991; Harper, 2000; Taylor, 1993;). Researchers
(i.e.. Brown and Gilligan, 1992; Faludi, 1991; Harper, 2000; Taylor, 1993 and Wolf,
1991) theorize that although most young women are grateful for their raised status, and
a few are conscious of the need for further advancement, most are satisfied.
Consequently, they resist identifying themselves with the feminists who brought about
the changes and who would fight for more.
In addition, many students are not aware of the ways in which patriarchal textual
ideology continues to play itself out in literary storylines, themes, relationships or
gender representations and characterizations. They have had no education to lead them
to that practice (Applebee, 1993; Grumet, 2000; Hines, 1995; and Obbink, 1992). In
addition, my experience and others’ research findings suggest that the students are not
alert to the ways in which their literary responses are socially constructed along gender
lines (Consiglio, 1999; Harper, 2000; Schweickart and Flynn, 1986). Neither are they
7
aware of the way in which prior cultural experiences (Rosenblatt, 1978) and textual
ideologies (Walkerdine, 1984) determine their positions as readers and construct the
meaning they make of the texts (Davies, 1992; Martino, 1995).
Sexism in the Society
Faludi (1991) has attributed this resistance to feminism to what she has referred
to as the anti-feminist backlash of the eighties, which, she argues, succeeded at pushing
women back into the subjugated roles they had begun to abandon in the sixties and
seventies (see chapter Two, Section I for extended discussion of this backlash). To
substantiate her point, she reports that eighty percent of working women are still stuck
in traditional ‘female’ jobs, such as secretaries, support workers and salesclerks. In
addition, she reports that in a 1990 poll of executives at Fortune 100 companies, more
than 80 percent acknowledged that discrimination impedes female employees’ progress
(p. 3). Recent statistics compiled by the U. S. government on women and wages,
poverty and employment confirm her findings and the continued existence of gender
inequality in U.S. society today. For example, according to the most recent government
report on pay equity, white women make only S.75 to every dollar earned by white men,
with the discrepancy between men and women of color being considerably wider
(Internet Report on the National Committee on Pay Equity, 1998). In addition,
according to the committee report, even when comparing the same jobs, there is
inequity. For example, for public relations professionals, men with less than five years
experience or more than twenty years experience make twice as much money as women
in comparable jobs (p. 3). The report also emphasizes the fact that the glass ceiling not
only restricts women from leadership opportunities in business but also in politics and
government. Women are not well represented in the United States governing process;
statistics on women involved in government and politics demonstrate that women
comprise only 9% of U.S. Senate, 11% of congress, and 4% of governors (Internet
8
Report: National Committee on Pay Equity, 1998). And questions as to why are left
unanswered at the turn of the 21" century.
Another form of sexism is “the beauty myth,” which, according to Wolf (1991),
has replaced patriarchal law as a guarantor of male dominance since women have made
advancements in political and economic arenas. The mantra that “women must want to
embody beauty and men must want to possess women who embody it” (p. 174)
premises women's identity, femininity and value (but not men’s identity, masculinity or
value) on beauty. Consequently, this reduces women to mere decorations, and
undermines and erodes the ground they gained through a long, hard, honorable struggle
for equality. The result is a $ 33-billion-a year diet industry, $20 billion cosmetics
industry, $300-million cosmetic surgery industry, and $7-billion pornography industry
(p. 179) to assist women in being “acceptable,” and “desirable” to men, albeit
ornamental. According to Wolf (1991), the caricature of the Ugly Feminist, coined to
ridicule the feminists of the nineteenth century, has also been resurrected to sabotage
the continued progress of the women’s movement. It accompanies “the beauty myth” in
checkmating women's power. While this caricature resembles less the feminists
themselves than the distorted image fostered by the interests of those who might oppose
women’s progress, it serves to effect resistance in adolescents. They do not want to
identify themselves with a “big masculine woman, wearing boots, smoking a cigar,
swearing like a trooper” (Lucy Stone, in Wolf, 1991, p. 180).
In addition, statistics compiled by the U.S. government on spousal abuse and
rape also confirm the existence of sexism and a power imbalance in our society. U.S.
Spousal Murder and Sexual Assault Statistics confirm that a woman dies as a result of
spousal abuse every six hours. Battery is the leading cause of injury to women (Internet
Report: National Coalition Against Domestic Violence, 1993) in the U.S., with 3-4
million women battered in relationship violence every year in U.S. The most recent
U.S. rape and sexual assault statistics were compiled in 1994, when it was found that in
the U.S., there are 36 rapes or attempted rapes per hour.
These statistics alert me to the need for further work in the effort to promote
gender equality and equal respect for both women and men. I believe that if we are to
continue to work to create a just society, where women are treated equally and with
respect, both men and women (and boys and girls) must address issues of sexism, the
double standard, and sexual violence in the society. In my opinion, they should also be
aware of the images in our media and the representations and ideological perspectives in
our literature which reflect this gender inequality and play a part in producing and
reproducing these alarming statistics.
Sexism in Popular Media
Little ditty bout Jack and DianeTwo American kids growing up in the heartlandlackey’s gonna be a football starDiane’s debutante backseat of Jackie’s car.
Mellencamp, 1982
Music, movies and magazines perpetuate sexist stereotypes, androcentric
perspectives, double standards, emphasis on women’s beauty, and relegation of women
to a secondary status in our culture. Because of this, these media threaten to reproduce
patriarchal versions of femininity and masculinity (Davies, 1992, 1993; Martino, 1995:
Taylor, 1993 and Walkerdine, 1984) in high school readers/viewers/listeners, providing
the reference point for gender identification.
Poststructuralist psychoanalytic theorists argue that patriarchal discourses in
such cultural productions constitute gender subjectivities at unconscious level (Davies,
1992, 1993; Taylor, 1993; Walkerdine, 1984). Examples of the power of ‘textual
ideology’ (Walkerdine, 1984) and the strength the emotional connection with the
romantic culture are evidenced by the popularity of films which reinforce dominant
versions o f femininity, masculinity, male dominated relationships, and male rescue
10
themes. Film producer, Elisabeth Robinson, admitted in a recent interview (2000), that
Hollywood studios still shy away from screenplays for romantic comedies which
attempt to upset traditional gender roles, or reverse the ‘boy rescues girl’ motif. “It
rarely works otherwise,’’ says Robinson.
Three recent comedies extremely popular with teens, such as You’ve Got Mail
(1998); Nodding Hill (1999); and Step Mom (1998) are examples of films that subtly
reinforce sexist stereotypes and male dominance. They accomplish this by featuring
heroines who sacrifice talents and careers to take up traditional feminine roles as
romantic partners, wives and mothers, or to make the romantic relationships work more
smoothly. In Step Mom (1998) a dying ex-wife/mother and her ex-husband’s
successfully employed fiancee attempt to negotiate care-taking and transportation for
the children. The father, whose responsibility for these logistical issues was
acknowledged neither by the character nor by the screenwriter, waits for a resolution
from the two women, whose job it is to make arrangements for the children. The
fiancee eventually solves the problem by quitting her job as a successful photographer
to be available full time for the kids. The father continues on with his unaltered
business schedule; they marry, and live happily ever after, with the new wife busying
herself by happily snapping pictures of the children. Viewers of this film leam how to
be passive fathers and sacrificial mothers.
A similar resolution is reached in Nodding Hill (1999) in which a successful
woman gives up her lucrative career as a movie actor to insure the success of her
relationship with a failing bookseller. And, in You’ve Got Mail (1999), true love and a
promise of marriage absolves the hero of any guilt for having put the heroine out of
business. This familiar romantic narrative, based on patterns of thinking grounded in
gender role stereotypes and film/literary tradition, is so deeply ingrained in the culture
11
that a resistance to or critique o f the sexism supporting it is impossible without a critical
pedagogy that fosters a dialogue with the film/text.
Many popular teen and young adult magazines also emphasize and reinforce the
gender divide in today’s world. Popular magazines for teenage boys and young men
focus on hobbies. However, instead of catering to girls’ hobbies or interests, popular
magazines for teen girls and young women mainly cater to girls’ dedication to winning
and holding the heart of Mr. Right, who is active doing the hiking, climbing, snow
boarding, and biking, etc. Popular women’s magazines lure young female buyers with
advice for winning and holding boys and men by means of beauty tips, advice for
looking sexy through clothes shopping expeditions, weight loss programs, and sexual
tricks. The main stories listed on the covers of February 2001 editions of women’s
magazines were:
His Secret Love Wishes. (Redbookj A Better Butt For Every Reader! (Self)Make Him Crave You! (Cosmopolitan)Beauty First Aid: A Solution for Every Emergency! (Elle)65 looks to turn him on! (Glamour)Win A Man! (Mademoiselle)Lose ten pounds in seven days! (Mode)Shrink Your Body in Four Weeks! (Marie Claire)15 Sex Acts Men Expect; Perkier Breasts Today (Women’s Own)Look Irresistible! (Teen)25 Beauty Books for Under $5. (Seventeen)
All o f these magazines were dedicated to helping women become and remain desirable.
Texts popular with males focus on skill building. The main stories listed on the covers
of February 2001 editions of young men’s magazines were:
W e’ll make you a super hiker. (Backpacker)Toolbox Treasures. (Popular Mechanics)Super Bowl Showdown. (Sports Illustrated)All the Best Players. (The Sporting News)Sexy Lezy: A 300 hp four-seater with a retracting hardtop. (Car and Driver)Essential Maintenance and Riding Advice. (Mountain Bike)Paddle For Life! (Kavak Touring)Best in New Bands 2000. (Rolling Stone)How to Spaz. (Snowboarder)Snowboard Life Top 25 Snowboard Test. (Snowboard Life)
12
The need for the development of the skills for ‘troubling' stereotypes seems to be as
necessary for the reading' of contemporary media as it is for the reading' of the
traditional gender roles, unequal relationships, and conventional romantic narratives
prevalent in classic texts. Furthermore, with these media offerings providing the
cultural background from which students come to approach the classics, it is likely that
without critical skills, students will remain blind to the unequal representation of men
and women in the texts, and in life. They will also remain blind to the double standards
present, sexist perspectives framing the works and the social institutions organizing
their lives.
Sexism in Classic American Literature
Examples of sex role stereotyping, double standards for behavior and sexuality,
emphasis on women's beauty, lack of power in the workplace, and women’s continued
submissive role in relationships are clearly evident in the society and its institutions.
They are also clearly demonstrated in our culture's most valued literary texts. These
classic texts are the central texts in the high school American literary canon (Applebee,
1993; Obbink, 1992; Whaley, 1999). And, these textual products threaten to stall the
progress toward gender equality for both boys and girls and men and women by
modeling gender inequality and a predominantly male understanding of the range of
human experience (Obbink, 1992).
According to Taylor (1993) and Walkerdine (1984), these texts continue to stall
gender equality between the sexes by displaying stereotypes, androcentric attitudes, and
sexist behaviors in a way that appears normal' to uncritical readers who are caught
between a culture that devalues women and one that strives for the equality of the sexes.
“Without an intervention and an exploration of alternative ideas about agency and
gender, patriarchal ideologies may continue to hold sway” (Cherland & Edelsky, 1993,
p. 42) in the reading of classic works. Therefore, the situation represents a challenge for
13
English teachers who are committed to the sharing of America’s prized literary works
with adolescents, and also committed to facilitating the changes that would help
students to address gender inequities in the literature, in the culture, and in their own
lives. This challenge has prompted me to look for new ways to engage high school
students in the aesthetic experience afforded by America’s honored writers without
ignoring the political implications involved in such an agenda.
Many of the works assigned to high school students in American literature class
are male-authored novels written at a time when dualistic notions about male
domination, female submissive behavior, and the double standard reigned supreme.
Therefore, now antiquated notions of the relations between men and women are evident
in much of the fiction currently assigned. According to Applebee (1993) and Whaley
(1999), students in American literature classes are often assigned novels such as
Hemingway’s A Farewell to Arms. Fitzgerald’s The Great Gatsby. and Kesey’s One
Flew Over the Cuckoo's Nest (1996/1969). In each of these novels, gender
representation and relationships are based in models that reinforce sexist dynamics even
when authors are attempting to critique social mores. In the case of- A Farewell to
Arms, the heroine models uncritiqued submissive behavior. In the case of The Great
Gatsbv and One Flew Over the Cuckoo’s Nest, the ideology at the center of the stories
is seen by some feminists as androcentric, if not misogynist (Fetterley, 1978; Horst,
1996), identifying women as responsible for the society’s demise. In both novels, the
system that so oppresses and destroys the men in the stories is represented by two of
America’s most famous fictional female villains: Daisy Buchanan and Nurse Ratched.
Students are also often assigned dramatic works by America’s premier
playwrights, Tennessee Williams and Arthur Miller, some of whose characters are
constructed according to a sexist model acceptable in the culture out of which they were
constructed. In A Streetcar Named Desire (1974/1947), Williams’ stance on M itch’s
14
dismissal of Blanche as “unclean” and inappropriate for bringing home to mother sends
a sexist message to uncritical teenage readers who are part of a culture which still
operates on a double standard. In addition. Miller’s male hero in The Crucible (John
Proctor) refers to his previous sixteen-year-old lover, Abigail, as a “whore.” Although
he seduced and deflowered the young teenager, he takes little responsibility the loss of
her innocence, and likens his debt to Abigail to “the promise that a stallion gives a
mare” (p. 62). Because of the time in which he was writing. Miller shows no rejection
of his hero’s attitude, and, although he means to create a flawed hero in Proctor, his tone
betrays a lack of awareness of what is now may be seen as Proctor’s sexist attitude
toward Abigail. Reading these literary works uncritically can be particularly dangerous
because it can result in contemporary adolescent readers accepting or ignoring the sexist
attitudes because of their distaste for Abigail’s eventual villainous behavior.
The solution to the above dilemma is the development of a transformative
pedagogy to support gender-conscious reading and an awareness of stereotypes and
sexist ideology in the literature. That evidence is supported by educational theorists
(Belsey, 1988/1980; Bogdan, 1992: Davies, 1992, 1993; Gilbert and Taylor, 1991;
Obbink, 1992; Martino, 1995 and Harper, 2000). These theorists have maintained that
there is little to prevent students from surrendering to textual persuasions that support
those perspectives without a pedagogy designed to promote reflection on gendered
readings as culturally constructed.
Various feminists and educational theorists have called for educators to create
textual approaches which move our students beyond our current embeddedness in the
metaphors and storylines of a system of male/female binaries reflective of a world
characterized by gender inequality (Walkerdine, 1984; Davies, 1992; Bogdan, 1992;
Obbink, 1992; Martino, 1995). They stress the importance of reading against the grain
of the existing patriarchal texts which reflect that world (Davies, 1992; Gilbert and
15
Taylor 1991) if they are to find multiple possible readings and leam “to write and speak
new worlds into existence” (Taylor, 1993, p. 148).
The arguments, educators’ research, my own observations about students’
acceptance of the status quo coupled with the above information on sexism in the
literature and the culture, provided me with the rationale for attempting to develop an
effective approach to the study of literature in the high school.
The Study
As stated earlier, my objective was to gain information that would facilitate the
development of a critical gender-conscious pedagogy for the study of classic literature
in the high school. Consequently, a three-pronged study was designed.
The first prong o f the study is an investigation of the responses of high school
students to gender representation and patriarchal ideology in selected early twentieth
century American literature. The second prong of the study is an investigation of the
effects of particular teaching approaches and strategies on the students’ responses and
on their awareness of gender and relationship inequities in the literature. The third
prong of the study is a record and investigation of my experiences as the feminist
teacher attempting to develop a critical feminist pedagogy. Therefore, the study
combines interpretive, critical feminist and self-reflexive components. I occupied the
role of a Reflective Feminist Interpretivist in conducting the study emanating from the
following research questions:
(1)Would students report or exhibit an increased awareness of sexist gender and relationship representations or androcentric perspectives in the literature during the course?
(2)What teaching approaches and strategies would be reported or determined to have had the largest impact on students’ consciousness of literary gender issues: discussion (and dialogic investigation), critical writing, critical readings, social imagination activities or projects)?
1 6
(3)W hat, if any, changes in gender consciousness would be reported or demonstrated to have occurred in their own lives as a result of the study?
(4)What challenges would be involved for the teacher conducting the class/study?
(5) What discoveries would be made that would benefit the literary educational community?
Methods selected to satisfy the first objective of my study (the recording and
interpreting of students’ unmediated responses to gender issues in the literature)
included surveys, written responses and audio-taping of discussions. Teaching
approaches and strategies selected to meet the second objective of the study (the
determination of the effects of teaching approaches on consciousness to sexism in the
literature) included preliminary discussions and dialogic investigation (including
interviews), critical writing, literary critical readings, social imagination activities
(educational drama, art and writing), and final projects. Once I had identified the
approaches to be used, I attempted to see what, if any, changes were brought about by
the particular approach used.
Since the third focus of my research is self-reflexive, focusing on my own
experience as the teacher conducting research in my classroom, the techniques used to
meet the third objective to record, interpret and share my experiences of teaching and
researching were field notes, journals and experimental creative writing exercises. I
have woven my reflections on the study into the description and analysis of my
investigation. I have also shared my struggles to find the appropriate techniques to raise
the students’ consciousness about the literary gender issues and have attempted to
illustrate my experience with the students by means of the writing that I have done as a
method of inquiry.
Seven literary works were chosen for the study. Four literary works, written by
celebrated American male authors, were selected either because of their canonical
standing, or their authors’ placement at the center of the high school American literature
17
curriculum (Applebee, 1993). I selected works focusing primarily on male and female
characters involved in romantic relationship in order to study the students’ developing
responses to the gender representations and to other gender issues raised by the reading
of the texts. These texts include Washington Square (1962/1896), by Henry James; A
Farewell To Arms (1969/1929) and “Hills Like White Elephants’’ by Ernest
Hemingway; The Great Gatsbv (1995/1925), by F. Scott Fitzgerald; and “The Untold
Lie,” from Winesburg. Ohio (1977/1925), by Sherwood Anderson. Because the class
spent so little time discussing Hemingway's short story, it is not a focus of the study.
However, I have included it on a limited basis because of its importance for one focus
group participant who used it for a writing project.
Three female-authored texts were used in the study to provide alternatives to the
male perspectives found in the celebrated male-authored literature of the period. These
texts were “The Gentle Lena, ” from Three Lives (1990/1906), by Gertrude Stein; “Love
and Marriage,” from Anarchism (1969/1912)), by Emma Goldman; and Their Eves
Were Watching God (1998/1937), by Zora Hurston.
Thirty-five students (18 boys and 17 girls) and I investigated these works in two
sections of a high school American literature course during the fall semester of 1999.
We read the texts in chronological order, using the specific approaches and strategies
designed to assess response, to stimulate investigation and discovery, and to promote a
critical gender-conscious reading of the literature studied. Within the larger group of
thirty-five, I focused on a group of ten students who were selected as representatives
from the two classrooms to participate in an extended, in-depth study of gender issues in
the selected literature. Research conducted with the focus group was conducted
simultaneously with the research in the two classrooms during the fall 1999 semester,
and continued through the following semester of winter, 2000 by means of interviews,
group discussions and improvisational workshops.
1 8
Significance of the Study
This study is significant because it takes up the challenge (Davies, 1992; 1995;
Harper, 2000) to develop pedagogy for the high school literature classroom.
The study is significant also because to accomplish this it includes a dual focus
on teacher and student evaluations of the effectiveness of the various teaching
approaches and strategies employed in the literary investigations. Focusing on the
frustrations as well as on the triumphs experienced by teachers and students involved in
the research, and on the limitations as well as the successes of the project, it provides
information invaluable for educators interested in the implementation of critical
feminist pedagogy for male and female high school literature students. It provides
insight into the positions that students occupy in a culture that promotes equality
between the sexes, yet exerts pressure on both males and females to play traditional,
albeit limited roles. It also provides insight into a teacher’s bifurcated consciousness as
she is caught between her desire to promote equality between the sexes and her need to
accept, if not respect, students’ resistances to what they may see as equality in conflict
with their sexual identities (Brown and Gilligan, 1992; Harper, 2000; Lewis, 1992).
The study is also significant in that it breaks new ground by dealing with gender
issues in a co-educational high school classroom. While gender-related studies of co
educational college literature classes have been carried out, most recent high school
studies have been done with girls only (Harper, 2000; Ricker-Wilson, 2000) or with
boys only (Martino. 1995). And. Davies (1992), Faludi (1991), Grumet (2000), Martino
(1995) and Pace and Townsend (1999) all assert that that the realization of a gender-
equal society will not be accomplished without the dedication o f both males and
females to the project which touches both sexes. This echoes Sm ith’s (1949) assertion
that “what cruelly shapes and cripples the personality of one, is as cruelly shaping and
crippling the personality of the other” (Smith, in Pace and Townsend, 1999, p. 48).
19
The study is also significant because it lays the groundwork for a critical gender-
based analysis of the literature most often assigned in the high school (Applebee, 1993;
Obbink. 1992: Whaley, 1993). Once again, critical feminist studies have been
conducted with the study of classic texts in university classrooms (Pace and Townsend,
1999), but the focus in recent studies done in the high school literature classroom has
been on contemporary literature (Harper, 2000; Martino, 1995; Ricker-Wilson, 1999).
The impact of a curriculum that excludes women’s writings is profound and it affects all
of the students, male and female. When students read only male-authored literature and
see characters from only a pre-women's movement male perspective, they neither leam
to recognize and value women as writers nor do they see the women’s perspectives.
Finally, the study is significant because it engages students and teachers in a
joint investigation of ways to read these older, mostly male-authored works ‘against the
grain' (Davies, 1992; Fetterley, 1978; Kolodny, 1985; Schweickart, 1986; Taylor,
1993). This prevents the need to completely replace these classics with more
contemporary offerings by encouraging students to identify, problematize, and resist the
patriarchal patterns while still reaping the benefits of these literary masterpieces.
Conclusion
This study includes research for the design of a critical gender-related
pedagogical approach for use in the high school American literature classroom. By
recording students’ and their teacher’s experiences in a classroom emphasizing gender
issues in literature, I have focused on the reading practices and interpretive approaches
which impact on gender-conscious reading and living. I have identified students’ initial
literary responses to record their basic reactions to the literature and their perspectives
on gender equality. I have also employed various teaching strategies in an attempt to
note the effects of those strategies on students’ developing awareness to the sexism in
20
the literature and in their lives. The findings from this investigation, and the
commentary on my experience are intended to provide additional knowledge to the field
of education and gender studies.
The study proceeds as follows: In Chapter 2, I delineate the theoretical
perspectives that undergird the study and the body of research that supports it, and in
Chapter 3 ,1 explain the methodological approach that directed and framed the study. In
Chapters 4 and 5, I analyze and interpret the students’ individual and collective
responses to the gender representations and perspectives in the literature, and in Chapter
6.1 experiment with the writing of a drama to serve as a metaphor for the interaction of
the students and myself, as we investigated the final literary work. In Chapter 7, I
identify the findings, the limitations, and the implications of the study for my own
teaching as well as for the field of literature education and gender studies.
21
CHAPTER 2
RELATED THEORIES AND RESEARCH
The deconstxuctive voice especially asks what roles a reader might play other than that of being “convinced” of the author’s right to serve as “The Great Interpreter” (Dreyfus and Rabinow, 1983) o r “the master of truth and justice.
Michel Foucault, 1977 p. 12
Introduction
Grounding and framing my investigation of students’ responses to gender
representation and patriarchal ideology in classic American texts are multiple theories
that include reader response theories, feminist literary theories, ethical theories, and
critical pedagogical theories. These theories intersect in much of the related educational
research that has also informed my study.
Part I: Review of Related Theoretical Foundations
Reader Response Theories
My investigation of students’ responses to gender issues in classic American
literature, and to the strategies used to promote a heightened awareness of sexism in that
literature is based on an approach to literature which assumes a text that is open to
readers’ revisions, and negotiations. Beach (1993) has provided a useful classification
of reader response theorists according to the focus of their criticism, whether that focus
22
is experiential, textual, social or cultural. I have adopted his categories to elucidate the
ways in which reader response theorists have informed my work.
The reader response theorists who have influenced my work represent a broad
range of attitudes about the roles o f the reader and the text and the context shaping the
reader-text transaction. While they all shared a belief that the reader is critical to the
making of meaning in the literary experience, they have occupied various positions on
the continuum. They include those who believe readers to be accountable to what is
determined in and by the text, and those who believe that “the text is no more than an
inkblot, whose meaning is created entirely by the reader” (p. 2).
Experiential Response Theorists
According to Beach (1993), experiential response theories refer to the work of
theorists who are primarily interested in describing readers’ engagement and the
processes of a reader’s experience. Central to experiential theories of response is
Rosenblatt (1978). She developed her Transactional Reader Response theory following
Dewey’s rejection of a simple stimulus response model. Her approach assumed that a
text is not a finished product or a mirroring of reality. Rosenblatt (1995/1938) insisted
that literature speaks’ to a reader in literary experience because of “the synthesis of
what the reader already knows and feels with what the literary text offers” (p. 259).
In my study, which addresses gender-based cultural differences between a
contemporary reader and authors/characters from previous time and culture, 1 began the
investigation of each text by asking the students to focus first on their own personal
responses to the literature before I introduced other critical approaches to the literature.
I asked them to consider what they as readers were bringing to the text from their own
contemporary culture and time, and how that affected their response to the text.
Though Rosenblatt (1978) emphasized the role o f the reader, she also insisted on
accountability to the text. Rosenblatt argued that the reader “should always return to the
23
signs on the page, to see whether they support those intentions and interpretations” (p.
107). While my study engaged students in a negotiation with the texts they read, an
attention to the author's representations and ideologies was of paramount importance in
order to enable students to contrast their political perspectives with those of the authors
and characters. After the initial concentration on the students’ response, I had students
explore what aspects of the texts they thought had stimulated their responses. In this
respect, I followed Rosenblatt's (1995) suggestion that by encouraging students to leam
to read the text more closely, we may help students to become aware not only o f
unnoticed verbal clues but also of their own biases or blind spots (p. 196).
Textual Theories of Response
According to Beach (1993), whereas experiential theorists focus on the reader’s
experience, textual theorists focus on how readers draw on their knowledge of text or
genre conventions to respond to specific text features (1993). I have drawn from Iser
(1978, 1986), Jauss (1986), and Rabinowitz (1987, 1989) as I attempted to promote
textual readings of the literature under consideration.
Iser (1978) purported that during the reading process, the reader is actively
filling gaps of implied meaning as s/he interacts with the text. Describing the text as “a
set of directions to be completed by the reader” (p. 55), Iser (1978) claimed that no
reading can ever exhaust the full potential of a text, and that each reader will fill in the
gaps in her own way, thereby excluding the various other possibilities. Thus, as readers
read, they make their own decision as to how the gap is to be filled. Like Rosenblatt
(1978), Iser (1978) did not grant independence from textual restraints. He too claimed
that the reader’s activity is still only “a fulfillment of what is already implicit in the
structure of the work” (Iser in Tompkins, p. 1994/1980, p. 50). Iser (1978) argued that
readers engage in a dialectical relationship with texts that allows them make sense of
multiple perspectives in the texts. Although he did not address gender in his work, his
24
theory opened the door for feminist readings of literature. Lundberg (1889) has pointed
out that “feminist searches for meaning in hitherto hidden space coincide nicely with
the reader-response concept of finding meaning in the gaps in the text” (p. 22). In my
initial investigation of students’ responses to the representation of male and female
characters, I investigated students’ responses to see if the readers filled in the gaps in
the construction of characters with contemporary gender-related ideas.
My work was also informed by the textual response theory of Jauss (1982;
1986). Jauss (1986) examined readers' responses as they were affected by meanings
inherent in particular historical contexts, and asserted that a literary work is not an
object that offers objective meaning to each reader in each time period. He claimed that
by exploring the disparities between their own and past “horizons of expectations” (set
of expectations both literary and cultural, with which a reader approaches a text),
readers could examine and identify ways in which their own horizons of expectations
shaped their experience (Jauss in Beach, 1993). Jauss (1986) believed that “we never
come to cognitive situations empty but carry with us a whole world of familiar beliefs
and expectations.
According to Godzich (1994), Jauss (1982) dealt with the ways in which cultural
gaps between the text and the reader can be minimized in cases where there is resistance
in the reader due to cultural difference. Jauss (1982) argued that through aesthetic
distance the “sum total of reactions, prejudgments and verbal and other behavior that
greet a work upon appearance” is capable of being altered (Jauss in Godzich, 1994, p.
40) such that there can be acceptance in later periods. Jauss also acknowledged that
resistance may also result in the rejection of the work until a “horizon of expectation”
for that work is forged (p. 41).
Jauss’ (1982) theory was particularly important to me in considering
contemporary students’ resistance to literature like “The Gentle Lena” (1990/1906), on
25
the grounds that the portrayals of parental involvement in children’s courtships in the
story, are archaic by their contemporary standards. A revised horizon of expectation
could enable contemporary readers to see the parents as symbols for the social forces
which often still promote standardized, socially acceptable decisions, as opposed to
personally fulfilling ones. Our attempts to write an updated version of “The Gentle
Lena” were also attempts to revise students’ ‘horizons of expectations.’
Rabinowitz (1987) has posited that readers adopt the roles of the authorial
audience (readers intended by the author) in order to accept the author’s invitation to
read in a particularly socially constituted way that is shared by the author and his or her
expected readers” (p. 22). He argued for the engagement of Coleridge’s ‘willing
suspension of disbelief for accepting the text as premise. This involves the adopting of
a ‘narrative audience’ which, as distinct from the ‘authorial audience,’ is “a role which
the text forces the reader to take on” (p. 95). According to Rabinowitz, in assuming the
role of the narrative audience, readers pretend that they accept the text world as real
(Rabinowitz in Beach, 1993). In assuming this role, they ask themselves the kind of
reader they would have to pretend to be and the kinds of things they would have to
know and believe in order to take the fictional work as real.
In my investigation of the literature with the students, we explored the adoption
of the narrative audience. The exploration of what the reader would have to know and
believe to take the work of fiction such as “The Untold Lie ” as real, helped the students
to come to terms with the textual ideology and the ways in which it collided with their
own personal philosophies. I also adopted the narrative conventions that Rabinowitz
(1987) identified to assist readers in defining their relationship to the stance of the
authorial audience. In discussions of Washington Square and A Farewell To Arms. I
introduced the students to Rabinowitz’s (1987) reading theories to help them to
distinguish between the utterances of the characters and the perspectives of the authors.
26
Narrative theory played a central role in our discussions of those works because an
understanding of authorial craft and audience response was crucial to an understanding
of these authors’ perspectives, as well as the reader’s interpretation of those
constructions.
Social Response Theorists
Basic to social theories of response is a social constructivist theory of
knowledge, which posits that knowledge is socially constructed rather than scientifically
verifiable, objective truth. Thus, for social theorists, the meaning o f language depends
on how language is used in specific contexts and the way in which language involves
“learning to read these various social dimensions in specific contexts” (Beach, 1993, p.
105). According to Beach (1993), social theorists believe that the point of a transaction
between reader and text is also socially constructed. “Thus, the meaning of an
interpretation or the point,’ evolves out of social exchange of responses” (p. 106).
Fish (1980), a critic perceived as a social response theorist, argued that text is
not “an entity which always remains the same form one moment to the next” (p. vii).
Fish (1984) also argued that “meaning is not the property of the text, but what gradually
emerges in the interaction between the text and the developing response of the reader”
(p. 89). Fish (1980) also posited that readers who share interpretive communities, share
interpretive strategies. He argued that “the meaning o f a text is a product of one’s
reading strategies operating in specific social contexts” (Fish in Beach, 1993, p. 106).
Different communities of readers account for different readings of the same text. Fish
(1980) claimed that these strategies exist prior to the act of reading and therefore
determine the shape of what is read” (p. 182).
Fish’s (1980) emphasis on context and the influence of the interpretive
community on textual response influenced my attempt to raise gender awareness
27
through an examination of the differences between the interpretive communities made
up of the males, the females, each of the two literature classes, and the focus group.
Dialogic Theory
Bakhtin s (1981) dialogic theory “injects conflict into the interpretive
community framework” (p. 22), and demonstrates that conflicts inherent in
communities and between communities, generate change (1989). Bakhtin (1981)
pointed to the centrality of articulating response in achieving understanding. He
claimed that “ [ujnderstanding comes to fruition only in the response and that
understanding and response are dialectically merged and mutually condition each other”
(p. 292). He argued that one is impossible without the other. Readers responding
dialogically to a writer’s ideas would create their own internal dialogues by
incorporating the writer’s utterances with their own. Beach (1993) has quoted
Bialostosky as saying that “ [mjembers of a dialogic community resist monologic
orientations in order to keep talking to themselves and to one another, discovering their
affinities without resisting them, and clarifying their differences without resolving
them” (Bialostosky in Beach, p. 112).
According to Bakhtin (1981), when adopting a dialogic perspective, a person
entertains multiple layers of conflicting, competing meanings, or what Bakhtin (1981)
describes as “heteroglossia.”
At any given moment of its historical existence, language is heteroglot from top to bottom: It represents the co-existence of socio-ideological contradictions between the present and the past, between differing epochs of the past, between different socio-ideological groups in the present, between tendencies, schools, circles and so forth . . . . These languages of heteroglossia intersect each other in a variety of ways, forming new socially typifying languages (p. 291).
Implicit in Bakhtin’s (1981) poststructuralist theory, then, is the notion that a
text is open to readers’ various and conflicting responses. There can be a dialogue
between the reader and the text, and between the reader and the authorial voice.
28
Lundberg (1989) has pointed out that Bakhtin’s recognition of the heteroglossia
of discourse explains why Bakhtinian dialogics has become important for feminist
critics: “Realizing that the dominant critical discourse is not the only one, feminist
critics feel empowered to engage in more or less conflictual dialogue with more or less
heteroglossic interpretive communities of critics who have marginalized feminist
critical discourse” (p.27). Bakhtin’s (1981) assertion that the novel (and short story)
“denies the absolutism of a single and unitary language and refuses to acknowledge its
own language as the sole verbal and semantic center of the ideological world” (pp. 366-
67) has created the possibility for me to engage students in a feminist re-reading of the
fiction. The openness he assigned the text supported my desire to engage a group of
teenage boys and girls in a conversation in which their divergent voices could come
together to clarify their differences, if not resolve them. Bakhtin’s (1981) view of the
open text has also provided the opportunity for me to make use of what Bakhtin (1981)
calls “creative misreading” (p. 346). By engaging students to dialogue with silent
characters, rewrite textual dialogues, or update short stories and novels, I followed
Bakhtin (1981) in urging students to take up the text “into new contexts, attach it to
new material, put it into new situations, in order to wrest new answers from it, new
insights into its meaning” (p. 346-47).
Cultural Theories
In discussing cultural theorists. Beach (1993) has pointed out that cultural
theorists who are interested in how readers’ cultural values and outlooks shape their
responses to literature, represent many disciplinary perspectives. The perspectives that
relate to my work are poststructuralist and feminist theories. Since I have specifically
designated the next section of this chapter to a discussion of feminist theories that have
influenced my study, I will address only poststructuralist theories at this time.
29
Poststructuralist perspectives “generally assume that readers respond according
to ‘subject positions’ acquired from socialization by cultural institutions (p. 125).
According to Belsey (1988/1980), this represents a challenge to liberal humanism,
which suggests that ‘man’ is the origin and source of meaning, o f action and of history.
It also represents a skepticism about the effects of humanism, which emphasize the
binaries and hierarchies that have long been unchallenged in Western philosophy. Such
binaries, including masculine/feminine; rational/em otional; dominant/passive;
powerful/weak; subject/object: good/evil; virgin/whore, have had a devastating effect
on women and on men who have found themselves described by the subordinate
categories in the binaries.
Poststructuralists investigate linguistic constructions in an attempt to deconstruct
binary categories, which they claim form the unquestionable base of knowledge in
dominant ideology. They attempt to envision these binaries as metaphysical and fictive,
rather than physical and fixed, in order to turn these binaries into multiple possibilities.
The objective for feminism, according to Flax (1990) is to displace the fictions that have
been effective rhetorical devices that have served to limit women. The work of three
major theorists, Saussure (1986), Foucault (1977) and Derrida (1979), have provided
the theoretical framework for a feminist poststructuralist approach to reader response
and have had a significant impact on my research.
Saussure’s (1986) work has made poststructuralist thought possible by dealing a
blow to the stability of the linguistic referent. His theory initially problematized the
notion that language is in some sense transparent, acting as a window through which
reality can be ascertained (Belsey, 1988/1980; Flax, 1990). Saussure (1987) theorized
language as an abstract system consisting of chains of signs.
Each sign is made up of a signifier (sound or written image) and a signified (meaning). The two components of the sign are related to each other in an arbitrary way and there is therefore no natural connection between the sound image and the concept it identifies. The meaning of
30
signs is not intrinsic but relational. Each sign derives its meaning from its difference from all the other signs in the language. It is not anything intrinsic to the signifier ‘whore’ for example, that gives its meaning, but rather its difference from other signifiers of womanhood such as ‘virgin’ and ‘mother’ (de Saussure in Weedon, 1987, p. 23).
Poststructuralists adopting Saussure’s (1986) se miotic distinction between the
signifier and the signified have emphasized the unstable relationship between the word
and its referent in reality. They have further heightened the importance of context to the
process of meaning making, examining the ways in which institutions such as schools,
businesses, organized religions, governments, “limit the signifieds o f the signifiers to
meanings consistent with their own institutional ideology” (Beach, 1993, p. 126).
Poststructuralist reader response theorists (Belsey, 1988/1980; Davies, 1992; Martino,
1995; Tompkins, 1994; Walkerdine, 1984) have focused on the ways in which these
institutions (including texts) socialize readers to respond according to certain subject
positions’ consistent with these ideological stances. Furthermore, they have argued that
a specific way of reading a text also promotes a particular way of seeing the world
(Belsey, 1988/1980).
Poststructuralist reader response theorists who have been influenced by
Saussure’s (1986) problematizing of the relationship between the linguistic sign and its
referent, have been important to my effort to encourage students to question the
authority of binaries and hierarchies for a goal of gender equality. An important goal of
my study was to help students to consider ways in which an author’s ideological stance
(i.e., Anderson in “The Untold Lie”) may position the reader to accept a perspective in
order to foster an appreciation for his story’s point.
Foucault (1980,1986) called the forces in this process ‘discourses,’ or discursive
practices. According to him, discursive formations exist prior to individuals’ own
experiences, inhibiting them from defining their experiences in terms of their own
words or signifiers. Foucault (1980) argued that each society has its “regime of truth”
31
(p. 131), or general policies of truth. Included in these policies of truth are the types of
discourse that the society accepts and makes true, and the mechanisms and instances
that enable one to distinguish true and false statement. Also included are the
technologies and procedures that afford value in the acquisition of truth and the status of
those who are charged with saying what is true. According to Belsey (1988/1980), for
Foucault, then, common sense, including the hierarchies, binaries and totalities inherent
in it. is ideologically and discursively constructed, rooted in a specific historical
situation and operating in conjunction with a particular social formation. Thus, what
seems obvious and natural is not necessarily so. “[0]n the contrary,” said Belsey, “the
obvious and natural are not given but produced in a specific society by the ways in
which the society talks and thinks about itself and its experience” (p. 3). The theory has
thrown into question the important notion that a text not only reflects the world in which
it was created, but also constitutes its readers, and reproduces the ideologies inherent in
the texts. In a system of binaries and hierarchies, categories created by discourse
“function to create and justify social organization and exclusion” (Flax, 1993, p. 96).
The poststructuralist critique, however, offers methods which can bring about a
reader’s liberation “from something our history has misled us into thinking was real”
(Rajchman, 1985, p. 56). Belsey (1988/1980) pointed out that “meanings circulate
between text, ideology and reader, and that the work of criticism is to release possible
meanings” (p. 144). She claimed that the task of criticism is to establish the unspoken
in the text and to decenter it in order to challenge dominant versions of history. The
deconstructive method is the point of departure for poststructuralist analyses, including
feminist analyses that have critiqued the texts of liberal humanism.
Derrida’s (1979) analysis o f the language of humanism has influenced
poststructuralists’ suspicions of a binary logic, and problematizes governing absolutes,
power claims, and metanarratives by releasing possible meanings through
32
deconstruction. According to Adams (1986), Derrida’s philosophical position, much
like his method of analysis, systematically undermines the presumption of a stable
interpretive context to which a reader may habitually appeal for the determination of
meaning. Derrida’s (1974, 1979) analysis illustrated that language works not because
there is an identity between a sign and its referent, but because there is a difference
between one sign and another.
According to Spivak (1974), deconstruction is a critical practice which, by
focusing on the difference between signs, aims to dismantle the metaphysical and
rhetorical structures which are at work, not to reject or discard them, but to reinscribe
them in another way in order to reconstitute what is always already inscribed. The goal
is neither unitary wholeness nor dialectical resolution. It is to disrupt, to keep things in
process, ’to keep the system in play, to set up procedures to continuously demystify the
realities we create and to fight the tendency for our categories to congeal” (Caputo, in
Lather, 1991, p. 120). A deconstructive reading is an endless play that begins by noting
the hierarchy in a binary, such as that of dominant and passive. A deconstructionist
engaging in a reading of these signs would approach them with the idea that the
meaning is located in the difference between and not in the presence of either sign.
That is, the structure of the sign dominant,’ is determined by the trace of the sign
’passive,’ that is always already present in the sign dominant’ through its difference.
The reader would then proceed to disrupt the binary by reversing it and hierarchizing
‘passive’ over dominant’. S/he would continue the play of exploring meaning by finally
resisting the assertion of the new hierarchy by displacing the second term from a
position of superiority (Selden, 1985).
A deconstructive reading “would go on to recognize that the couplet cannot be
hierarchized in either direction without violence” (p. 173), leading one to challenge the
hierarchy in the first place. The deconstructive reading locates the promising marginal
33
text to disrupt the binaries and explode the myth of closure “to help to rewrite the world
and ourselves again and again’" (St. Pierre, 1995, p. 35). Deconstructing the
androcentric assumptions by which gender has been constructed, and ‘troubling’
(Butler, 1990; Lather. 1998) the hierarchies in literature and in life in order to re-
envision a more gender-equal society is central to my project.
The notion that language is constitutive of reality rather than merely reflective of
it is a perspective that guided my attempt to disrupt patriarchal perspectives by
• encouraging students to consider masculinity and femininity outside the binary
oppositional semantic structure. Without readers’ acknowledgment of any binaries,
hierarchies, power dynamics and metanarratives are implicit in the texts. Without a
practice through which students can begin to deconstruct those hegemonies, textually
and socially constructed gender representations and ideologies are likely to continue to
constitute their experiences and identities (Belsey, 1988/1980; Walkerdine, 1984).
Feminist Literarv Theories
Although feminist literary theory is subsumed under the category of cultural
reader response theory, its importance to my project demands that it be honored in a
separate discussion that includes a historical perspective. Feminists engaged in the
study of textual response stand on the shoulders of those who blazed the difficult trails
of demystification and deconstruction of the masculinist language and patriarchal
perspectives that had previously been seen as “ innocent” and ideologically pure
(Eagleton, 1986, 1996; Ellmann, 1968; Fetterley, 1978; Gilbert and Gubar, 1979;
Kolodny, 1985; Millett, 1969; Showaiter, 1977). These theorists believed that art is
political and that gender-neutral criticism is impossible. Many argued (Fetterley, 1978;
Gilbert and Gubar, 1979; Kolodny, 1985; Showalter, 1977) that reading texts
representative of patriarchal values has been damaging to young women and men, as
they have socialized women into masculine reading formations and colonized their
34
thinking and behavior. They promote revisionist reading of texts to diminish patriarchal
textual coercion. Rich (1979) defined revision as it relates to literary criticism by
explaining that:
Revision, the act of looking back, of seeing with fresh eyes, of entering an old text from a new critical direction is more than a chapter in cultural history; it is an act of survival. Until we can understand the assumptions in which we are drenched, we cannot know ourselves. And this drive to self-knowledge . . . is more than a search for identity: it is part of her refusal of the self-destructiveness of male-dominated society. A radical critique of literature, feminist in its impulse, would take the work first of all as a clue to how we live, how we have been living, how we have been led to imagine ourselves, how language has trapped us as well as liberated us, and how we can begin to see—and therefore live—afresh (p.35).
Driven as it is by a specific desire to subject texts and textual readings to critical
scrutiny for the purpose of deconstructing gender bias and patriarchal constructions, my
study is grounded in feminist literary theory. It is firmly grounded in the work of
theorists who fall under the categories of response theorists, poststructuralist
psychoanalytic theorists, and gender theorists.
Feminist Response Theorists
Fetterley s (1978) seminal study attempted to uncover not only the stereotypes
in classic American texts, but also the patriarchal perspectives governing the texts.
Here Fetterley (1978) proclaimed that literature is political, and that
One of the main things that keeps the design of our literature unavailable to the consciousness of the woman reader is the very posture of the apolitical, the pretense that literature speaks universal truths through forms from which all the merely personal, the purely subjective, has been burned away or at least transformed through the medium of art into the representative” (p. xi).
She encouraged female readers to “begin the process of exorcising the male niind that
has been implanted in us” (p. xxii), and argued that when only a male reality is
encouraged, legitimized and transmitted, there is a necessary resulting confusion of
consciousness in which impalpability flourishes (p. xi). Addressing the androcentrism
and misogyny in canonical American writers, Fetterley’s (1978) work paved the way for
35
my acknowledgment and consideration of the political nature of literature and for my
interest in raising students’ awareness of the patriarchal ideologies which govern much
of classic American literature. Some of her ideas were particularly influential in our
analysis of The Great Gatsbv and A Farewell To Arms.
Schweickart’s (1986) work as a feminist reader response theorist has also
informed my work. Answering Jonathan Culler’s (Culler in Schweickart, p. 38)
question that “if the meaning of a work is the experience of the reader, what difference
does it make if the reader is a woman?’’ Schweickart (1986) argued that androcentric
literature is damaging to women. She suggested “reading the text as it was not meant to
be read and reading it against itself’ (p. 50) in order to deconstruct the governing sexist
perspectives. Schweickart (1986) also believed that girls must investigate what is
happening to them when they read as she asserts, “a girl cannot simply refuse to read
patriarchal texts for they are everywhere and they condition her participation in the
literary and critical enterprise ” (p. 50). Schweickart (1986) argued for a feminist reader
response criticism, claiming that much of reader response criticism “ignores the issue of
race, class and sex, and gives no hint of the conflicts, sufferings, and passions that
attend these realities” (p. 21). Her goal was not merely to interpret literature but to
transform the culture and change the world” (p. 39).
Critical Resistance Theorists
In her book. Backlash: The Undeclared War Against American Women. Faludi
(1991) documents a decade of intensified resistance to feminism. She asserted that the
American women’s movement scored important successes in the seventies, particularly
in the areas of control of reproduction and fairness in the workplace. However, she
claimed that the changes that had taken place were resented by many men who longed
to return to a media-spun romanticized version of gender relations in the fifties.
36
Faludi (1991) blamed the media for sending the celebratory message that ‘the
struggle for women's rights was won,’ while following that message up with the
bulletin of despair which suggested to women that they may be free and equal now but
they “have never been more miserable” (p. I). She claimed that the media’s insistence
that professional women were suffering from stress and burnout; succumbing to an
infertility epidemic; grieving from a ‘man shortage’; and raising depressed and confused
children, frightened women away from feminism, preventing continued advancements.
For this reason, although the feminist movement had been responsible for the
advancement of women by means of increased opportunities in education and work,
sexism in the culture was not eradicated. Incidences of sexist representations and
textual ideologies in current literature and film reflect and perpetuate that societal
sexism (Davies, 1992, 1993; Grumet, 2000; Taylor, 1993; Walkerdine, 1984).
Among other critical feminist theorists who have focused on students’ resistance
to feminism is Lewis (1992), who studied the feminist classroom to investigate the
potential threat of a feminist pedagogy for heterosexual women. She found that
especially for younger women still caught in the midst of sexual exploration and
identification, the feminist classroom can feel particularly threatening. According to
Lewis ( 1992) feminist pedagogy does not easily translate into an education that includes
heterosexual women unless educators address the way that a critique of pedagogy
threatens these women’s survival and livelihood.
Lewis (1992) also found women’s protection of men is a common drama played
out in many classrooms where gender inequalities are addressed. Women are invested
in the well-being of men, and that investment, as Lewis pointed out, is not easily left at
the classroom door. Lewis also claimed that not only gender, but sexuality is a deeply
present organizing principle in the classroom, and one which enters into the dynamics
37
of how we come together as women and men in the pursuit of shared meaning. To
make her point, she quoted bell hooks:
Sexism is unique. It is unlike any other forms of domination—racism or class ism—where the exploited and the oppressed do not live in large numbers intimately with their oppressors or develop their primary love relationships (familial and/or romantic) with the individuals who oppress and dominate or share in the privileges attained by domination . . . (For women) the context of these intimate relationships is also the site of domination and oppression (hooks in Lewis, p. 130).
In addition she pointed out that Susan Griffith has suggested that a woman
knows that “over and over again culture tells her that men abandon women who speak
too loudly or who are too present'" (Griffith in Lewis, p. 211). Lewis (1992) added that
“coupled with the strong cultural message that her survival in the world depends on her
being able to find a man to marry, many young women in the feminist classroom find
themselves caught in the double bind of needing to speak and to remain silent at the
same time in order to guarantee some measure of survival" (p. 211).
Investigating gender with high school boys and girls who are engaged in
defining their sexuality called for a sensitivity to their need to define themselves as
normal' by society's standards. I attempted to keep Lewis’ (1992) findings in mind
during the study for a better understanding of the students and for the development of a
pedagogy which would not ignore their needs.
Feminist Psvchoanalvtic Theorists
Psychoanalytic feminist theorists have also had an important influence on my
work because of their focus on the ways in which a reader’s subconscious psychological
state defines the meaning of the text and the reading experience. According to Beach
(1993) these psychoanaytic feminist critics investigate the ways in which “a reader
transforms experience into a conscious level that expresses, through identification with
a fictional character, the reader’s repressed, subconscious experience” (p. 94).
38
Psychoanalytic theorists, initially drawing from Freudian thought, focused on
the latent drives inherent in characters’ experiences and the writers’ language. This
focus, addressed by psychoanalytic theorists such as Bogdan (1997), Davies (1992),
Martino (1995), and Walkerdine (1984) has helped to elucidate the ways in which texts
position readers by engaging them at a subconscious fantasy level. Butler (1991),
Bogdan (1997), Davies (1992), Martino (1995), and Walkerdine (1984) have also been
informed by the work of Lacan (1986), who followed Freud (1908) and married
psychoanalytic theory with poststructuralism by positing that the linguistic system
shapes belief and psychological engagement. Lacanian psychoanalytic critics maintain
that “the reader's projections are modified and filtered by the texts’ signifiers, which
unconsciously shape the meaning” (Beach, 1993, p. 97). According to this perspective,
the reader’s experience with the language of the text, then, triggers subconscious
associations and “the language of the unconscious serves to position readers, sharing
their experience with the text (p. 98).
Central to my study is Bogdan (1990; 19.92; 1997), whose design of a feminist
pedagogy combines critique with aesthetic appreciation. As a student and follower of
Northrop Frye, Bogdan (1992) took him and his Educated Imagination (1963), into the
poststructuralist, feminist world where it and he can be posthumously re-educated to the
impact of the cultural and political realities of gender, race and class on the
contemporary reader. In Re-Educating The Imagination; Toward a Politics and
Pedagogv of Literary Engagement. Bogdan (1992) transformed Frye’s (1963) taxonomy
into a method which reached beyond him to empower readers previously
disempowered. Her re-educated imagination (1992) was designed to make room for
cultural response when ideological differences between the reader and the writer stand
in the way of either pre-critical aesthetic engagement (stasis), or a solution brought
about by means of a critical response (total form as dialectic). Her solution is a fusion
39
of the experience (direct response) and literary literacy (awareness of as many as
possible of the conditions of the experience) for the formation of a 'stereophonic
vision'. This ‘stereophonic vision’ would allow a response “that integrates enjoyment
and self consciousness of the relationship between the text and reader at the point of
literary encounter” (p. xxx).
Bogdan's (1990; 1992; 1997) approach, necessary when readers encounter a
'misrecognition scene,' helps to preserve an appreciation for fiction that problematizes
readings for women because of an ideological gap between author and reader. Such a
response attempts to challenge the hierarchy of mythology over ideology by fusing the
acts of engagement and detachment into a single act o f reading. Bogdan (1992)
believed that with some risk, the reader could engage with the literary text for a
response which “springs from a recognition of ideological bases and values built into
the reading subject and the textual object” (p. 125). True transformation, she said,
occurs only when learners transform the structures by which they are formed.
According to Bogdan (1992), this will sometimes involve the critical reading of existing
texts, and at other times the calling a text out of existence for a while to make way for
new growth. But, she has insisted that the reader approach the text personally and
politically at all times.
In attempting to prioritize direct response and avoid the detachment from the
literature that much o f feminist criticism requires, Bogdan (1997) defined a dialectical
alternative to either this detachment or “the colonizing threat posed by sweet surrender
to the total form of a text” (p. 84). This dialectical approach involves an unending
practice of readers re-reading texts and reconsidering responses to the texts. This
practice allows the reader to investigate a text over and over again to see what
underlying desires are at the bottom of the love affair. According to Bogdan (1999),
We propose a layered exercise in which the students a) write free response; b) read a critical theoretical piece that may either reinforce or
40
countervail their initial responses; c) go back and reread the literary work; and d) write an evaluation of how the entire process [affects] their responses. TTiis final layer sets up a meta-cognitive awareness that gives them some distance on their responses (personal email).
This ongoing self-reflexive process, which she called “the feminization of total
form,” (1990), and “self-subversive self-reflection” (1997) “allows the reader to
experience pleasures associated with falling in love with a text just so long as she
realizes that the resting place, though not false, must be temporary” (p. 85). This
process, which narrows the gap between direct and critical response, “suggests that
thinking and feeling about literary texts are not mutually exclusive activities” (p. 85).
Connected with Freudian ( 1908) and Lacanian ( 1977) psychoanalytic theory, the
practice assumes that our direct responses are dependent not only on our situatedness,
our knowledge about literature, and our theoretical and ideological frameworks, but also
on desires which are largely inaccessible. According to Bogdan (1997), the desires
underlying our loving or hating a text, while not identifiable, do “work to disrupt the
unity and coherence of conscious awareness, to trespass on the certainty with which we
comprehend our direct responses” (p. 84). Our readings, argued Bogdan (1997), are
filled with denials, repressions and forgettings “which determine what we are drawn to,
what scenes and details we actually see and or don’t see” (p. 84). This view holds that
literary response is the enactment of unconscious psychic forces transferred upon the
symbolic object through the complex mediation of desire. Bogdan (1997) argued that
like the dream, direct response is mediated by desire, and always conceals as much as it
reveals. She claimed that “self-subversive self-reflection” is less a the path to raise
consciousness as it is one upon which to map the associations our readings produce, and
to think about what these may imply for pedagogy.
1 have engaged the students in the kind of textual negotiations that she
recommended in order to preserve the maximum level of aesthetic appreciation, while
41
attempting to reduce the potential for the reproduction of sexist perspectives evident in
the older literature and in their own ideologically-generated desires and fantasies.
My study also draws heavily from Walkerdine s (1984), which further addressed
the psychoanalytic implications of a text on gender identity. Walkerdine (1984) drew
from Freudian and Lacanian theor} to investigate the coercive power of texts in the
shaping of desire and the production of gendered subjectivities. Her work shows an
understanding of gender as constructed within a romantic ideology based on a
male/female dualism. This dualism involves a definition of ‘masculinity’ characterized
by power, authority, and aggression; and a definition of ‘femininity’ characterized by
compliance with subordination, sexual passivity, a focus on beauty, and an
accommodation to the interests and desires of men. She argued that such definitions are
shaped by and also maintain the patriarchal gender order. She also pointed out that it is
through romantic and pre-romantic discourse and the story lines embedded in them that
young girls learn how to position themselves correctly inside this male/female dualism.
Davies (1993) explains this in the following way:
Because story provides a substantial and detailed manifestation of the culture, it is through story that readers can learn the patterns of desire appropriate for their gender. They discover what positions are available to members of their sex and how to live the detail of those positionings as they come to understand and take up as their own, the particular patterns of desire relevant to their gender. Learning the appropriate patterns of desire enables young women to voluntarily and uncritically take up the subject positions made available to them in the patriarchal gender order and thus to become other’ to the men in their world (p. 145).
For Walkerdine (1984), texts engage with the kinds of wish fulfillment issues
discussed by Freud (1908)in his analysis and are strategically connected with the
dynamics of the family. She also approached fiction from within the Lacanian tradition,
not as a mere set of images but as an ensemble of textual devices for engaging the
reader in this fantasy. These textual devices permit the working out and potential
42
resolution of certain conflicts and allow the reader’s engagement with the heroine in the
texts. Because the fantasies created in texts play upon wishes already present in the
lives of the readers, the resolutions offered will relate to their own desires.
Breaking with a sociological account o f gender, which maintains that there is a
fixed gender identity that is internalized, Walkerdine (1984) argued that gender is
constructed and not static. She (1984) explored the way that girls are prepared for entry
into heterosexual practices and in particular for romantic love through the theme of
“someday my prince will come,” accomplishing this by examining some aspects of the
ideological preparation for adolescent sexuality in children’s fiction, particularly girls’
comics. She used comics as a vehicle to discuss the relation between the psychic
production of feminine desire and cultural forms and practices. Walkerdine (1984) used
comics as a powerful form which offers guidelines as to how young girls may prepare
themselves to be good enough to win the glittering prize—the man, the home, the
adventure etc. Comics accomplish this at a level that the alternative image cannot
reach: the level of desire. Girls’ comics engage readers at a psychological level because
they engage with the production of girls’ conscious and unconscious desires. They do
this by luring readers through textual devices to engage with a forlorn heroine, who
through selflessness and virtue, overcomes adversities and is rewarded with the prince.’
Walkerdine (1984) claimed that it is here that the girls are produced as victims ready to
be saved, and ultimately rewarded through entry into Freud’s (1908) longed for happy
family. They are also taught that their victory, like that of the heroines, will depend on
their passivity and helpfulness. The reward for her good deeds is to be taken out of her
misery and freed by the prince. As Walkerdine pointed out (1984), the semiotic chain
slides into romance as the solution, with the prince as savior.
Because Walkerdine (1984) believed that texts coerce readers at the level of
desire, she stressed the importance of the power o f fantasy in the construction of female
43
desire, for the development of feminist strategies for change. In “Someday My Prince
Will Come,” Walkerdine (1984) argued that the simple realism o f much anti-sexist
literature used to counter damaging textual coercions, is likely to fail at reaching girls.
She explained that such literature assumes a passive or rationalist reader who will
change as a result of receiving “the correct information about how things really are”
(p. 164). She reasoned that an attempt to extend thinking beyond stereotyping through
in-depth discussion and books, films and ads that present broader images of what girls
and boys are really like, does not guarantee transformation. Further, Walkerdine
claimed that such appeals to reason assume that when the girl sees the veil of distortion
lifted from her eyes, she too will want to engage in those activities from which she has
been forbidden by virtue of her gender. Because fantasies of resolving psychic conflicts
such as those offered in fiction are powerful, proffering resolutions and meeting the
needs and fantasies of identity and wholeness, Walkerdine suggested that effective
counter strategies must also work at the level of desire.
Walkerdine’s psychoanalytic theories have had an enormous impact on my
study. Her ideas have helped me to understand the ineffectiveness of some feminist
intervention, particularly with adolescent girls who resist a reasoned attempt to shift
actions and aspirations when the consequences may be a loss of sexual desirability
and/or the longed- for fantasy resolution (Lewis, 1990). Understanding the struggle in
which the girls were engaged helped me to focus on the location of their struggles and
attempt to address the circumstances of their desires. In my in-depth interviews with
the focus group members, I was able to address the conflicts that arose in their
responses to the literature as a result of the contradictory messages they have received
about how men and women should behave. And, in examining current practices, I was
able to begin to explore the constitution of femininity and masculinity as not fixed or
appropriate but struggled over in a complex, relational dynamic.
44
Martino’s (1995) psychoanalytic approach was especially important to my study
because he is male and the focus o f his work is on the effects of patriarchal texts on
boys. Martino (1995) has used poststructuralist and psychoanalytic understandings of
subjectivity to propose deconstructive strategies for an emancipatory pedagogy for
males as well as females. Martino (1995) specifically considered how teachers might
deal with questions of masculinity formation in the literature classroom.
Drawing from feminist poststructuralist and psychoanalytic theory, Martino
(1995) argued that because textual practices have a part to play in the structuring and
regulation of masculine and feminine identity formations, we need to move beyond
what he calls “a gender bind based on a dominant hegemonic version of masculinity
which functions as an oppressive regime for both girls and women and boys and men”
(p. 205). Martino (1995) agreed with Davies (1992) about the need to “make visible the
constitutive force of discourse if we are to create fissures in the absoluteness of the
apparent naturalness of a dominant masculinity” (p. 15) and foreground its oppression
of men and women, boys and girls. His objective has been to raise awareness of the
constructedness of masculinity and femininity as gendered categories. In addition, his
goal has been to advocate a pedagogical practice elaborating other spaces where
alternative subject positions for girls and boys can be constituted, and his research with
high school boys has suggested that such an approach would bring about desired results.
Martino (1995) recommended adopting specific practices to construct a counter-
hegemonic social space within which alternative masculine and feminine identities can
be articulated. Among these are:
Encouraging students to examine how texts position them to respond in particular ways; encouraging students to question, challenge and reflect on their own positioning; encouraging students to consider gendered positions outside a “phallocentric Symbolic order” (Lacan, 1977), and to consider alternative ways of meaning making (Martino, 1995, p.212).
45
His strategies were particularly helpful to me in discussions of Washington Square.
“The Gentle Lena” and “The Untold Lie,” in which I attempted to have students
deconstruct patriarchal discourses.
Poststructuralist Gender Theorists
The investigations of gender carried out by Butler (1999/1990) and Davies
( 1992) have grounded my study and also informed some of the specific investigations in
which I engaged with students. Through the work of these theorists, I was drawn to
consider how gender is socially constructed.
In Gender Trouble Butler (1999/1990) made the case that there is no underlying,
fixed gender reality. She drew from Foucault (1980), who argued previously that the
body is not sexed in any significant sense prior to its determination within a discourse
throughout which it becomes invested with the idea of natural or essential sex (p. 117).
Butler (1999) argued that gender is social artifice, and that “what we take to be an
‘internal’ feature of ourselves is one that we anticipate and produce through certain
bodily acts. . . ’’ (p. xv). These bodily acts, or performances, include dress, action,
movement, and language. When we behave in a gendered way, claimed Butler, we are
not enacting something that is already fixed in the world, but rather actually constituting
it, or creating the social fiction that these gender differences exist separately from the
acts and deeds with which they are inextricably connected.
Davies (1992) also investigated the social construction of gender. She asserted
that gender is constructed through language as two binary categories hierarchically
arranged in reaction to each other. She argued that the separation of individuals into
binary categories is an idea, a metaphysical fiction, rather than an essential fact of
human existence. She further argued that “the masculine/feminine binary is held
together because we come to see it as the way the world is and therefore ought to be.
According to Davies (1992), the active taking up of oneself as male or female, dominant
46
or passive, is a complex process. It must be understood if we are to recognize and
deconstruct the binaries in our lived experience, “ if we want to read the ways in which
the culture inscribes itself on the inner and outer body,” (p. II). Davies recommended
reading against the grain, and, through the process o f deconstruction, making visible the
dependence of the dominant category in the binary (dominant) on the subordinate
category (passive). According to Davies (1992), this activity would show the
oppositional and exclusionary nature of the binary, and dismantle the hierarchy that
often privileges characteristics attributed to males over those attributed to females. She
argued that when the binary is disrupted, each person will see the multiple ways they
are positioned and they position each other. She claimed that this would open up
opportunities for replacing dominant colonizing discourses with multiple perspectives
and multiple ways of seeing the world. Thus, according to Davies (1992), the dominant
and the passive are not in a hierarchical but a complementary relationship.
Davies (1992) recommended a two-step process for the envisioning of another
reality. Step one is to engage in deconstructive work to undo the bonds of already
existing discursively constructed worlds. Step two is to focus on the imaginative
construction of worlds other than those we already inhabit. She claimed that
To see within that process the power of binary thought to constitute you as one and not the other (passive and not dominant) . . . and thus to make you separate from the other, yet taking your meaning and value in relation to that binary pair, is where the really radical work of poststructuralist practice begins (p 12).
In my specific analyses of the masculine and feminine characteristics defining
the male and female characters in The Great Gatsbv and Their Eves Were Watching
God. I engaged students in the deconstruction of the binaries employed in the
stereotyping of male and female characters, and the imbalance of power among the
males and females in those novels.
47
I drew upon Davies’ (1992) poststructuralist theories and those of Butler
(1999) in designing the critical approaches and strategies to be employed in the
investigation of students’ responses and the deconstruction of patriarchal textual
relationships and ideologies. I also juxtaposed these theories with feminist theories of
Fetterley (1978) and Bogdan (1990; 1992; 1997) to stimulate dialogic investigations of
gender construction with selected students.
In addition to reader response and feminist theory, my study, which involves
curriculum development, is also informed by the field of critical pedagogy.
Critical Pedagogv
Critical pedagogy is theoretically founded on a several theories: first generation
Frankfurt School critical theory; Gramsci's concept of hegemony and counter-
hegemonic practice, and Freire’s educational theory and practice of ‘conscientization’
(Luke, 1992, p. 27). According to Luke (1992), Frankfurt School theorists reacted to
the rationalist and technicist oppression of the culture industries (school, media etc.) of
western culture. They argued that “the practice of de-reification of personal and
political emancipation, was through negative critique: that is, the negation of false
consciousness through ideology critique’’ (p. 27). Gramsci, promoting dialectical
thinking for contesting ideological positions and historical conditions, attempted to
emancipate the working class poor from ruling class oppression. He posited that “all
have the potential to assume a counter-hegemonic position from which to articulate the
values and interests of a subordinate group ” (Gramsci in Luke, p. 27). By envisioning
an education to develop the critical consciousnesses of the disenfranchised peasantry,
Freire (1990/1973) provided “the means by which men and women deal critically and
creatively with reality and discover how to participate in and transform their world ”
(Schaull in Freire, p. 15).
48
Freire (1990) influenced my study because of his notion of education for critical
consciousness, or conscientization. Conscientization “refers to learning to perceive
social, political and economic contradictions, and to take action against the oppressive
elements of reality” (p. 10). Freire (1990) was particularly interested in developing
pedagogy designed to empower the underclasses so that all of the power no longer
exists with only the dominant class. The development of this kind of pedagogy,
according to Freire (1990), is dependent on the authority of the teacher. Freire (1987)
argued that “without authority it is difficult for the liberties of the students to be shaped”
(p. 91). He further argued that “the teacher has a plan, a program, a goal for the study”
(p. 172). However, although Freire argued that education is always directive, he
believed that authority has its foundation in a dedication to students’ freedom.
Grounded in the notion that there is no such thing as a neutral educational
process, his method promotes education as the practice of freedom— “the means by
which men and women deal critically and creatively with reality and discover how to
participate in and transform their world” (Schaull in Freire, p. 15). Freire’s (1990)
conviction was that every human being
is capable of looking critically at his world in a dialogical encounter with others. Provided with the proper tools for such encounter, he [and she] can gradually perceive his [or her] personal and social reality as well as the contradictions in it, become conscious of his [or her] own perception of that reality, and deal critically with it (p. 13).
When this happens in the process of learning to read, claimed Freire, men [and women]
discover that they are creators of culture, and that all their work can be creative” (p.15).
My impetus to lead students to address the inequities in the literature that
reflects and consititues our current ways of thinking about gender is drawn directly
from Freire’s (1990/1973) emancipatory pedagogy. I applied the methods of
challenging inequities of class to those involving gender. In my attempt to develop a
dialogical praxis, I adapted Freire’s conscientization, "which embodies a
49
developmentally sequenced problem-posing education, in which students and teachers
move from magical through naive to critical consciousness . . (p. 156). In addition, I
have focused on helping students to perceive the contradictions in their perspectives.
Though also concerned predominantly with issues o f class, Shor (1980) dealt
directly with gender issues and offers concrete suggestions for educators with examples
taken from his own educational practice. Calling his practice a “ liberatory pedagogy”
(p. 95), Shor, like Freire, was dedicated to transcending an oppressive social order by
searching for transformative resources in a society characterized by an “absence o f
critical options in every day life” (p. 217). While Freire (1987) argued that education
“has a directive nature we cannot deny” (p. 172), Shor (1980) argued that in a liberatory
classroom, “the teacher seeks to withdraw as the director of learning” (p. 90).
In his groundbreaking work. Critical Teaching And Evervdav Life. Shor (1980)
addressed the issue of sexism. Dealing with the underdevelopment of consciousness
about the inequities of marriage and the sexist attitudes imbedded in the social interstice
of the institution, he investigated the expectations inherent in the male and female
perspectives about relationship and marriage. For my study, I borrowed some of the
experiential methods that Shor (1980) used to liberate his students through a critical
pedagogy. By directing students toward a critical orientation approach to daily life, I
too attempted to “abstract false consciousness so that students could reflect on and
transcend the ideas, language, behavior and institutions which limit them” (p. 241). As
Shor (1980) was successful at helping students to come to terms with the burdens of
marriage for the males and females in his class, I adopted his method of using role-play
in an attempt to liberate my students. I specifically borrowed his method of assigning
letter writing between students and characters for my discussion of the sexism and
double standards in The Great Gatsbv. I adopted his method of identifying and listing
characters’ traits to emphasize the differences in the portrayal of the two sexes as well.
50
I also used his experiential methods for the discussion of “The Untold Lie” by staging
imaginary discussions and arguments between literary characters whose voices had
been silenced.
Freire (1990/1973) and Shor (1980) attempted to delineate specific guidelines
for carrying out a critical pedagogical practice in the classroom. Giroux’s (1981, 1984,
1988, 1991) focus has been on the articulation of a political vision drawn from Freire,
Neo-Marxism and the Critical Theory of the Frankfurt School (Gore, 1993). Rather
than identifying specific instructional practices directed at liberating students from class
constraints, he emphasized a critique of social injustices related to class inequities and,
more recently, iniquities relating to race and gender. His work, then, directed to the
articulation of a broader educational theory, “ is aimed at enabling teachers to develop
their own critical pedagogy rather than specific instructional practices” (p. 42). Giroux
and McLaren (1989) articulated a vision for teachers to help them to “create a
politicized citizenry capable of fighting for various forms of public life and informed by
a concern for equality and social justice” (p. 158). Giroux (1988) explained his project
by arguing that his work represents
a particular way of seeing, a view of theory as a form of practice, one that rejects the fetish of defining the practical as the flight from theoretical concerns. . .. Theory as a form of practice points to the need for constructing a critical discourse to both constitute and reorder the nature of our experiences and the objects of our concerns so as to both enhance and further empower the ideological conditions for a radical democracy (p. 36).
Giroux’s (1988) aim was to “help illuminate the specifics of oppression and the
possibilities for democratic struggle and renewal for those educators who believe that
schools and society can be changed and that their individual and collective actions can
make a difference” (p. 36).
Giroux (1981) pointed out that for critical theorists, the analysis of every day
taken-for-granted common sense practices, instead of being treated as “given” , must be
51
viewed within historical and societal relations that are produced and socially
constructed (p. 322). He called this practice “ideology critique” (p. 322). Giroux
emphasized the importance of “ideology critique” in relation to cultural texts (films and
books). He argued for the use of critique to go beyond deconstruction of the texts to a
reconstruction that serves radical needs of rebalancing the balance of power in society
in terms of race, class and gender.
My intention to develop critical consciousness, and in particular, focus attention
on the ideologies and contradictions that limit and oppress boys and girls, derives in part
from Giroux’s (1981: 1988, 1991) work. In my investigations of the literature with the
students in my study, I utilize his practice of “ideology critique” to develop a gender-
politicized citizenry capable of fighting for various forms of public life, and informed
by a concern for equality and social justice. Like Giroux (1991), I attempted to develop
a critical pedagogy which involves “providing students with the opportunity to develop
the critical capacity to challenge and transform existing social and political forms’’ (p.
47). One of my goals was to identify the tools (Giroux, 1991) with which to empower
students by raising their awareness of marginalization and the silencing of voices in and
out of literature.
Feminists have borrowed from these democratizing pedagogical approaches to
formulate an educational project designed to dismantle patriarchal metanarratives,
emancipate female subjects from limiting and disempowering structures, and create “a
vision of the world which might be otherwise” through “discourses of possibility”
(Kenway and Modra, 1992, p. 138).
Whether attempting to challenge unequal access, reconceptualize curricula, terminate exploitive practices, protest social injustice, dismantle male-dominated hierarchies or deconstruct patriarchal discourses of power, critical feminist pedagogues share a commitment to a form of politics directed toward ending the social arrangements which lead women to be “other than, less than, put down, or put upon” (p. 139).
52
Feminist pedagogy, critical by nature, emerged from a discontent with the
patriarchy of schooling and with mainstream masculinist educational discourses, the
analyses of which was connected to the feminist movements (Gore, 1992). It is founded
on the notion that women are located unequally in the social formation, often devalued,
exploited and oppressed; it is also founded on the notion that educational systems are
complicit in this oppression.
According to Kenway and Magda (1992), the remedy is to educate for change
by disseminating alternative forms of non-discriminatory and empowering practices
“which may challenge schooling’s complicity in reproducing gendered inequality” (p.
141). Luke (1992) supported this perspective, pointing out that “ if the text and
experience of schooling [were] changed (elimination o f sexism), the students’ lives and
the society would be changed for the better (Luke, p. 27).
According to Gore (1992), feminist pedagogy “implies both instructional
practices and social visions” (p. 15). As Lusted (1986) has asserted, it is concerned
with what is taught, how it is taught, and how it is learned. It involves the many
dimensions of the teaching/learning process and the curriculum in use “as teacher, text
and students interact to produce both intended and unintended learnings” (Kenway and
Modra 1992, p. 141).
Ethical Theories
Because I have adopted Booth’s (1988) judgment that gender bias and inequality
in literary representation and in life are ethical concerns, I have also sought theoretical
support from narrative ethicists and from social imagination theorists whose work is
based on ethical concerns.
Narrative Ethicists
Booth (1988) provided a rationale for the investigation and development of
character through engagement with narrative. In The Companv We Keep: An Ethics of
53
Fiction, he dealt with the ethics of representation of characters and their unfolding. This
approach incorporated an investigation of how the reader becomes engrossed in what
Booth (1988) calls a “friendship” (p. 201) with the implied author, and a consideration
of the cost of an engagement with literature which determines who the reader is to be
for the duration of their reading experience. By asking the reader to consider what
ethos must be shared for this friendship to happen, and what responsibility exists in such
a friendship. Booth required the reader to wonder “if the pattern of life that this would-
be friend offers, is one that friends might well pursue together?” (p. 222).
Consequently, he asked the readers to investigate their own ethical perspectives, and
forces them to become cognizant of the ethical implications of this relationship.
Central to my inquiry, and drawn from Booth (1988), were questions that
demanded consciousness of the reader’s cultural and ethical situatedness in relation to
the authorial or narrative perspective on gender issues. I was interested in exploring the
ethical implications of an alliance with Anderson who, in “The Untold Lie,” lures the
reader to sympathize with male characters by means of damaging, stereotypical
representations of women and marriage.
Booth’s (1998) approach helped me to lead students to make distinctions
between authors whose gender representations were problematic due to a kind of sexism
representative o f an earlier time, and authors who attempt to “display to us the
complexity, the indeterminacy, the sheer difficulty of moral choice” (Nussbaum in
Booth, p. 288). As we learned during the study, gender-conscious authors such as
James in Washington Square and Hemingway in “Hills Like White Elephants ” often
constructed situations in which gender inequities were displayed, as a way to “insist that
we see what these people are doing to each other ” (p. 287). In these cases, the
characters may have been acting in a sexist manner, but the conscious author was
54
critiquing that behavior. I borrowed from Booth to foster students’ ability to
differentiate between these two situations.
Booth’s (1988) approach also aided me in providing an alternative to either the
students’ unconsidered rejection of a character, or their wholesale, unreflective adoption
of him or her as hero/heroine. By engaging in an ethical evaluation of a character’s
and/or an implied author's perspective, I hoped to help students to gain critical
perspective and become what Booth (1988) calls characters in process—readers who
engage in the kind o f reflection which leads them toward self awareness and,
potentially, a more conscious life.
To move students toward an increasingly sophisticated level of ethical
consideration of .texts, Nussbaum (1990) suggested identifying the story teller and
asking such questions as ‘Who is speaking here?’ and ‘How does he or she address
others in the text?’ She also suggested asking “certain large scale structural questions . .
. about the role o f the hero or heroine, and the nature of the reader’s identification’’ (p.
35). Asking such questions, Nussbaum (1990) argued, allows the teacher to move the
investigation beyond a simple discussion of plot, character content and theme and
toward an analysis of the ideological implications of the texts.
Since one of my goals was to raise students’ awareness o f the ethical
implications of sexist representations and androcentric textual ideologies, I attempted to
promote, with Nussbaum (1990), “the teachable moment . . . when a reader breaks
ethically with the characters representing divergent ethical positions’’ (p.32). I adopted
Nussbaum’s (1990) questions in my discussion of The Great Gatsbv about the
relationship of the author, the narrator, the characters and the reader in order to
encourage an ethical analysis of the novel and their response to it.
I was also influenced by Newton ‘s (1995) narrational ethics, which he defined
as “the formal design of the story telling act, the distribution of relations among teller,
55
tale and persons told” (p. 25). Like Booth (1988), he dealt with the ethical
consequences of the reciprocal claims binding teller, listener, witness and reader in the
process of reading. Newton’s (1995) focus on “the cost incurred in fictionalizing of
oneself or others by exchanging person for character” (p. 18), inspired questions that I
posed to students in my investigation of the ethics of the representation of male and
female characters. Newton’s (1995) focus on representational ethics (the way in which
an author portrays characters) also prompted discussions about the appropriateness with
which men have represented women and vice versa in the literature studied.
Similarly, Johnson (1993) attempted to locate morality within a dialectic
involving reason, passion, imagination and experience. Like Bakhtin (1981), Johnson
(1993) emphasized the need for a dialectical play of competing views and traditions for
the optimal moral education. He recommended giving voice to competing moral
philosophies, and working through alternatives to discover the best approaches to
solving problems, calling for a dialectical approach to the literature to protect a tentative
and non-dogmatic attitude toward life’s bewildering multiplicities. According to
Johnson (1993), “morality defines the arena of reflection and engaged-exploration of
possible actions in which the self struggles continually both to find and to form its
identity within the mass of ends it finds itself pursuing” (p. 147).
Drawing again from Dewey (1922), Johnson’s (1993) definition of self is not a
fixed one, but one which is in process—a developing self. In his view, the self develops
its identity by “inhabiting characters embedded within socially shared roles and by
creatively appropriating those roles, even to the point of co-authoring new ones” (p.
151). With Kohlberg (1976, 1980, 1985) and several social imagination theorists
(Edmiston, 1999; Heathcote, 1984 and O ’Neill, 1995), he argued that developing
morally is equated with an ability to be able to imagine oneself in the place of another.
Johnson (1993) argued that
56
[ujnless we can put ourselves in the place o f another, unless we can enlarge our own perspective through an imaginative encounter with the experience of others, unless we can let our own values and ideals be called into question from various points of view, we cannot be morally sensitive (p. 199).
He further suggested that humans develop through time and may only come to know
who they are and who they might become by seeing how it is that they play various
roles, inhabit various characters, or create new characters by an ongoing process that is
never completed during one’s lifetime and beyond.
Because of Johnson's (1993) location of morality within a dialectic involving
reason, passion, imagination, and experience, his emphasis on empathetic projection
into the experiences of others has formed the theoretical basis o f many of the social
imagination activities and dialectical processes I used in the class/study.
Social Imagination Theorists
In Releasing the Imagination. Greene (1995) wrote that “the imagination is
what, above all, makes empathy possible ” (p. 4). It enables us, she claimed, to cross the
empty spaces between ourselves and others, permits us to give credence to alternative
realities, and allows us to break with the taken-for-granted to set aside familiar
distinctions and definitions. Greene (1995) emphasized the social importance of the
imagination, claiming its capacity to invent visions of what should be and might be in
our deficient society. She reminded us of Jean Paul Sartre’s declaration that “it is on the
day that we can conceive of a different state of affairs that a new light falls on our
troubles and our suffering, and we decide that these things are unbearable” (Sartre in
Greene, p. 5). This idea is shared by Gilligan (1982), Kohlberg (1976; 1980; 1985),
Noddings (1984), and Johnson (1993). Like Johnson (1993), Greene emphasized a need
for an imaginative and empathetic projection into the experiences o f other people.
Basically, social imagination theorists use educational drama, creative writing,
music, and/or art to interpret literature or investigate ethical issues raised by the
57
literature. Social imagination activities, and particularly educational drama, allow
students to investigate issues from within the literature by adopting the roles of the
characters or those of imagined experts or authorities who may shed light on the issues
raised by the text. Conversations between characters who do not speak to each other in
a story, abstract artistic renderings of textual situations, and letters written from the
reader or an imagined expert to a character can elucidate themes and textual
implications and ideologies unnoticed by other methods of interpretation.
Because my study was based on the premise that moral activity is equated with a
heightened ability to envision new possibilities for gender equality in literature, I used
drama, creative writing and art to foster an imaginative and empathetic projection into
the experiences of literary characters. I selected these methods in order to lead the
students toward an awareness of sexism in the literature to conceive of a different state
of affairs for their literary response and their lives. In adopting social imagination
activities. I was influenced by O’Neill (1995), Heathcote (1984, 1995), and Edmiston
(1998,1999).
O’Neill (1995), calling her practice “process drama, ” created the opportunity for
students to engage in dialogues with characters from within literary texts. In these
dialogues, students experience those dilemmas experienced by literary characters, and
envision new possibilities for the characters, themselves, and others. Students thus
become “not merely consumers but producers o f texts” (p. 44). Because “it is
invariably the deepest concerns of their own lives that participants discover in the
drama” (p. 4), I specifically employed role improvisations taken from O ’Neill (1995) in
order to invite students to negotiate more intensively with gender representations and
ideological positions in the texts. Further, for “The Untold Lie,” I specifically drew
from O ’Neill’s (1995) concept of the teacher in role’, through which the teacher and
the students work together inside the text to solve a problem they share. I engaged
58
specific students in discussions designed to investigate the patriarchal point of view in
the story.
O'Neill (1995) built on the work of Heathcote (1984), an innovator in the field
o f educational drama. According to O ’Neill (1995), Heathcote s purpose in using
drama “is to release students into a new awareness of what they already know but don’t
yet realize they know” (p. 91). According to Heathcote (1984), role-play “catches
[students] in a ’moment of authenticity’ of real choice and real concern, where they are
thinking from within a real dilemma rather than just discussing the dilemma . . . ” (p.
119). Heathcote developed the approach, the mantle o f the expert (1984, 1995), in
which students and teachers take on the roles of experts in an attempt to investigate
social and literary situations. Using her mantle of the expert stance, I followed in
Heathcote s (1984)) dramatic approach o f “shattering the human experience into new
understanding” using drama (p. 122). I have drawn specifically from Edmiston (1999)
as I put the mantle o f the expert stance to use in my investigation of the gender issues in
The Great Gatsbv. Edmiston (1999) also informed the zirt and drama activities I used
for the study of Their Eves Were Watching God.
Often overlapping, these various reader response approaches, and the feminist,
ethical and critical pedagogical perspectives provided the theoretical grounding and
framework for my study. Ethicists such as Booth (1988) and psychoanalytic feminists
such as Walkerdine (1984) are in agreement with respect to textual coercion. My
attempts to investigate textual positionings through an investigation of the narrative can
be attributed to both. In addition, the focus on students’ contradictions about
investments in a hierarchical system is suggested by psychoanalytic feminists (Davies,
1992 and Harper, 2000) as well as critical pedagogists (Ereire, 1990/1973; Giroux
(1981: 1988 and Shor, 1980). The use of drama to highlight silenced characters or
marginalized perspectives for a broadened interpretation of the text reflects the work of
59
poststructuralists, feminists, ethicists, critical theorists, and reader response theorists, all
o f whom share a desire to bring about multivoiced interpretations which a textual
openness would insure.
Part II: Review of Related Research Studies
Introduction
In conducting this examination of students' responses to sexism in classic
American literature, and the effects of various strategies designed to develop critical,
gender-conscious approaches to reading older texts, I had few classroom studies to use
as models for the approach I hoped to develop. In fact, there were no critical feminist
studies conducted with students reading classic texts in co-educational high school
literature classrooms. However, my research was informed by gender-related studies of
classroom practice, including two high school studies involving a feminist approach to
girls and reading, and several feminist studies of single and mixed gendered college
literature classrooms. In addition, there have been studies on adolescent culture and
schooling that have informed my study.
Gender and Adolescent Culture
Among studies conducted by researchers who investigate adolescent culture.
Brown and Gilligan (1992), Gilligan (1989), and Pipher (1994) have noted that
adolescent girls are literally and figuratively losing their voices in American society
today. In her study of the Emma Willard School in New York, Gilligan (1989) found
that pre-adolescent girls, having learned to see the world as a network of human
connections rather than as a hierarchical organization, experience a crisis o f confidence
and self esteem in their teenage years. Brown and Gilligan (1992) in their related four-
year study of 100 girls at the Laurel School (Cleveland, Ohio), further concluded that
“ [wjomen’s psychological development within patriarchal societies and male-voiced
60
cultures is inherently traumatic,” (p. 216) resulting in a disconnection from themselves
and other women in favor of protecting their relationships with members of opposite
sex. In this study, they found that girls, through the process of adolescence, lose their
ability to be confident and outspoken, dismiss the value of their own experiences,
modulate their voices, and find themselves tentative and unsure, powerless and all alone
(p. 217).
Pipher ( 1994) also turned her attention to female adolescence in contemporary
America through a metaphor connecting adolescent girls with Hamlet’s Ophelia.
Pipher’s (1994) study suggested that, like Ophelia, who drowns herself in response to a
loss of Polonius’ guidance and Hamlet’s love, today's teenage girls are also drowning in
a culture that provides impossible standards of behavior and appearance. Through a
series of case studies drawn from her psychology practice, Pipher drew on high school
girls’ discussions of their lives, friends, school, parents, boyfriends, and experiences
with eating disorders, depression, self-mutilation, sexual pressure, the media, and
parents’ divorce. She concluded that very few role models exist for teenage girls today,
and that just at the time when they most need parents, they are encouraged to break
away from the family.
As Reviving Ophelia (Pipher, 1994) offered stories depicting the difficulties
faced by girls navigating through adolescence. Pollack (1998) presented his findings
from his twenty-year clinical psychology practice and a study examining the ways
contemporary boys manifest their social and emotional disconnection. Drawing a
parallel to Pipher’s (1994) book, and playing off the Hamlet metaphor. Pollack (1998)
also addressed what he calls Hamlet’s curse, investigating depression, suicide and
violence in boys. Pollack (1998) addressed a phenomenon that he calls a “boy code,”
which sets up an expectation for male behavior and demands that they mask their
61
emotions. Pollack also found that the boys in his study are lonely, depressed, and
struggling like girls, with a need to be listened to and understood:
Adam was doing what I find so many boys do: he was hiding behind a mask, and using it to hide his deepest thoughts and feelings—his real self- -from everyone, even the people closest to him. This mask o f masculinity enabled Adam to make a bold (if inaccurate) statement to the world: “I can handle it. Everything’s fine. I’m invincible.” (p. 5)
Pollack! 1998) addressed the male experience, and the emotional challenges of
adolescence, sharing stories of struggles with a socially constructed masculinity, self
esteem, relationships with parents, sexuality, school and sports. Drawing from his
cases, he suggested ways in which parents, coaches, teachers and mentors could make
necessary connections with the boys and ease the pain of the developmental process.
His work shed light on the male experience, which was helpful in my study o f co
educational classrooms.
Gender and Schooling
In recent years, there have been several studies conducted to investigate the
impact of the U.S. educational system on boys and girls. There have been two studies
(1992: 1999) conducted by the American Association o f University Women (AAUW),
and one study by Sadker and Sadker (1994) that have specifically addressed the ways in
which curriculum and instruction have privileged boys.
Sadker and Sadker’s (1994) study found that boys are privileged in the
classroom, control classroom conversation, and receive the lion’s share of teacher time
and attention. When teachers go about instruction as usual, boys dominated discussions
and called out questions and comments eight times more often than girls; “girls who
know the answer are more likely to wait to be called on, while males are more likely to
shout out” (p. 269). The researchers stressed the need for teachers to become even more
deliberate about finding classroom strategies to turn these statistics around. Otherwise,
there is a continuation of the message that girls’ words are worth less than boys’ words.
62
In their study of gender bias in textbooks, Sadker and Sadker (1994) found that
“from history to the sciences, students may still learn about a world of male
accomplishment . . . but women continue to make only a rare appearance” (p. 175).
With regard to literature, Sadker and Sadker (1994) argued that boys enjoy being the
featured figures in most of the literature (p. 197). They claimed that teachers have only
recently begun to address the issue that the literary works selected have focused
primarily on males, providing few female role models for girls. In addition, they
pointed out that all through school “girls listen repeatedly to sexist themes” in the
classics that are regularly assigned.
Sadker and Sadker’s (1994) findings were corroborated by the 1992 AAUW
report. How Schools Shortchange Girls, which concluded that schools did not offer girls
an education of the same quality or quantity of that given boys. The AAUW report
addressed issues of classroom attention, citing that girls received less teacher attention
than boys, received less challenging interaction with their teachers than boys, and,
received less constructive feedback from teachers than boys. They cited further
instances of gender bias in the design and construction of standardized tests; a growing
gap separating boys and girls in achievement in science; the continued tokenism,
omission and stereotyping of girls in the curriculum; and texts and lessons in which
female role models were conspicuously absent.
This AAUW (1992) report highlighted Applebee’s (1989) study of book-length
works taught in high school English courses in which he reported that in a national
sample of public, independent and Catholic schools, the ten books assigned most
frequently included only one written by a woman. Applebee’s (1989) report stated that
these findings represented little change in overall balance from similar lists 25 or 80
years ago. According to the AAU’̂ '̂ (1992) report, Applebee’s findings are important in
view of Campbell and Wirtenburg’s review (1980) of research on how books influence
63
children. Their review cited twenty-three studies demonstrating that books do transmit
values to readers; and that sex-role stereotyping was reduced in those students whose
curriculum portrayed females and males in non-stereotypical roles (AAUW, 1992, p.
108)
The AAUW (1999) follow-up study. Gender Gaps: Where Schools Still Fail Our
Children, confirmed that public schools are making progress. However, the report
stated that the goal of uniform educational standards has not been effectively linked to
the revised equity concerns—the recognition that particular groups may need different
things from their education to achieve the same standards. According to the study, the
existence of stereotypes in textbooks is still problematic.
Gender and Reading
Research on response to literature includes the study of the act of reading, and
factors influencing that act, including individual readers’ activities, the influence of
interpretive communities, and the positioning of the reader as a result of linguistic and
textual ideology. Many of these studies, which investigate the differences between the
way men and women read, inform my study by providing information about gender and
reading. While acknowledging these findings, my study focuses on how teaching
approaches and strategies affect response, and whether or not gendered readings are
reduced when the emphasis is on a critical pedagogy which promotes gender equality
rather than on the differences in the way men and women read. Particularly germaine,
are studies on engagement, gendered reader-response, reader orientation and reading
communities.
Engagement
In their study, Pichart and Anderson (1977) found that identification with
particular characters shapes the way students interpret texts. Tierney and Pearson
(1983) suggested that alignments with characters influence readers’ interpretations.
64
These alignments also become part of the reader’s stance toward the reading act
(Tierney and Enciso. 1991).
Of particular importance to my study are the findings that suggest that when
readers empathize with particular characters, they tend to view conflict from that
character’s perspective (Golden & Guthrie, 1986). In addition, they will take on
thoughts and feelings as their own when they become engaged with the characters
(Enciso, 1994), and when they empathize with certain characters, they draw conclusions
or exonerate characters' negative behaviors on the basis of themes with which they are
familiar (Black and Siefert, 1985).
The significance for my study of a relationship between engagement with
characters and the reader’s exoneration of characters’ perspectives/behaviors, is that it
implies that without the implementation of a critical approach to reading, readers are
prone to accept the sexist perspectives of characters with whom they engage. Since
these studies support the theories that assert the ability of texts to coerce uncritical
readers into prescribed reading positions (Martino, 1995, Davies, 1992; Booth, 1988;
Walkerdine, 1984; Bakhtin, 1981), findings from these studies prompted me to
investigate critical approaches to reading in order to move my students beyond their
unreflective responses to literature.
Gendered Reader Response
In “Gender Interests in Reading and Language,” Bleich (1986) found that there
was a significant gender-related difference in response with regard to the narrative form.
While both sexes read lyric poetry similarly, men read prose fiction differently from the
way women read it. According to Bleich (1986),
[t]he salient parameter was the perception of the ‘voice’ in the literature.Men and women both perceived a strong lyric voice in the poetry, usually seeing it as the author’s voice, while in the narrative, men perceived a strong narrative voice, but women experienced the narrative as a ‘world,’ without a particularly strong sense that this world was narrated into existence” (p. 239).
65
In Bleich s view, men see the novel as a result of someone’s action while women “enter
the world of the novel, [and] take it as something ‘there’ for that purpose’’ (p. 239).
One of my goals was to help both males and females to be aware of the writer’s craft.
Flynn (1986), in “Gender and Reading, ” reported her study of the responses of
twenty-six men and twenty-six women to the reading of short stories by Joyce and
Hemingway. Flynn (1986) investigated the students’ reactions to the texts in terms of
their domination o f or domination by the texts. “ Either the reader resists the text and so
deprives it of its force {domination of), or the text overpowers the reader {domination
by) and so eliminates the reader’s power of discernment’’ (p. 268). Flynn (1986)
observed that the two responses are potentially interactive but are so far from revealing
meaningful engagement with the text that they represent minimal communication. A
meaningful reading experience would exist, stated Flynn (1986) when “self and other,
reader and text interact in a way that allows the reader to leam from the experience
without losing critical distance . . . ” (p. 268).
Flynn also found gender differences in reading comparable to Bleich’s (1986)
findings. Flynn (1986) stated that her study suggests that “male students sometimes
react to disturbing stories by rejecting them or by dominating them, a strategy, it seems,
that women don’t often employ” (p. 285). According to Day (1994) both Flynn and
Bleich found that “females were more comfortable with being confused during their
reading, or with groping toward a possible interpretation, while men expressed
frustration and anger (thence rejection) when they were confused” (p. 104).
Findings from other studies support Bleich’s (1986) and Flynn’s (1986)
conclusions that men and women read differently. Miner (1986) has confirmed the
influence of gender on interpretation. She found that “even when reading the same text,
women and men quite probably will respond to, connect with, and derive psychic
satisfaction from different aspects of the text” (p. 189).
66
Findings supporting gendered readings informed my study as I investigated the
ways in which responses change as a result of the kind of a critical practice. In a similar
way, studies on reader orientation also informed my study as they emphasized the
importance of the readers’ ideological orientations to their initial uncritical reader
response. These studies also served to elucidate the effects of critical pedagogy when
responses differed as a result of teaching strategies.
Reader Orientation
Beach (1993) studied the stances (ideological orientations) or subject positions
that students bring to their responses to literature. According to these studies,
“[s]students judge characters’ actions and infer thematic meanings according to their
beliefs and attitudes” (Beach, 1997). According to Beach (1997), in responding to more
'traditional' romance novels, students who bring feminist attitudes to these texts may be
critical of the heroine’s adherence to patriarchal values. Similarly, Buckingham (1993)
found that the responses of adolescent males are affected by the fear of being perceived
by peers as unmasculine. Cherland (1992) found that female adolescent readers adopt
gendered discourses based on either/or oppositions between 'good girl’ or 'saintly’
behaviors and 'bad girl’ or 'sinful’ behavior, and play on wishes and desires already
present in young lives (p. 5). Both male and female adolescent groups, then, adopt a
stance reflecting a discourse of gender difference that privileges a male perspective.
These studies are supported by a study of adolescents’ responses to stereotypical
portrayals of females in teenage magazine ads (Beach and Freedman, 1992). Here,
secondary school males described their responses in terms of metaphors o f domination
and male privilege (Beach, 1997). According to Beach (1997), “[f]ew students in the
study (male or female) were critical o f the gender stereotyping in the ads” (Beach,
1997). Beach concluded that some males expressed resistance to what they perceived
as feminist’ perspectives. These studies provided information about the importance of
67
the reader’s stance and orientation, and enlightened me to resistances that might affect
students’ capacity to negotiate with that literature.
In addition to these studies. Radway (1984) investigated 42 adult female readers
and their reading motivations, habits and rewards while reading romance novels.
According to McRobbie (1991), the study also has implications beyond popular
romance novels as it leads the reading theorist away from the understanding of the
centrality of the text and toward a recognition that texts do not simply assert their
meanings on unsuspecting readers (p. 139).
My awareness of the implications of the importance of a reader’s sexist attitudes
on his or her response was an important factor to be considered in a study designed to
evaluate the effectiveness of teaching approaches and strategies on response. In order
to design a critical pedagogy which would help to transform responses and lives, it was
important that 1 be aware of all of the influences which researchers determined to have
significant effects on readers’ gendered responses. The effect of reading communities
on response was another such influence.
Reading Communities
Research on reading communities has mainly been carried out by educators
interested in investigating the impact o f the group or the classroom on reader response.
Cherland (1992) focused specifically on how students navigated gender through
conversation in group conversations. Her findings were important to my study, because
they elucidated the effects of pedagogy on response.
Cherland’s (1994) study of the individual responses to sixth grade boys and girls
to young adult literature, identified ‘discourses of feeling’ and discourses of action’ in
the students’ responses. She described ‘discourses of feeling’ as those involving a focus
on emotion and human relationships and discourses of action as those focusing on plot.
According to Cherland (1992), respondents focusing on feeling talked of their own
68
emotional response to text and compared characters’ feelings with their own. On the
other hand, respondents using a discourse of action talked about the characters in terms
of what they did, not how they felt. While all students used both discourses, the girls in
the study used feeling predominantly and the boys used action predominantly. When
discussions were held with the mixed group, the students used action predominantly,
and when they were divided by gender and organized into single sex groups, the
discussions of the same novels were almost completely divided by feeling and action.
Though aware of the fact that Tannen (1990) gave numerous examples about
how male and female conversational strategies differ. Cherland drew from Gilbert
(1992) and Walkerdine s (1984) arguments that gender differences in response simply
reflect the learned positions people occupy in society. Cherland believed that gendered
reading took place because the students came into the classroom bringing their gendered
cultural beliefs about human relationships, and about what is of value in the story. She
also hypothesized that this evidence of gendered response was indicative of the way in
which cultural constraints work to maintain social inequalities and the gendered ways in
which men and women are positioned to read. Therefore, she sought to find
pedagogical reasons to minimize gendered readings, and pedagogical ways to address
the problem.
In comparing her study with others such as Eeds and Peterson (1991), Eeds and
Wells (1989), Cherland (1992), found an answer. In these studies, students had been
asked to work collaboratively to construct meaning from a text they had all read, and to
analyze the author’s craft by focusing on the text. In Cherland’s (1992) study, the
students worked alone and were only asked to give individual responses. She observed
that a pedagogy engaging students in a collaborative construction of meaning had
minimized the occurrences of gendered response in the aforementioned studies.
Cherland (1994) concluded that a pedagogy that engages students collaboratively and
69
transmits the norms of equality and of the collective creation of knowledge to students
is more likely to result in non-gendered responses.
Cherland’s (1994) study supported my belief that teaching approaches and
strategies minimize gendered responses due to her finding that responses are less likely
to be defined according to gender when students are asked to work collaboratively to
construct meaning from a text they had all read. Following Cherland’s (1992) findings,
I included strategies that provided opportunities for collaborative text-based analyses as
well as the personal response.
Cultural Criticism and Classroom Studies
My work has also been influenced by studies by several theorists interested in
how high school readers' cultural values and outlooks on gender shape responses to
literature. These studies have been of particular interest to me because of my focus on
gender and response in the high school literature classroom, and my interest in
identifying approaches that foster students’ gender consciousness and commitment to
gender equality.
Hines’ (1995 study of a high school American literature classroom illustrates
differences between new critical practices, transactional reader response techniques,
and cultural approaches that provide a personal transaction not only with the text but
also with the world. Her study also illustrates the value of linking the reading of texts
to the reading of selves, society and history (p. 247), instead of the search for “truth”
through literature. Hines (1995) promoted cultural criticism to encourage critical
examination of lived experiences, beliefs and material conditions of readers, writers and
textual characters. She recommended that teachers explore the nature of gender roles in
the communities found in the fiction (p. 252). Her goal was to promote a cultural
criticism where teachers use texts to explore issues of social justice involving race and
gender for a more just society.
70
Hines (1997), drawing from poststructuralist reader response criticism, argued
that “ texts . . . not only carry meanings, but also serve ideological functions in the
larger society” (p .131). Hines (1997) argued that “[bjecause our ways of reading are
always inherently linked to our ways of seeing society:, current approaches to texts can
be examined for the ways in which they explicitly and/or tacitly promote particular
conceptions of the world” (p. 121). She argued that students should be asked to see the
texts as social constructions so that they can question the underlying values in
themselves and in the texts. In this exchange, personal experience, opinion, and
popular culture infuse the ‘knowing’ of texts, thereby complicating and enriching the
discussion of the representation of men and women and relationships in various texts.
Gender issues, then, become a point of analysis, resulting in cultural criticism and the
interrogation of misogynistic forces that circulate in texts, media, toys, families, and
history. As a result, gender is ‘read’ as a complex, frequently conflicting set of material
and ideological forces, visible in institutions, sports, and families as well as in texts.
Rogers (1997), conducted a study in which she attempted to investigate the
effects of a pedagogy employing literature to critique or transform the society, rather
than one teaching the skills of reading as though readers were not themselves cultural
artifacts. In this study of a racially mixed and mixed gendered inner city eleventh grade
classroom, Rogers (1997) investigated teaching methods and responses. The students
and their teacher studied canonical American literature from an anthology, mixed with
some multicultural and popular cultural offerings that would provide an intertextual
context for racial and gender cultural issues, and serve the purpose of creating responses
and dialogue among students.
Rogers (1997) found that through the teacher’s gradual shift of textual
interpretive authority from herself to the reading community, and her encouragement of
students’ personal responses and connections to the larger social and cultural realm, she
71
was able to craft a community in which responses that reflected some risk-taking could
be voiced. Once this happened, students began to explore their own experiences as they
related to the text. The result was that students not only had a deeper understanding of
texts like The Great Gatsbv. but a better understanding o f how their circumstances
related to the cultural situations which produced characters such as Tom Buchanan and
Jay Gatsby.
Both of these studies informed my study through their focus on classic
American literature, including The Great Gatsbv. and their desire to effect a pedagogy
which would heighten critical consciousness and bring about social change for men and
women through literature. I was particularly influenced by Hines’ argument that
students should be asked to see the texts as social constructions, a strategy I adopted in
my course/study. My commitment to a pedagogy that would heighten gender
consciousness and transform the students’ lives led me to other studies that focused on
the effects of feminist strategies in the literature classroom. Among them were two
studies investigating the feminist dialogic classroom, and one study that focused on a
feminist dialogic approach to reading classic literature.
Feminist Dialogic Studies
In the dialogic classroom there is evidence of conflicting, competing meanings,
or what Bakhtin (1981) described as “heteroglossia.” The dialogic classroom is
characterized by ‘'relations among voices and a practice of actualizing multiple relations
among internally divergent voices” (Bialostosky in Beach, 1993, p. 112).
Focusing on two college classrooms. Pace and Townsend (1999) conducted
research in two college classrooms and noted different responses to the teaching of
Hamlet. They compared a discussion about Gertrude in a teacher-centered classroom
with one in a response-based classroom. In the teacher-centered classroom , the
responses to Gertrude and Hamlet stemmed from patterns o f thinking grounded in
72
stereotypes. The teacher assumed Hamlet’s perspective and analyzed the events
through Hamlet’s eyes. Thus, “Hamlet’s perspective was privileged, removed from
interrogation, and presented as though it were neutral and natural perspective, and
“representative of a universal truth” (p. 45). In this classroom, the teacher encouraged
his students to see Gertrude from Hamlet’s perspective, as a "slut,’ and naturalized the
ideas embedded in Hamlet’s perspective. The result was that because the class
stereotyped Gertrude as a weak, predorhinantly sexual character; and naturalized the
perspectives of Hamlet, both characters were kept from being critically examined.
In the second class, the teacher entered into a process of discovery with students
and helped them to grapple with human complexity. The patterns of interacting in this
class exposed all characters to interrogation. According to Pace and Townsend (1999),
“in this dialogic class, multiple perspectives were considered. The teacher helped to
challenge the stereotypes by talking about stereotypes, and prompting resistant reading.
The students shared ideas with their teacher in ways that complicated the characters of
Gertrude and Hamlet” (p. 45). Consequently, the students in this class “suggested by
their questions, musings and concerns that both female and male characters cannot be
predicted along gender lines, that biological sex need not determine what is possible or
permissible” (p. 48). Pace and Townsend (1999) also suggested that “if we leave
Hamlet’s (or any character’s) embedded biases and prejudices and allow students to do
the same, we may be encouraging them to leave their own biases unexamined or to
participate in their own degradation” (p. 45).
By indicating that “how we talk about characters and literature is as important as
the characters and literature that we talk about ” (p. 43) and that “the methods we use are
as important as texts that we teach” (p. 48), Pace and Townsend (1999) supported my
emphasis on teaching methods and strategies in the investigation o f gender
representations and patriarchal ideology. Following their lead, I engaged the students in
73
my study to examine characters from multiple perspectives, and to enter into a process
of discovery in order to comprehend human complexity. This approach was effective
for literature in which an author or main character viewed other characters from a sexist
point of view (“The Untold Lie” and A Farewell to Arms).
Lundberg (1989) also employed a dialogic approach to literature in a study in
which she analyzed the relationship between fictive narrators and fictive readers in the
novels of Charlotte Bronte and Joseph Conrad in order to demonstrate the impact of
gender on the literary production of, and on the interpretive stances in gendered
communities of actual readers. Lundberg (1989) asserted that when gender-related
ideology hinders entry into a text, the reader needs to bring both a historically and an
ideologically aware critique to bear on his/her general responses to the text (1989).
Lundberg (1989) further asserted that readers must become alert to the impact of gender
ideologies on the shaping of meaning in texts for a better understanding of the
multiplicity of reading relationships possible (1989).
Lundberg (1989) combined feminist theory with reader response techniques and
a Bakhtinian (1981) dialogical model for a ‘dialogically feminist approach.’ Her
method entails “reading in a Bakhtinian dialogic imagination, and experiencing the
heteroglossic multiplicity of perspectives in a text without trying (as did Iser, 1978 and
Rosenblatt, 1978), to effect their synthesis in to a univocal work” (Lundberg, 1989, p.
19). Lundberg (1989)“demonstrated that a reception-based feminist critique
elucidate[s] the gender-related conflicts built into the narrative structures of texts and
empowers readers to enter into a Bakhtinian dialogic exploration of hidden perspectives
rather than be controlled by the surface meaning in a text” (p. 12).
In my study I adopted Lundberg’s (1989) dialogic feminist identity to provoke
my students into an awareness of the impact o f gender ideologies on the shaping of
meaning in texts. By doing so, I attempted to foster in the students an understanding of
74
the multiplicity of relationships possible even in patriarchal texts. I have also attempted
to provoke textual investigations by means of narrative theory in order to identify
structures that cause readers to either resist or be controlled by the dominant perspective
in the texts.
Lundberg (1989) pointed out that in analyzing texts dialogically, that “the actual
reader joins with other readers in a community of interpreters who interact critically
with the text and with each other, rereading it and rewriting it in an ongoing effort to
make sense of it” (p. 194). In fostering critical interaction with the text, and in
searching out subordinated perspectives and reintroducing them for an interpretation of
the text that would not suppress the conflict inherent in multivoiced interpretations, I
assumed a dialogically feminist perspective.
Also utilizing a dialogic approach, Ricker-Wilson (1999), interested more in
how her students read critically than in what they read, engaged five female high school
students in a study to investigate the ways in which power operated in popular romance
novels. Ricker-Wilson (1999) investigated ways in which power operated in characters’
interpersonal relationships; which character(s) had greater social, economic and sexual
power; how this was evident; how and if this changed as the novel progressed; and to
what degree the students were satisfied with the way in which women and relationships
were depicted (p. 58).
Ricker Wilson's (1999) research findings supported Christian-Smith (1990) and
Radway’s (1984) assertions that reading romance operates primarily as an effort to
escape from the adversities of real heterosexual relationships. However, because she
organized the classroom reading of the romances in terms of the sexual politics
uncovered through the readings, Ricker-Wilson (1999) was also able to discover the
effects of this critical pedagogy in the girls’ extended writing and conversing on the
subject of the power dynamic in heterosexual relationship. As a result of Ricker-
75
W ilson’s (1999) critical approach to the literature, the five female readers translated
their discussion of the women in the novels to questions about “why obviously
intelligent, assertive, sympathetic heroines, enjoying a modicum of social, occupational
and economic clout, would put up with lousy treatment from men” (p. 59). In this
sense they have used the literature to foster cultural critique (Hines, 1997, Rogers,
1997). Ricker-Wilson (1999) found that the girls responded to the fact that “by the
logic o f some of authors of romance novels, women espouse femininity and
subordination in one breath, and men move from one set o f gendered behaviors to
another” (p. 63). The subsequent discussion of male and female depictions in these
texts engaged the students in an examination of how their own behavior has been rigidly
regulated and circumscribed (p. 63).
In my study, I attempted to develop teaching strategies that would maximize
readers’ examination of their own behaviors as well as the behaviors of the characters. I
have built on these studies to introduce a dialogic practice into my study in order to
investigate the effects such practice would have on discussion of gender representation
and ideology in the literature. I have also built on studies conducted by poststructuralist
and psychoanalytic theorists. These studies have elucidated methods for investigating
textual coercion and resistance to feminism.
Poststructuralist/ Psvchoanalvtic Classroom Studies
Studies by Davies (1992), Martino (1995) and Harper (2000) have reported the
effects o f textual and cultural discourses on the constitution of gender identities in
readers. They have also investigated alternative textual practices and critical strategies
for minimizing these positionings, which often engage readers into traditional
subjectivities at a subconscious level. They have argued for an approach to literature
that engages students in a deconstruction of the binary system that holds the patriarchal
hegemony in place in the texts and in the culture.
76
Building from Taylor’s (1993) attempts to encourage students to think beyond
dominant constructions of femininity by developing a feminist classroom practice based
on a cultural studies perspective, Davies (1992) conducted a comparative investigation
of Snow White and the Seven Dwarfs and Princess Smartvpants. Davies' (1992)
findings echo those of Gilbert and Taylor (1991), Henriques et al. (1984), Hines (1995),
Lewis (1990. 1992), Taylor (1993) and Walkerdine, (1984). All of these studies have
demonstrated the need for linking texts and lives to explore the complexities o f gender
in literature to “transcend dualism and find one’s way toward multiple genders and
multiple subjectivities for a more gender equal society” (Christian-Smith, 1993, p. 1).
Martino’s (1995) intention in his study of the responses of 40 15 year old boys
to a short story was to challenge hegemonic positions and dismantle his students’
patriarchal dispositions to construct the world in binary terms. Therefore, he selected a
text, “The Altar of the Family,” by Michael Wilding, critical o f the workings of
hegemonic positions of masculinity. In the story, the father disapproves of his son
playing with dolls, saying he “does not want his son to turn into a “lily-livered poofter”.
The father suggests that the son should shoot a possum to prove his manhood.
According to Martino (1995), in his study, 36 boys were prepared to take up the
position offered by the text, and reject the father, while sympathizing with the son.
However, although they took up the position of the text, the boys made no attempt to
problematize the notion of what constitutes manly behavior. Rather than accepting
alternative notions of masculinity, Martino (1995) found that his male students found
acceptable reasons within hegemonic notions of masculinity to excuse the son. Martino
(1995) judged the study a success, assuming that it represented a first step in helping
students to deconstruct dominant versions of masculinity and analyze their own
positions within hegemonic discourses. However, students’ responses also alerted him
to the struggle the boys experienced in attempting to resolve the contradictions they
77
experienced in trying to excuse the son while protecting his (and their own)
‘masculinity.’
To further engage students in a deconstruction o f dominant versions of
masculinity, he proposed questioning students about the implications and the limits of
the characters’ choices in terms of masculine identity. Martino (1995) argued that such
questions would encourage the students to question the socially constructed nature of
masculinity and examine their own assumptions and positionality within hegemonic
discourses. He discovered that an insistence on a deconstructive analysis of gender
regimes with a focus on selected texts to be deployed, are productive in terms of
opening up a counter-hegemonic space for high school students (p. 218).
His study was of particular interest to me because it was one o f the few which
investigated boys’ responses to gender ideology and representation in literature. It
helped to prepare me to develop questions and strategies that would encourage the boys
and girls in my classroom to problematize and deconstruct socially constructed
dominant versions of ‘masculinity’ and femininity. It also demonstrated the value of
using texts that model alternative versions of masculinity, leading me to include the
study of “The Gentle Lena. ”
Also impacting my research was Harper’s (2000) study in which she also
attempted to model alternative gender roles for high school students, in this case,
females. Harper (2000) employed a case study methodology to describe and analyze six
female students’ experiences with a feminist literary curriculum. To extend “ways of
being female’’ for her students and to provide them with what she calls “a curricular
rescue” through alternative textual practices. Harper (2000) gave the girls the
opportunity to participate in a twelve-week study during which they read and wrote
feminist avant-garde literature. Harper (2000) described this literature as creative
writing “which seeks to produce alternative representations of femininity outside the
78
boundaries o f patriarchal discourses” (p. 147). The writing, which she described as
experimenting with lexicon, syntax, genre, form, plot structure, image and theme in the
name of a feminist politics, is illustrated by the works of Virginia Woolf, George Sand,
Djuna Bames and others.
During the course. Harper engaged the students in the reading of the works. She
also engaged them in the creating of their own avant-garde feminist writings, the
process o f which “demands an intense and deliberate self-consciousness about gender,
language, and literary practices” (Harper, 2000, p. 140). According to Harper (2000),
the students’ reaction to the literature was to quickly distance themselves from feminist
politics and to declare a non-feminist identity. They had read the work as radically
feminist, but feminism, as they understood it, “was simply unpalatable” (p. 140). All
six girls found feminism irrelevant and failed to reference it.
Harper’s (2000) study found that a strong investment in heterosexuality resulted
in the girls’ refusal to identify with the image of woman constituted by the literature.
Only one girl out of six had any sympathy for women characters that they saw as
trapped in oppression. The other five reported that they preferred depictions of women
as free and independent in their lives. Harper (2000) determined that because they
could not admit that gender oppression existed for them, the girls could not accept the
route to agency celebrated in the subversive feminist discourses of avant-garde writers
who actively and assertively write against the literary and patriarchal norms. Harper’s
(2000) study also found that although the feminist literature mapped onto the desire and
pleasure of female friendships and maternal relationships, it did not map on to students’
investments in personal agency “and most importantly, onto heterosexual desire,
particularly where femininity was linked with passivity and pleasure” (p.161).
According to Harper (2000), the literature, which focused on women’s relationships
79
with friends, mothers, children, and/or female lovers, was a threat to the girls’
investment in heterosexuality.
Because she concluded that her subjects were limited by a rigid definition of
what it means to be female. Harper (2000) recommended that in future studies “the
focus in the high school classroom should to be on the pluralities, complexities,
ambiguities, and contradictions that exist in the investments and identity formations of
young women’s lives” (p. 162). She realized that much of the difficulty stemmed from
girls needing to resolve some of the conflicts and contradictions involved with
adolescent female identity formation in the high school today. Harper (2000)
recommended that concerns and fears of young women about homosexuality also
needed to be addressed by educators. She argued that as those fears and the fear of
losing a heterosexual feminine identity contributed to the girls’ resistance to the avant-
garde writing. These conclusions echo the Findings of Brown and Gilligan (1992) and
Lewis (1992), positing that adolescent girls resist a feminist approach when they see it
as threatening heterosexual relationships.
In her conclusion. Harper (2000) stated that what is needed is-a pedagogical
method that would be suitable “for the interrogation demanded by feminist
emancipatory work” (p. 166). She concluded that the development of such a pedagogy
would require future theorizing of students affective investments, “particularly in the
operation of desire in literary experience” (p. 166). She argued that attention should
focus on the complex investments evident in the negotiations of the students with the
literature. In addition, she argued that it is the negotiations that need to become the
pedagogical material, so that the lesson is not on alternative literary form per se, but on
the exploration of investments that become evident as one negotiates with the texts.
Harper’s f2000) study impacted mine in several ways. Firstly, though her study
included only girls and focused on avant-garde feminist literature, it was one of the few
80
classroom studies that I found where the teacher conducted researched her own course
which she had designed to raise gender awareness in students. Secondly, her study was
particularly interesting to me because it involved high school students in the literature
classroom. Thirdly, like mine, it focused on particular students whose individual and
collective 'stories’ described students’ experience investigating gender in literature.
Lastly, like me. Harper (2000) was interested in providing alternative versions of
femininity (and masculinity).
In my attempt to develop pedagogy that would effectively guide adolescents
toward a consciousness of literary gender issues and gender inequalities in society, I
drew from Harper (2000) and incorporated her recommendations in the following ways.
I foregrounded negotiations of texts by encouraging the interrogation of characters and
the implications of textual ideology; I focused on an exploration o f investments in
patriarchal versions of heterosexuality that became evident as the students negotiated
with the texts; I focused on the complexities, ambiguities, pluralities and contradictions
that students experienced while investigating the literary gender representations—
contradictions that exist in the investments and identity formations o f young women’s
lives” (p. 162); and because Harper’s (2000) subjects produced more conflicted,
complex renderings of their positioning in their creative writing than they did in their
interviews, class discussion or journal writing, I incorporated creative writing exercises
into my study.
Conclusion
The above discussion includes the theory and research upon which I have drawn
in the grounding, framing and carrying out of my study. Building on theories and
research in the areas of gender and culture, gender and schooling, gender and reading,
and feminist practice, I have investigated the responses of high school students to
81
gender issues in classic American literature, and the strategies and approaches that
heightened their critical consciousness in reading and living ethically.
The following chapter describes the methodology used to carry out that study,
which elucidates the students’ responses by weaving a discussion of the classroom
investigations together with the highlighted in-depth explorations of specific focus
group members as they engaged in analyses of specific works.
82
CHAPTERS
METHODOLOGY
In developing approaches for the classroom, we need to ask, first, ‘what is the significance of [classic] texts in girls’ (and boys’) lives, and how do we take account of this in the curriculum; and second, how do we use [these] texts in the classroom to challenge traditional versions of femininity and masculinity, and develop new and alternative versions’? In other words, what possibilities are there for transforming the texts of patriarchy through the cultural politics of the feminist classroom?
Sandra Taylor, 1993, p. 127
Introduction
This overview briefly describes the main features of the methodology used in
this project. Framing the study is my perspective as a Reflective Feminist Interpretivist.
In that role, I was interested in tracing students’ initial and developing responses to
gender representations in the literature selected for study. I was also interested in
encouraging students to rethink classical fictional characters and relationships through
the lens of an egalitarian perspective on gender, and in identifying teaching approaches
and strategies through which students could transcend sexist “controlling codes’’ and
“truth regimes” evident in classic literature. Finally, I was interested in reflecting on
my own practices and on the effectiveness of the selected teaching strategies referred to
above. In my role as the teacher of the course, I was also a participant in the study.
Because that role was central to the study, I included a reflexive component through
which I investigated my influence on the students and the effectiveness of the literature
83
selected for the study. Through this reflexive component, I also investigated the
effectiveness of the strategies used for exploring the students’ responses to the literature
and for articulating their views on ways in which the literature represents the gender
issues I was interested in pursuing.
The research questions in the study, then, emerged from my own ideologically-
situated stance, influenced as it has been by Fetterley’s (1978) and others’ feminist
critiques of sexist gender representations and androcentric perspectives in classic
American literature of the early twentieth century. My stance was also influenced by
Walkerdine’s (1984) theories on the coercive power of texts in producing gendered
subjectivities, and by Bogdan's (1992) goal to infuse aesthetic appreciation with a
critical approach to interpretation that is based on an acknowledged personal political
stance. Their work, similar to mine, emerged from a pedagogical approach to literacy
designed to dismantle dominant discourses in order to emancipate the marginalized
(Freire, 1977; Giroux, 1981, 1988, Shor, 1980). Essentially, these positions represent a
feminist poststructuralist perspective on textual construction of identity.
Research Design Overview
I conducted the study with thirty-five male and female students between the ages
of 15-18, all of whom were enrolled as sophomores, juniors and seniors at the Edwin L.
Werthlin High School, located in a suburb of a large Midwestern city. The students,
given the opportunity to select their courses, signed up for an American literature course
which was advertised as one focusing on the representation of males and females in
early twentieth century American Literature.
The study was comprised of two groupings: one is a whole-group component
consisting of all thirty-five students in the American Literature course divided into two
sections or classes. The other grouping is that of a focus group of ten students drawn
84
from the whole-group component. My intent with this focus group was to describe the
real-life context in which the interventions (i.e., the literature selections and the
strategies used to teach them) have occurred and, to evaluate, using the focus group
illustratively, the nature of the intervention itself (Merriam, 1988, p. 29). In this sense,
the focus group functions evaluatively (see Goetz and LeCompte, 1984; Cuba and
Lincoln, 1981; Patton, 1980 for a detailed discussion of the evaluative case study on
which the present use of a focus group is based). It permits, as do evaluative or
collective case studies, for an understanding of individual cases in a way that leads to a
better understanding, perhaps better theorizing, about a still larger collection of cases”
(Stake, 1994, p. 234). At the same time, because the strategies used for teaching the
selected literature included all the students in the two classes, I did not wish to focus
exclusively on the focus group participants and for this reason, have not conceptualized
the focus group as case studies but representatives of the classrooms. Interpretation
and discussion of data from the larger group, therefore, are woven into interpretation
and discussion of the focus group data.
Mv Role as A Reflective Feminist Interpretivist Participant
As noted in the overview to this chapter, integral to the design of this study is
my own role both as the researcher and as the teacher of the course and both classes. To
that end, data for the study include my own contributions to whole-class, focus group
discussions and instructional interventions including in particular, the creation of a
dramatic script, as well as reflections from my field notes and journals.
My desire to investigate the students' unmediated responses to the literature they
were to read, called for an interpretivist position for the formation of the initial research
questions as well as to the selection o f methods for data collection, analysis and
interpretation of the data. My feminist agenda to heighten students’ consciousness of
androcentrism in the literature, and my intention to prevent thoughtless acquiescence to
85
patriarchal gender representations, called for a critical feminist stance. It called for a
critical stance for the selection o f the literature, the identification of the teaching
strategies, and the formation of the research questions addressing desired changes in
students’ attitudes and perspectives over the duration of the course. My realization of
the potential influence of my own contribution to the students’ experiences with the
literature, and to their responses as well as to the selection of teaching strategies, is
embodied in my adoption of a reflective stance in relation to all aspects of the study. In
these senses, then, both as teacher and as researcher, I identified myself as a reflective
feminist interpetivist from the beginning of the development of the study. A discussion
of how each of these stances (i.e., the interpretivist, the feminist, and the reflective)
influenced my study follows.
As an interpretivist, I remained open to my students’ initial and developing
responses. I studied the effects of the teaching strategies on the students’ gender
consciousness with an eye toward understanding that consciousness as well as toward
perceiving evidence of transformation of that consciousness. I tempered my feminist
critique and remained open to the notion that, like me, the students had brought their
own literary and gender-related biases to bear on their discussions.
Open identification as a feminist allowed me to share my belief that patriarchal
versions of femininity and masculinity continue to be constructed in literature and
elsewhere as well as in social practices which promote and provide the basis for
women’s subordination (Taylor, 1993). The identification of this position supported me
in leading students toward gender-conscious reading and toward the formulation of a
standard of egalitarian relationships in both literature and society as a whole. However,
despite my desire to develop a feminist consciousness and a feminist literary critical
perspective in the students, I resisted the substitution of a patriarchal appropriation of
my students with a feminist one. My own feminist history had been oppressively
86
indoctrinative, leaving little room for an expression of the slightest resistance or the
smallest doubt of what constitutes sexist representation or an androcentric perspective.
I do not believe that indoctrination is the best approach through which to convince
others of the value of a particular perspective no matter how valid it may seem. For this
study, then, I felt it my responsibility as a teacher, to design a research project that
would be respectful of students’ ideas and lived experiences. My hope was to engage
the students in what Scheurich (1996) calls a Bakhtinian dialogic carnival (p. 10), and
call forth “a loud clamor of polyphonic, open, tumultuous conversation” (p. 10). I hoped
to do this while remaining keenly aware of my political predelictions for bringing about
transformative pedagogy and egalitarian behavior in relationships among them.
Adopting a conscious reflective stance on my ideological positioning, my role in
the selection of texts and teaching strategies, provided one of the checks and balances
essential to ensuring an accurate recording of the students’ responses in discussion as
well as in writing and dramatic activities. Through my post-discussion, activities, and
field notes, and through my own writing contributions to the teaching strategies, I was
able to examine and evaluate my struggles and reactions to the students’ responses.
This reflective evaluation provided me with opportunities to reconsider my own
perceptions and well as the students’, and the effectiveness of the research as well as the
effectiveness of selected teaching strategies throughout the duration of the study. In this
way, I hope that I have been able to maintain a “dialectically educative encounter
between the researcher and the researched” (Lather, 1991, p. 70).
Thus, as a reflective feminist interpretivist, I was able to combine the advocacy
and activism that define my project with the values of all participating members of the
group able to play a significant role in shaping the outcomes of the inquiry. In this role,
I was able to explore the students’ responses sensitively and respectfully, while at the
same time not acquiescing to their possible acceptance of injustices based on sex and
87
gender. It also invited the Bakhtinian dialogic carnival (Scheurich, 1994, p. 10) I had
expected within a community of learners who were all engaged in an exploration of
gender issues in the literature selected for study. In this context, the students and I
engaged in a collective effort to identify, analyze, and critique various perspectives on
gender and relationship representation in the selected texts for the purposes of building
knowledge and constructing a meaningful, potentially transformative, curriculum.
The Research Questions
Within the stance defined above, I had three objectives. The first was to study
the developing responses of a group of high school to gender and relationship
representations and governing gender-related ideologies in a selection of early twentieth
century American literature. The second objective was to determine the best strategies
for raising students’ awareness o f possible sexist representations and androcentric
perspectives in that literature. The third objective was to identify and record my own
struggles as a feminist interpretivist and as the teacher of these students while engaged
with the projects. The five research questions below emerged from these goals and
guided data collection and analysis.
( 1 ) Would students report or exhibit an increased awareness of sexist gender and relationship representations or androcentric perspectives in the literature during the course?
(2) What teaching approaches and strategies would be reported or determined to have had the largest impact on students’ consciousness of literary gender issues: discussion (and dialogic investigation), critical writing, critical readings, social imagination activities or projects)
(3) What, if any, changes in gender consciousness would be reported or demonstrated to have occurred in their own lives as a result of the study?
(4) What challenges would be involved for the teacher conducting the class/study ?
(5) What discoveries would be made that would benefit the literary educational community?
88
The research questions emerged from several critical perspectives: (1)
Fetterley’s (1978) feminist critique; (2) Walkerdine’s (1984) efforts to problematize the
coercive power of texts in producing gendered subjectivities; (3) Bogdan’s (1990, 1992)
fusion of an aesthetic appreciation o f literature with a political critique; (4) a critical
pedagogical approach to literacy designed to dismantle dominant discourses to
emancipate the marginalized (Freire, 1990.1973; Giroux, 1981), and the notion that
gender equality is an ethical concern.
Site
The choice to conduct the study in my own English classes in the Edwin L.
Werthlin Alternative Program for several reasons. First, given the potentially sensitive
nature of the research questions, it would be advantageous to have students who already
knew me as a well-established teacher in their school, someone with whom they could
be open. Second, the school affords teachers the freedom to design their own courses,
and the students, the freedom to select their own courses. I could, therefore, as a
teacher at the Werthlin School, design the course to reflect my goals in the study
without a lengthy administrative process that may or may not result in approval. Third,
the open environment and small population (170 students) at Werthlin is conducive to a
more casual relationship between teachers and students, and thus ideal for a study that
would require students to be open in discussions involving romantic and sexual
relationships, as well as their views on gender representations in general.
The combination of Werthlin’s philosophical foundation and a physical design
that promotes constant interaction fosters a learning environment in which strong
relationships among the small staff (10) and student body (175) can develop. Werthlin
is based on a Deweyan educational philosophy that emphasizes learning through
experience and subsequent reflection on that experience. The program is also dedicated
to a problem setting and solving approach within which students engage in making
89
genuine decisions as members of their learning and living community. As such, the
program promotes challenging inquiry rather than the recitation of correct answers to
“questions that have been carefully plotted in advance according to rigorous design
specifications as if there were only one thing to leam” (Rogoff, 1996, p. 394).
Following this line of thinking the school also subscribes to a non-hierarchical judicial
system in which rotating committee members of staff and students, hear, deliberate, and
decide on issues brought to it by the school community. Underlying the goals of the
program is the value placed on independence in thinking and an investigative approach
to learning that fosters a willingness in students to explore ideas through discussion and
open debate. These goals are realized in the small, seminar style classes that encourage
a freedom of expression that is a hallmark of this school. Werthlin teachers see
education as a “transformation of participation” (Rogoff, 1996, p. 389). This takes as
its central premise Vygotsky’s (1978) notion that “learning and development occur as
people participate in the sociocultural activities of their community, transforming their
understanding, roles and responsibilities as they participate” (Lave and Wenger in
Rogoff, 1996, p. 389). Within this model, teachers and students are dually involved in
the learning and teaching process; students as well as teachers are engaged in
curriculum analysis; sensitive topics in the curriculum are not avoided by explored
through an open, dialectical approach.
Students at Werthlin are not tracked. The student body comprises the full range
of academic ability, including a large percentage of the high school’s yearly national
merit award winners as well as students who have learning disabilities of one kind or
another. Although a given class can consist of students on many levels of achievement,
the staff members perceive the students as individualistic boys and girls who resist the
structure of larger schools and who have sought, instead, to select this school because it
offers a personal, highly interactive educational experience.
90
Participant Selection
The Larger Group
As indicated briefly in the discussion of site selection, I chose to design and
teach a course in early twentieth century American literature to the students who elected
to take that course. At the beginning of the school year, I assumed that the advertised
class would draw the usual fifteen to twenty boys and girls. However, more students
than anticipated signed up for the course. Because another English teacher was not
available to teach a second section, I undertook responsibility for both classes.
Scheduling conflicts resulted in an uneven distribution of boys and girls in the intended
class, so I chose to include all students who had signed up for the course- a total of
thirty-five students distributed in two classes. The morning class comprised twenty-one
students (14 boys, 7 girls); the afternoon class comprised 14 students (4 boys, 10 girls).
These, then, would also comprise the total number of students who participated in the
study. Each class was assigned the same reading materials, given the same
assignments, the same in-class writing exercises, and initial discussion prompts.
As discussed above, I had intended to conduct the study with one class. When it
became clear, because of the large number of students who had signed up for the course,
that I would have to split them into two classes, I found it difficult to decide which of
the two would be more appropriate for the study. There were students in each of the
two classes who offered some diversity and interest in terms of their potential level of
contribution, their backgrounds and their perspectives on literature. Further, neither
class seemed appropriate for exclusive use in the study because of the uneven
representation of gender in each, and because of the personalities involved in each class.
The morning class was over-endowed with boys (fourteen) who often did most of the
talking, with the seven girls being relatively quiet. In the afternoon class, the four boys
often sat quietly, while the ten girls did most of the talking. Because gender is a
91
significant focus of this study, and because both classes contained gender imbalance, it
seemed inappropriate to study either class in isolation o f the other.
With regard to the students’ socio-economic and cultural backgrounds, the two
classes afforded me with as much variety as a typical suburban, largely white, middle-
class school district could produce. Within that composition, however, two immigrant
Middle Eastern females, one immigrant Japanese male, and one second-generation
Asian American female were members of the total group of thirty-five students.
Greater variety was achieved in terms of grade level. Because Werthlin students are
able to take courses regardless of grade level, my total sample included a variety of
students with respect to age and grade, academic ability and achievement. It also
included a variety of students in terms of literary experiences, parents’ level of
education, number of years in the educational system, gender awareness, level of
sophistication, religious and political orientations, and romantic/sexual experiences.
Accepting all of the students in the two classes allowed for “the maximum variation
sampling’’ (Patton, 1990, p. 172). This provided the opportunity for both the
documentation of uniqueness in the case study group, and the potential emergence of
“significant shared patterns of commonalities across participants ” (Patton, 1990, p. 172)
within the focus group and between it and the larger group.
The Focus Group
Although sample size in qualitative inquiry is not a crucial factor for reasons of
determining statistical significance and generalizability of results, it nevertheless
influences the way in which a study unfolds, the amount of time available for in-depth
interviews, and the range of experiences that are available for analysis. .Because of the
large number of students in the total sample (thirty-five),I chose to embed a focus group
component of ten students who would represent the larger group in my subsequent
analysis and interpretation of the data. They would also serve as individual cases in
92
terms of their responses to the selected literature and their engagement with the selected
strategies for teaching the literature. The study, therefore, focuses on these ten students
and their interactions with me, with the literature, and with the students in their classes.
The selection of these ten students as a focus group promised to enable me to
concentrate more intensively on issues and questions that I anticipated would emerge in
the course of data collection. The basis for selecting the students to participate in the
focus group will be discussed in detail later in this section
To select the students in the focus group, I employed “stratified purposeful
sampling” (Jasinski, 1996; Patton, 1990). Patton observes that stratified purposeful
sampling enables the researcher to “capture major variations rather than to identify a
common core, although the latter may be used in the analysis” (Patton 1990, p. 74, and
in Jasinski, 1996, p. 87). Like Jasinski (1996), I was interested in social group, gender,
and age, but given the composition of the two classes, I could not “balance the
participants according to these characteristics (p. 87). Although Jasinski’s (1996) study
focused on the writing of elementary school students in the naturally occurring context
of the classroom, responding to literature, as is writing, is an “idiocyncratic process” (p.
87) and thus my sampling would be “illustrative” of a range of readers rather than
“definitive” (p. 88). Thus, with an eye toward differences which became obvious in the
first week of the course, I chose the following ten students from the two classes.
From the morning class, I chose Dale, Candy, Charles and Ellen. From the afternoon
class, I chose Sarah, Marie, Maynard, Howard, Brenda and Hillary. The morning group
comprised the following students:
(1) Candy is a junior for whom her friends are extremely important. She claims to take great pride in her looks, her clothes, and her style, and enjoys being a girl. On the one hand she projects a feminine deference, on the other hand, she has a strong, no-nonsense intolerance for any kind of poor treatment from the opposite sex. Candy is a responsible student who rarely speaks in class, yet expresses her opinions easily in writing and in one-on-one conversations.
93
(2) Dale is quick-witted and extremely bright, with an interest in literature and film. He was generally an active contributor in the class, taking a central role in all discussions. He also enjoys expressing his ideas in writing. He is conscious of how ingrained gender issues are, even in himself. However, he is resistant to feminism. “While some feminist causes are just,” he says, “there is a caricature that makes young people not want to get on board.”
(3) Charles, a high achieving, highly literate student, who had both feminist and socialist leanings and a high level of interest in literary studies. His views include a commitment to a feminist thinking that is based on his idea that women are equal to males and should not be considered appendages to males. He believes that “gender stereotypes still exist in today’s society, preventing people from reaching their full potential.”
(4) Ellen, an Egyptian immigrant, with nine years in the U.S., is a friendly, popular girl who was admired as a leader and an organizer in her class. Because o f her culture, and her religious family, she found herself in conflict with the popular culture embraced by many of the other students. She came to the class with clear ideas about feminism and gender issues, explaining that she did not think gender stereotypes were an issue for people in society.
From the afternoon class, I included the following students in the focus group.
(1) Sarah is a very bright, very funny, and very outspoken. She is a direct, down to earth, independent thinker who admitted to multiple heterosexual experiences and a rather unconventional upbringing. She consistently challenged the typical suburban student by adopting her own personal style and a rebellious attitude about the conformity in the town. She was aware that she did not fit in with mainstream high school girls.
(2) Maynard was a quiet, thoughtful, occasional contributor to the afternoon class who had somewhat traditional views on gender relations. In spite of that, he took a critical view of those who have tried to judge his masculinity when he has chosen to act out his rebellion of the status quo through alternative dress and music. He often took a moderate perspective in the class, serving as the voice of reason in heated discussions
(3) Marie was a responsible, outspoken girl who enjoyed discussion and argument. She was ready to express her ideas about the literature and the gender issues, and was a serious resistor to my agenda, preferring a more traditional view. On the subject of gender issues pertaining to masculinity and femininity, she claimed that she didn’t think they existed anymore. Her beliefs about gender reflected her conservative Christian belief system.
(4) Howard was a very quiet class participant who was extremely thoughtful about everything that was discussed and everything that he read. He was an extremely responsible student and interested in the ways in which gender issues in the literature impacted on men and women and boys and girls in contemporary society. Howard was one of the few students open to feminist theory as the class began.
(5) Brenda was an active participant in the afternoon class. She is a typical teenager who loves music, movies, sports and talking on the phone. She is a friendly, open girl,
94
who loves people and takes pride in her schoolwork. She sees no gender problems in her world, admitting that lots of those male gender roles are things she enjoys.
(6) Hillary was a quiet, serious and industrious student who, in spite of a reading disability, was a successful student and one o f the main contributors in the afternoon class. Hillary is a gentle girl whose strong religious principles and strong focus on the traditional family made her critical of, but open to a feminist perspective.
There were two other students who, while not officially members of the focus group,
were highlighted in some of the discussions: Alicia from the morning class and Richard
from the afternoon class.
(1) Alicia's similarity in background to Ellen in prompted me to drop her from the focus group. However, interested in the subject matter, and assuming for a while that she was in the focus group, she attended many of the group discussions and improvisational workshops. Her thoughtful approach and participation in class and in some of the improvisations was important to the study.
(2) Richard, a smart underachiever, failed the course but his openness resulted in his articulation of information about contemporary teenagers’ sexual practices was important to the study. He also offered that he was a bisexual, a position that offered an alternative perspective to other students' views on gender and relationship and served as a catalyst for many important discussions.
Selection of the Literature
The entire group of thirty-five students participated in a semester-long American
literature course that included the study of the following literary works:
Henry James’ novel, Washington Square (1962/1896)Emma Goldman’s Essay, Love and Marriage,” from Anarchism (1969/1912)Gertrude Stein’s short story, “The Gentle Lena,” from Three Lives (1990/1906)P. Scott Fitzgerald’s novel. The Great Gatsbv (1995/1925).Ernest Hemingway’s, A Farewell to Arms (1969/1929)Sherwood Anderson’s short story, “The Untold Lie ” (1977/1925)Zora Neale Hurston’s novel. Their Eves Were Watching God (1998/1937).
The selection o f each of these works except Goldman’s essay, “Love and
Marriage” and Stein’s, short story “The Gentle Lena,” was made on the basis of its
canonical standing and the common usage of either the literary piece itself or other
works by the same author. These works were also chosen because of the existence of a
love relationship at the center of the story and the presence of both a male and female
protagonist.
95
The essay by Goldman, and the short story by Stein, were chosen to introduce
students to writers of the literary period who, like Wharton (1929), had attempted to
bring a feminist perspective to bear on gender issues in literature and society.
In addition to these works, which have been highlighted in the study by means
of discussions featuring focus group participants, one other literary work was also
covered, that of Hemingway’s short story, “Hills like White Elephants.” Creative
writing done by Charles, a particular focus group student, had a significant impact on
the course and study as will be subsequently described in Chapter Five.
Selection of Teaching Approaches and Strategies
The teaching approaches and strategies selected for use with the thirty-five
students and focus group of ten were designed to assess students’ ability to relate to the
literary characters and themes, and to record their initial and developing responses to
the literature. They were also designed to draw attention to, and stimulate investigation
of the ways in which men, women and their relationships are represented by the authors,
as well as the underlying cultural perspectives governing those choices. These
approaches included: written responses to the literature read, discussions (including
dialogic investigations of the literature), research papers, literary criticism, social
imagination activities (art and drama), and a final project selected by the students.
Rationale for Selected Approaches/Strategies
The following are explanations for the selection of particular teaching
approaches and Strategies
Approaches.
Discussion: a method chosen to clarify misunderstandings and answer questions about the literature, challenge students to think beyond initial responses to the literature, expose them to differing views on the literature; and observe the effects of community on responses (Alvermann et al., 1998; Cherland, 1992; Edelsky, 1989; Edelsky, Peterson and Beds, 1990; Beds and Peterson, 1991; Beds and Wells, 1989; Luke and Gore, 1992). Discussion was also chosen to encourage connections between students’ lives and their literary responses (Black and Seifert, 1985; Golden and Guthrie, 1986; Beach and Hynds, 1991 and Rosenblatt, 1978).
96
Dialogic (Bakhtin, 1981) investigation: Extended discussion chosen to extend explorations of the literature and negotiations with the literature and each other; to engage the students in a challenge of sexist representations and androcentric perspectives in the literature; to promote the exploration o f contradictions, and to promote a questioning of culturally valued opinions.
Critical Writing: A method chosen to enhance individual exploration o f the gender representations, promote individual exploration of ideology in the literature, and promote individual exploration of textual positioning.
Literary Criticism: A method chosen to introduce students to feminist perspectives; to introduce narrative criticism for clearer understanding of authorial constructions; and to provide models for a Rich’s (1979) revisionist approach to reading (See chapter 2, Section I for detailed explanation of a revisionist approach to literature).
Social imagination activities: An approach chosen to invite students to explore meaning from ‘inside the text’ (Edmiston, 1999; Heathcote, 1994; O ’Neill, 1995) to allow the students to examine texts for a consideration of whose stories are told, and whose are not told, and what silences convey; to encourage literary exploration through visual, musical or dramatic metaphor; and to foster students’ awareness o f political implications of what the text has said, and what the text has left unsaid in order to begin to dismantle patriarchal texts.
Strategies
In-depth interviews. Group Interviews and Improvisational Workshops: approaches were also employed with focus group participants to continue dialectical negotiations beyond the classroom, to continue improvisational investigations of texts beyond the classroom and to continue investigation of classroom questions and issues.
Once I had identified the approaches and strategies, I systematically employed
the use of each one in an attempt to see what, if any, changes were brought about by the
particular approach used. I also addressed the students’ developing responses over the
course of the study
Data Sources
My data collection was related to the use of a variety' of teaching approaches and
strategies (as noted in the preceding section), as well as with what might emerge during
the course of the study. Therefore, I preferred to remain flexible and responsive to the
“natural classroom context” (Jasinski, 1996, p. 98). Within this loose frame, data are
drawn from the following sources to reflect the three participant foci within the study;
97
1 .The Larger Group (i.e., the two classrooms): surveys, written responses to the literature, audio- and video-taped discussion (including dialogic textual negotiations), social imagination activities (art and drama)
2 .The Focus Group: questionnaires; audio-taped interviews, group discussions and improvisational workshops; research papers, literary criticism, social imagination activities; and final projects
3.The Participant Researcher: journal reflections, experimental writings and data collected from students.
In summary, data collection consisted of the following
The Larger Group
35 surveys on gender education, attitudes/reading experience 100 pages of direct written responses to literary works 100 pages of transcribed audio/video tapes of discussions 125 pages of writing to prompts stimulating imaginative responses 21 final surveys
Focus Group Members
10 questionnaires on students' background and literary experience 250 transcribed pages of interviews with ten focus group participants 75 pages of transcribed group interviews/improvisations/workshops 30 student-written, five page essays on three literary works 10 final projects 10 final questionnaire
Self-Reflective Exploration
25 typewritten pages of journal reflections on classes focus group interviews 25 typewritten pages of experimental playwrighting as a method of inquiry Transcripts of all student activity
The Larger Group
Data collected in the two classrooms followed a sequence. Students in both
classes filled out an initial survey before reading any of the literature. The survey
provided background information on the students and information on their reading
experience. After reading each literary work, all students were also asked to write
responses to questions about their appreciation of the literature, their connection with
the characters, and the effects of gender representation and textual ideologies on them
as readers. Audio-taped discussions of each literary work followed the initial written
98
responses. In these discussions, we investigated students’ written responses, and
students’ reactions to gender issues brought up by the students or by me in the
discussion. These discussions were followed by dialogic negotiations with the texts,
and with critical readings assigned for some works. Students then engaged in social
imagination activities (creative writing, drama or art). At the end of the course, students
worked on projects dealing with gender issues in chosen class literature. As part of the
project, the students commented on the issues raised by this activity, and the perceived
effectiveness of these projects in changing perceptions or raising new awareness about
the representation of gender.
During the course of the study, particular topics were sometimes raised in one
class and not the other. Different directions were taken by the different groups as a
result of the personalities involved and the relative depth and richness of particular
questions and investigations taken up by individual students engaged in particular
activities, discussions and/or written responses. However, although standardization was
neither desired nor could be achieved in a study such as this, consistency was desired,
and was achieved by the structure of the study explained above, and by questions that
framed study as a whole and each portion of the study.
Collection procedures for each of the following data will now be described.
Survevs
The initial survey (Appendix A) investigated students’ histories in terms of
gender-related education, and students’ perspectives on gender equality, identification
and construction. The initial survey asked for students’ definitions of words such as
‘masculine’ and ‘féminine’; their reactions to the word, ‘feminist’; their perceptions
about the biological determinations and social constructions of gender; and the
limitations they perceived as caused by gender identification. The survey also asked
99
students to express their ideas about their experience of reading across cultures and
making connections with characters in classic literature.
At the end of the course, I administered a final survey (Appendix B). In this
survey, I asked specific questions about whether the course had worked for all of the
students. I investigated ways in which the study of gender in literature had made a
difference in their reading; and whether the discussions, teaching approaches, and
activities had impacted them in terms o f sensitivity to gender inequities in the literature
and in their lives.
Written Responses
After the reading of each story, all thirty-five students were also asked to write
in response to questions (Appendix C) about their connections with characters,
responses to gender representations and textual ideologies, and perceptions about
sexism in the literature. This strategy was employed to assess initial responses to the
works, and to investigate if and how perceptions of gender identification/ representation
changed during the course of the study as additional works were read.
I believed that opportunities for written responses directed toward gender and
relationship issues in the literature would encourage a stronger connection with the
gender issues. I expected the students’ responses to serve as indicators of the students’
connection with the literature and the effectiveness of some of the teaching approaches
and strategies. I also hoped that their writing would also serve as an encouragement to
further critical and creative thinking about androcentrism, and sexist representations in
the literature.
Audio-taped Discussions/Dialogic Investigations with the Texts
Introductorv Discussions
The course was also structured so that discussions of textual representations and
underlying ideologies could be conducted during the study of each work. While framed
100
by the research questions, discussion questions often emanated from students’ responses
to particular questions or comments about the literature at hand. I suspected that
discussions were as affected by the personalities in the class as by the literature being
studied or by my agenda (Eeds and Wells. 1989; Eeds and Peterson, 1991). For
example, the afternoon class engaged in a lengthy and intense conversation about
homosexuality in response to "‘The Gentle Lena,” while the morning class focused on
compulsory marriage in the discussion of that story. During the discussions, I tried to
engage the students in investigations with the texts that would maximize their
appreciation of the literature while opening up a consideration of patriarchal ideologies
and gender representations. Through this inquiry into the texts, I hoped to initiate the
process of historical revision “that continuously erodes ignorance and misapprehensions
and enlarges more informed insights (Bogdan, 1992, p. 114).
Dialogic Investigation with the Texts
A dialogic approach in discussion allowed the students and I to engage in a
negotiation with the texts and with each other at a more intense level. It allowed me to
pose questions and offer contrasting perspectives to the ones held by the students. It
also allowed me pose questions for the author and/or characters. This approach allowed
me to interject my opinions and those of feminist thinkers, while welcoming the
students’ ideas as well. It forced the students to benefit from my ideas and insights as
well as those of their classmates in order to problematize textual positions and
representations. And, in many cases, it allowed me to benefit from their ideas. For
many students at Werthlin, where a dialogical approach to discussion is common, it was
the preferred forum for expression. While my agenda was clearly to develop gender
conscious readers and citizens through critical pedagogy, my approach was to
accomplish this within a ‘heteroglossic’ classroom atmosphere (Bakhtin, 1981) which
101
honored competing meanings the centrality of articulating response to achieving
understanding.
Because I was also involved in the discussions, I was not able to physically take
field notes while the students and I were engaged in literary discussions. I was able to
make some field notes after each class, but much would have been lost without the
opportunity to tape the discussions. I audio-taped discussions during the classes so that
I could record the attitudes, perspectives, and developments of the students, and the
controversies, as they came into contact with the literature, with me, with each other,
and with selected critical literary readings assigned for reading. I chose to tape all of
the discussions focused on the gender issues in the literature, and listened to the tapes
after each of the classes were over, and wrote field notes from them. “Focused
observation then [was] used at later stages of the study . . . to check analytic themes, to
see . . . if they explain[ed] behavior . . . over a long time . . . ” (Marshall, 1995, p. 79).
Listening to the discussions after they had taken place provided me with the
distance that I needed to conduct a study in my own classroom. Listening to the tapes
after each class also enabled me to pose additional problems and questions arising from
my review of the day’s discussion.
Audio- and Video-taped Social Imagination Activities
During the study of each literary work, all students engaged in creative
imaginative work with the literature in an attempt to either get inside the text or bring
the characters/ relationships into the present. These included creative, artistic, or
dramatic responses to the literature. I selected art, creative writing, and drama activities
to highlight the differences and/or similarities between the students’ gender-related
perspectives and those held by the author and/or his characters (Appendix H). The
particular type of activity to be assigned was selected on the basis of its appropriateness
to the study of the particular work itself. I audio-taped all social imagination activities.
102
In addition, I video-taped the social imagination activities conducted by the university
professors during the study of Their Eves Were Watching God.
The Focus Group
I complemented the general classroom study with a corresponding text-by-text
study of the literary responses and investigations of the stories by the ten students in the
focus group. I was able to conduct a more enriched, more comprehensive investigation
by focusing on their essays, projects, questionnaires, and written responses to the
feminist literary critical readings, and by highlighting their particular responses within
the context of the general classroom study described above. By further engaging these
ten representatives in extensive interviews, group interviews and improvisational
workshops, 1 was able to engage them in an in-depth exploration of the gender issues in
the literature. As well as the data collected on the ten students as a consequence of their
participation in the whole-class activities (see previous section); additional data specific
to the focus group included the following sources:
Questionnaires
Focus group members completed two written questionnaires. One questionnaire
(Appendix D), administered early in the study, was designed to provide in-depth
demographic information, educational background, reading habits; and students’ sexual
preferences, sexual activity, and attitudes about feminism and gender equality. The
purpose of the questionnaire was to provide me with informational material on each of
the focus group participants.
The second questionnaire, administered at the end of the study (Appendix E),
was designed to supplement and triangulate students’ responses to interview questions,
taking all the literary works into consideration at once. This questionnaire required that
focus group students identify the basis for each of the literary relationships and the
103
power dynamics and double standards operating in the relationships. The questionnaire
also asked students to identify the degree to which they related to each of the characters.
Transcribed Audio taped Individual Interviews
My interviews (Appendix F) with each of the ten focus group members provided
the centerpiece for the research project. I interviewed each of the ten students two or
three times, depending on their availability. During the first session, I expanded on
their responses to the whole-class survey and to their written responses on the
questionnaire. It was during the second and third sessions, however, where most of the
rich discussion of the literature and the gender issues took place, and where analyses of
characters, relationships and governing textual ideologies took place.
Lengthy discussions and in-depth investigations of the literature were possible
during personal interviews where we had the time to explore questions, issues and ideas
in detail that we could not address in the limited classroom time. Many conversations
that were begun in the classroom were continued during these personal interviews with
the ten focus group members. In addition, for many students, the privacy of the one-on-
one interviews was conducive to the free expression of opinion. All ten students
contributed easily and openly in the interviews, while many of the same students were
not regular contributors in the classroom. Their interviews represented the ideas of
many students like themselves, whose opinions are often not shared in the larger
classroom environment.
Because the focus group mem bers’ answers to the interview questions
(Appendix F) were unique, reflecting their individual perspectives, interests and thought
processes, follow-up questions were often revised during the interview process to suit
the particular student or conversational direction. Different conversations, then, had
different emphases
104
Transcribed Audio-taped Group Interviews
The focus group provided an opportunity for using what Fontana and Frey
(1994) have referred to as the group interview, or the systematic questioning of several
individuals simultaneously. While Fontana and Frey (1996) state that this kind of
interview does not replace the interviewing of individuals, they have pointed out that
such interviews “provide another level of data gathering or a perspective on the research
problem not available through individual interviews.” (p. 366). I used the group
interview several times with the focus group because it stimulated the discussion of
topics not considered by individuals in one-on-one interviews or in whole-class
discussions.
Group interviews were held with the focus group during the discussion of the
two short works: “The Gentle Lena,” and “The Untold Lie.” In each case, the group
interviews were conducted to extend discussions held in class, in interviews, or as a
preparation for future experimentation with drama activities. They were also conducted
to engage students in dialogic negotiations with the texts or with each other, or to
continue discussions begun in class or with individuals. Group interviews with these
students were held in my home after school hours or on weekends.
Transcribed Audio taped Improvisational/Writing Workshops
In conjunction with the group interviews, I conducted improvisational
workshops with the focus group several times. I brought them together to do some
social imagination work on “The Gentle Lena,” and “The Untold Lie,” (Appendix I) and
I brought them together for improvisational work on all of the literature in the study at
the end of the course (Appendix G). I believed that getting inside these texts through
role play, or the updating of these stories into contemporaiy screenplays, would bring to
light the stereotyping, sexist ideology and androcentric authorial perspective evident in
these works more effectively than any other approaches or strategies.
105
For “The Gentle Lena,” the focus group was required to actually begin the
writing of an update which I hoped would expose the apparent differences between the
students’ and Stein’s cultures, as more similar than different. I hoped that this activity
would invite the students to focus on the way that society has constructed their gender
identities and relationship patterns as it constructed those o f the characters of Lena and
Herman in Stein’s era. The focus group members wrote several scenes for a film
update. They eventually decided that “The Untold Lie” would make for a better update.
Time did not allow for the writing of that update, but many scenes were improvised.
Therefore, the workshop on “The Untold Lie” did not result in a student update, but led
to the writing of my own play (see Chapter 6), which came out of my own attempt to
write creatively as a method of inquiry.
In the final improvisational workshop, I invited all ten students to respond to
prompts (Appendix G) designed to elicit imaginative responses to each of the works
studied in the course. This workshop was planned to encourage the students to respond
to the individual works after they finished the course and had already responded to each
literary work as it was studied. I hoped that this activity would elucidate any changes
brought about by the teaching approaches and strategies employed in the study/class.
Critical Writing Activities
Marshall (1995) points out the importance of writing opportunities as validators
of student meaning-making (p. 87). For this reason, I also encouraged all thirty-five
students in the classes to explore gender issues in five-page critical research papers on
Washington Square. The Great Gatsbv. and A Farewell To Arms but included only the
papers of the focus group members in the corpus of the data. 1 selected these literary
works for the longer writing assignments because they are the full-length works studied.
Their Eves Were Watching God is a full-length work also, but it was the last work, and
it was followed by the students’ projects, many of which involved that novel.
106
Literary Criticism
Scholarly critiques on the literature covered were assigned to the thirty-five
students in both classes to familiarize them with scholars’ commentaries on gender
issues in some of the literature. In all cases, the critical perspectives were gender-
related treatises; in some cases, they also focused on theme or authorial perspective in
relation to the representation of men and women and relationships. After reading the
literary critical works, students reported in classroom discussions on the effectiveness of
the points made by the critics, and on any insights, discoveries, or problems which
developed as a result of this reading
Final Projects
All thirty-five students completed final projects (Appendix J) in which they were
required to produce an artistic, journalistic, musical or dramatic work relating to or
emanating from an exploration of gender issues in the literature of their choice. I
included only the focus group members’ projects in the corpus of data for subsequent
analysis and interpretation.
Self Reflective Exploration
The Research Journal
As noted earlier, during the course of the study, I kept a research journal in
which I continuously entered field notes. In the journal, I commented on the students’
responses and on the challenges, successes and failures of my attempts to raise my
students’ awareness of gender bias through an investigation of the literature. My
reflections on the students’ struggles and my own play a central role in the study. My
reactions to all our contributions affected decisions about the use of certain questions,
activities and strategies.
107
Creative Writing as a Method of Inquiry
Richardson (1994) foregrounded the understanding of writing as a method of
inquiry and explored the ways in which researchers have always used and continue to
use writing to help them think. Langer and Applebee (1987) reported that writing
shapes thinking and that the more we manipulate information, and work with it, the
more we learn. I wrote one short group of scenes to explore the ways in which students
responded to Emma Goldman’s ideas about marriage, which I believe helped me to
‘see,’ interpret, and communicate their reactions and positions more clearly.
I also wrote a full length short play as a method of inquiry and as a way of
interpreting the focus group’s investigation of the androcentrism in Sherwood
Anderson's “The Untold Lie.’’ I used lines from the short story and the transcribed lines
from the students’ improvised scenes and our dialogues to explore our collective
experience engaging in this study of the gender issues in the literature.
Through this experimentation with writing as a method of inquiry, I constructed
what Marcus (1994) calls ‘messy texts,’ straddling the fence between fact and fiction
and experimenting with an impressionistic approach to data analysis (Van Manaan,
1989). In the case of “The Untold Lie, ”I believe that this messy text serves as a
metaphor for the experience in which the students and I were engaged. The scenes
portraying the discussion of “Love and Marriage,” (1969 /1912) the focus group’s work
on “The Gentle Lena,” (1990/1906) and the short play depicting the study of “The
Untold Lie” (1977/1925) are integrated in Chapters 4, 5 and 6 in the order in which the
literature was studied.
Method of Analysis
Step One: The Transcriptions
In order to accomplish the analysis of the data, I transcribed all of the audio
taped class discussions and audio and video-taped drama activities. I also transcribed
108
all of the personal interviews conducted with focus group members, and each of the
group discussions and workshops in which the focus group participated.
Step Two: Initial Analysis
After reading through all o f the material, I organized the classroom data in the
order in which it was collected, including initial surveys, transcripts of literary
discussions and activities, written responses to gender issues in each literary work, and
final surveys. In addition, I organized the data from the personal and group interviews
with the focus group, the initial and final questionnaires, and the transcripts of group
discussions and improvisational workshops. In order to organize the data to foster the
successful completion of a systematic and comprehensive investigation of the general
and particular facets of the experience, I edited and combined the data from the general
classrooms with the data from the focus group activities. To aid me in weaving the
classroom and focus group data together and in interpreting those data, I organized the
data into two sections, with each section focusing on the data from a different
perspective. Section One was organized by the literature; Section Two was organized
by focus group participants.
Step Three: The Sections
Section One
The first section was organized according to the literary works, in the order in
which we studied them in the two classes. Under the heading of the specific literary
work, I inserted subheadings designated by A.M. and P M . classes, and the transcribed
audio- taped discussions and audio-and video-taped activities carried out in each
group’s investigation of the literature. From the transcribed audio-taped class
discussions, I selected segments, highlighting classroom investigations of gender issues
in each particular piece of literature. I then inserted these transcribed segments into the
proper category. I followed each of these segments with the focus group members’
109
transcribed responses to these works during in-depth, extended interviews. Finally, I
included segments from the group interviews and workshops conducted to study
specific works. After reading these transcripts, I also included my responses to their
responses and my choices of discussion topics, activities and arguments.
Constructing Section One in this way allowed me to bring together the
transcriptions of the general and particular commentaries made on each of the works
using the various approaches described for a comprehensive investigation of where the
students were in relation to my research questions. It also helped to raise my awareness
about the different gender issues raised by the study of each of these literary works. In
addition, it helped to reveal the significant and/or representative contributions made
during interviews with the focus group members who would serve as spokespersons for
the group in the interpretation and presentation of the data. And, because I organized
Section One so that morning (A.M.) and afternoon class (P.M.) discussions were
followed by interviews of representatives from those particular classes, the method
elucidated the impact of the classroom community on the student representatives.
Finally, because I organized the literary works in the order in which they were studied
in the classroom, I was able to see how students’ perspectives developed and changed
over the course of the study.
Section Two
I organized the second section of data around each focus group member, and his
or her responses to each literary work, as the various approaches were used. I also
followed these transcribed segments with my own responses. This section, which
comprised mostly abridged audio-taped transcriptions of personal interviews, allowed
me to see the ideological perspectives held by each of these students with more clarity.
It also helped me to see how those perspectives played themselves out in their responses
to the gender issues in the literature. Finally, it allowed me to determine how each
110
student approached the investigations of the specific works, and to identify which focus
group students to foreground in the investigation of each work for the interpretation and
presentation of the data.
Combined with these representative students’ surveys and questionnaires, essays
and projects. Section Two further elucidated the interests and perspectives of the
students, and the effects of various teaching approaches on their responses throughout
the course.
Step Four: Teacher/Researcher Journals and Creative Writings
In addition to the two sections of data, complete with commentaries on my
decisions, struggles and experiences conducting this class and study, the scenes and
dialogues I have written as a method of inquiry are a part of the corpus of data analyzed
for patterns and themes (to be discussed in the following section).
Interpretation of the Data
LeCompte and Preissle (1993) describe theorizing as “the cognitive process of
discovering or manipulating abstract categories and relationships among those
categories’’ (p. 239). It consists of playing with data and ideas, and engaging in such
tasks as perceiving, comparing, contrasting, speculating, aggregating, ordering, and
establishing linkages and relationships. Once data have been described, the reader
begins to analyze, to establish links to larger, previously identified theoretical
frameworks, or to develop a different framework based on the relationship between one
set of data and another.
Initially, I was operating from the position that my students might have some
trouble relating with characters who behaved in stereotypical ways unfamiliar to them
in contemporary post-feminist times. My reading of educational and feminist literature,
and my recent teaching experiences had led me to believe that most of these adolescents
I I I
would not share my feminist perspectives on gender equality or my level o f
commitment to raising the status of women. However, I was unsure of exactly where
they would stand, and how their stances would affect their reading and appreciation of
the literature.
The selection of the teaching strategies and methods of data collection, then,
were based on my position as an investigator, a feminist, and a teacher, who was
examining the process. My data were drawn from the written and transcribed responses
o f the students in the two classes, from the written and transcribed responses of the
focus group members, and from my journal reflections and plays.
Patterns and Themes
I have used Lather's (1993) concept of the interpretation of data to include both
description and analysis, both of which occur at the same time and influence data
collection. Because the study continued for a school year, and because the data were
interpreted during the course of the study, description and analysis did influence
subsequent data collection, particularly with respect to follow-up questions for focus
group members in interviews, and during group discussions and improvisational
workshops. According to Lather (1993), the first component o f interpretation is the
description in which the researcher looks for themes and patterns by coding and
categorizing the data in order to move on to the next step which is the analysis or theory
building component of the project.
Surveys, questionnaires, field notes, student writing exercises, teacher writing
experiments, transcribed interviews, transcribed audio and video-taped workshops and
discussions/inquiries constitute the data corpus, and are all components of which fall
under the heading of documents.' The coding and categorizing of this data helped to
identify the patterns and themes by which the assertions were warranted that defined the
investigation and the findings. As Marshall (1995) points out, the review of documents
112
is “rich in portraying the values and beliefs of participants in the setting” (p. 85).
Because the documents represent varied activities ranging from discussion and formal
essays, to interviews, improvisational work, and my reflections on the process, the
documents served to offer breadth and depth to my interpretation.
To identify patterns and themes in the transcribed classroom discussions, I noted
the commonalities among the class members’ responses to the gender issues in the
literature. I also noted the similarities and inconsistencies in particular class members’
responses to similar issues in different literary works. To assess curriculum influences,
I noted the changes occurring over time, or as a result of various teaching approaches or
classroom cultures. I also looked for such patterns and themes in the transcriptions of
my interviews with the focus group members, and in their written and creative
responses.
I paid close attention to the ways in which the focus group members answered
questions during the various data-gathering opportunities. I related one set of data with
another. I considered survey answers in relation to literary analyses, and the
implications of similarities and inconsistencies. I compared the students’ survey-
reported background, family history, future plans, sexual preference, and belief system
with their stated ideas about gender equality, and their written and transcribed oral
responses to the gender issues in the literature. To clarify students’ perspectives, I
noted incidences where subsequent methods o f data collection reinforced earlier
responses reported by different method, or, on the other hand, altered them. In addition,
I also noted incidences where multiple methods of data collection revealed
contradictions in students’ thinking and in their positions. I found that the richest data
came from the contradictions that I discovered at the heart of many of the students’
perspectives and the struggles they reported experiencing as they investigated literary
113
gender issues. I also attempted to compare the data gathered from the larger group with
those gathered from the focus group.
Finally, I continuously considered the students’ responses in the light of my
questions, the literature chosen, the approaches and strategies used, and my feminist
agenda. The data collection and analysis of my own responses was a process of
investigation and discovery of what techniques worked and what didn’t, with my sights
set on discovering and providing information to benefit other educators engaging high
school students in a study of gender issues in literature.
The Interpretation and Presentation of the Data
The presentation of the data in this study can also be seen as part of the data itself. I
have conceptualized the presentation of the data as layered tales using Van Manaan’s
(1988) three-tiered concept in which the “story” is told through three perspectives: the
realist tale, the confessional tale, and the impressionist tale. Using this format allowed
me to weave in and out of the students’ and my perspectives and experiences. It also
allowed me to incorporate alternative renderings o f our literary experiences (e.g., the
dramatic script in Chapter 6). The information derived from individual and group
interviews of the focus group, and the surveys, questionnaires, and improvisations from
both the larger group and the focus group, are presented in the form of a third person
narrated realist’s tale. Woven through this tale is my confessional tale through which I
reflected upon what I was observing and what the students were experiencing as well as
on my role in the teaching and research process. The impressionist’s tale permitted
experimental representation, which is manifested in a sequence of dialogues and
dramatic “scenes” between the students and me. Further discussion follows.
114
Realist Tale
For the study of each literary work, two (a male and a female) focus group
members’ “stories” or experiences with a given literary work are presented by me as I
describe those students’ investigations o f the particular work studied. In most cases,
one student from each class discusses each literary work. The focus is definitely on one
piece of literature at a time, and on the experience that the two highlighted focus group
students (one from each class) had with the work and with the particular teaching
approach used.
Subsumed within a third person realist tale, their voices speak loudly and clearly
their responses to the literature. They speak of their struggles with the literature and
with the feminist approaches to the literature. They also speak of the contradictions,
which troubled their life decisions as well as their responses to gender stereotypes and
androcentrism. Their voices also speak o f their resistances to my pedagogical
approaches and/or my attempts to transform their reading habits and perspectives. Their
stories have not been objectified in a metanarrative constructed by an omniscient
narrator claiming universal, general knowledge (Richardson, 1994). They can be heard
as they tell the stories that combine with or conflict with mine. And, their stories clarify
their opinions as well as their values and beliefs. Together with my story, they help to
identify the pedagogical approaches, which effected consideration and change.
As I presented the students’ perspectives, I tried to resist installing them into
tidy compartments in order to justify a conclusion that I wanted to make about
pedagogy or gender studies. I felt an obligation to let their voices be heard as they
developed through the investigation and discussion of the literary works. I also felt
obliged to let them hear my voice and to let them be changed and enlightened by it.
115
Confessional Tale
These “stories” of the ten focus group participants are woven together with my
own confessional tale (Van Maanan, 1988), through which I have attempted to
communicate the struggles and challenges involved in my study of gender and
relationship in literature with thirty-five students in a suburban high school English
class. Part of my confessional tale is an explanation of my perspectives on the literary
works. In order to introduce each piece of literature, I included not only the reason for
my choice of the work and a synopsis of the piece, but also my feminist literary critique
of the work. The critique elucidated the position that 1 hoped would be understood and
appreciated by the students. During the study, 1 continued to share with the students
any new perspectives that developed out of the investigations of the gender issues in the
literature.
Impressionist Tale
Through the use of an impressionist tale, which Richardson (1994) says is more
likely to recapture an experience than is standard writing, 1 constructed (as noted in the
introduction to this section) a sequence of dialogues and dramatic ‘scenes’ between the
students and me; and between the students and particular characters and critics. For the
most part, I used the students’ words to create these dramatic segments.
Because in the writing of these scenes 1 have taken responses from various
conversations and combined lines from essays, group discussions, improvisational
writings and interviews, these scenes have allowed me to express “what is unsay able in
other circumstances” (Richardson, 1994, p. 521). They are the “messy texts” (Marcus,
1994) which straddle the fence between fact and fiction in experimenting with an
impressionistic approach to data analysis (Van Maanan, 1988)). Since “meaning
changes depending on whether the interview was performed as a lecture, a narrative, [a
play] or a visit.” (St. Pierre, 1995, p. 212), this approach allowed a “shaping [of] an
116
experience without losing the experience” (Richardson, 1994, p. 522). It blended
realist, fictional, poetic and dramatic techniques “to reconstruct the sense of an event
from multiple “as lived” perspectives” (p. 522).
My own responses to the research project and my creative writing as a method
of investigation were stimulated by the desire to develop an emancipatory pedagogical
approach. Most of my writing was part of a search directed toward the development of
strategies that would be effective at raising students’ awareness o f damaging
representations, limiting ideologies, and other evidences of gender inequality. This
search was driven by a desire to contribute some important knowledge to the field of
educational research in order to inform the future practices of others interested in
education for social justice. Because I was often surprised by my students’ positions
and reactions, I was constantly re-writing and re-asking questions, and re-visiting scenes
and characters in the search for an effective presentation of the issues. The effort to
clarify my questions is what I believe to be the part of the experience most valuable to
teachers interested in a feminist approach to literature.
Validity of Data
Scheurich (1996) defines validity as the method or criteria for deciding whose
work is good, acceptable, allowable, meaningful or useful. Validity, he states, “is the
deployment . . . of a division between trustworthy and not trustworthy, a two sided map
which indicates what is considered acceptable and what is considered unacceptable” (p.
3-4). Lather (1986) sees the need for a systematic establishment of trustworthiness of
data. She states “if we want illuminating and resonant theory grounded in trustworthy
data, we must formulate self-corrective techniques that will check the credibility of our
data and minimize the distorting effect of personal bias upon the logic of evidence” (p.
65).
117
Many facts contributed to my need to address the issue of validity in this study.
Firstly, the primary focus of the study was on my own high school students. Secondly,
as the teacher and researcher in the classroom, I selected the literature, teaching
strategies and segments of discussions and responses to be included in the data. Lastly,
as the teacher and researcher, I attempted not only to assess my students’ positions, but
also to guide them toward a feminist consciousness of androcentric literary and social
constructs. For these reasons, I employed methods designed to demonstrate the
trustworthiness of my study and my research techniques.
Credibility and Confirmabilitv
To demonstrate credibility and confirmability, “a match between the constructed
realities o f respondents and the representation of those realities by the researcher”
(Lincoln, 1989, p. 286), I audio-taped and video-taped myself and my students as we
worked through the texts in the course and while we engaged in individual interviews
and group discussions. Credibility and confirmability are essentially achieved where
“more than one participant in the research process can attest to certain experiences
having taken place” (Lincoln and Cuba, 1985, p. 324). Credibility and confirmability
were also achieved through the following: peer debriefing of my interpretations by my
colleague and co-teacher. Miss Margaret Jackson; triangulation of data; prolonged
engagement; disconfirming evidence; and reflexivity. Through these methods, I was
able to confirm that the analyses, interpretations and findings were “grounded in the
events” (p. 324), while also, admittedly, a consequence of my “own personal
constructions” (p. 324).
Peer Debriefing
Peer debriefing confirms that the findings emanating from the inquiry process
were “grounded in events rather than the inquirer’s personal constructions” (p. 324).
Because I was studying my own classroom and my own students, and because my
118
interpretations were key to the description and findings of my own study, the necessity
for peer debriefing was stronger than usual. To insure validity, I engaged “a
disinterested peer in a manner paralleling an analytic session, and for the purpose of
inquiry that might otherwise remain only implicit with the inquirer’s mind” (p. 308).
Margaret Jackson, my colleague and fellow English teacher at Werthlin, was present in
all the classes. Sharing my interpretation of the study with Margaret kept me honest as
she also read, reflected on, and commented on the write-up of the data. It also
broadened my capacity for ‘seeing’ and challenging the suppositions inherent in my
interpretations of what had gone on in the classroom/study. In addition, because
Margaret functioned in the class as a co-teacher, she was invaluable as a sounding board
for many of my struggles and questions.
Margaret's feedback was very important for the validity of the study. Her
objectivity in the classroom stimulated the kind of conversation that fostered thought
and reflection. Her objectivity enlightened me to the value of students’ arguments that I
had overlooked. She read students’ papers and shared conversations about students’
perspectives. She also discussed my interpretations of class dynamics with me.
Triangulation
In addition to peer debriefing, my study meets the criteria of credibility and
confirmability through the triangulation of multiple methods of data gathering. These
methods included: class discussions, the use of a focus group, surveys, questionnaires,
interviews, group discussions, improvisational workshops, written responses, critical
essays, peer debriefing, and self-reflective exploration through journals, field notes and
creative writing as a method of inquiry. The triangulation of multiple data sources
verified the data from discussion, for example, by allowing me to compare findings
from one data source with those in others.
119
Prolonged Engagement
Because I met with the two classes of students three times per week in class for
a semester, and continued to meet with the focus group for private interviews, group
discussions and improvisational workshops for another semester, I also achieved
confirmability through prolonged engagement. The length of the study, combined with
the repeated use o f methods designed to elicit response to multiple literary selections,
provided a pattern, which often confirmed or denied the validity and trustworthiness of
the findings on students’ early responses. Finally, the prolonged engagement with the
group, and my prior engagement with them in the school community, helped to
establish a rapport and a trust which maximized the opportunity for honest responses,
particularly in the interviews (Glesne and Peshkin, 1992; Cuba and Lincoln, 1992).
Disconfirming Evidence
Erickson (1986) has written that to test the evidentiary warrant for an assertion,
the researcher should conduct a systematic search of the entire data corpus, looking for
disconfirming as well as confirming evidence (Erikson, 1986, p. 146). According to
Lather (1993), it is the disconfirming evidence that provides the richest possibility for
data depth. On more than one occasion, disconfirming evidence alerted me to the need
for further inquiry, and led me to revised conclusions. Often, patterns of disconfirming
evidence alerted me to attitudes that students had, but denied and argued against.
Students’ responses to sexism in the literature and to my questions and discussion topics
were varied, and did not fit neatly into tidy classifications. For example, the students’
responses could not always be categorized as “sexist,” “progressive,” “resistant” or
“traditional.” More often than not, their responses suggested their alternation between
these extremes. In addition, the perspectives of authors and characters were often also
difficult to categorize as having an “androcentric” or “feminist” perspective. For
example, Hemingway creates a submissive female character in A Farewell to Arms.
120
while he seems to critique male dominance that brings about such submissive behavior
in “Hills like White Elephants.” In addition, characters like Daisy Buchanan are
complex, embodying submissive and dominant characteristics. The responses of human
beings and the characters created by human beings are always complex. I attempted to
acknowledge that complexity in this study.
Reflexivity
The trustworthiness of my study is enhanced by the focus of my research, which,
in addition to an investigative approach, is a record of my own struggle to awaken my
literature students to the sexist stereotyping and androcentrism that I see in classic
literature and in society. As Glesne and Peshkin (1992) point out, “[m]y subjectivity is
the basis for the story that I am to tell. It is the strength on which I build“ (p. 104).
And, as I have written above, it is the raison d ’être of this research topic, energy and
goal. 1 have followed research scholars’ recommendations by considering subjectivity
as a virtue for this study.
I was able to incorporate what Lather (1986) calls ‘construct validity (p. 67) in
my research design by striving to be aware of, and to record my personal biases so that
they were not unduly privileged in my research, but rather, became one of the topics for
exploration. In order to work with my biases and still organize my work from an
interpretivist paradigm, I was forced to look at my own biases and reconsider my
positions as the starting point for discussion. In the study, I was continually engaged in
a rigorous reflexivity to keep my biases and those of the students in the open, and
subject to the kind of dialectical investigation that promised more enlightened thought
and collaboratively built knowledge for the field. Some of the discoveries made during
the study were simply the documentation of conflicts involving those biases, and I have
not eliminated them from the description. During the study, we essentially developed a
learning community where our biases and perspectives determined our direction, our
121
conversations, and our conclusions. We did not find hard and fast answers, but
unearthed important questions. These questions were important for the design of a
pedagogy that would address the students’ needs as well as attempting to raise their
awareness to sexism in the literature.
Transferability
My hope in conducting a study such as this one is not that any of these
findings’ or interpretations will be generalizable as an exact model for the curriculum
writing for the teaching of gender-responsible American literature. In fact,
“ [generalizabilityj is antithetical to those tenets that undergird the emancipatory
qualitative paradigm” (James-Brown, 1995, p. 90). My goal is to problematize the
status quo, to investigate possibilities, to identify connections and to build more
understanding through collaborative work with specific high school students. My
ultimate objective is to encourage a more critical approach to the reading of literature to
prevent the continued appropriation of patriarchal versions of masculinity and
femininity through literary engagement (Taylor, 1993).
Two Classrooms
The fact that the study was partially conducted with two classrooms enhances
transferability. What educators might see as an anomalous situation in one classroom in
an alternative school may appear to be less so when evident in two classrooms. A
similar response from students in two classrooms suggests the possibility that successful
strategies may be repeated in other classrooms.
Focus Group
Transferability is enhanced by the emphasis on each of the ten focus group
members. Stake (1994), for example, points out that that there is value in a focus on the
individual case “because it is believed that understanding it will lead to better
122
understanding, perhaps theorizing, about a still larger collection of cases” (Stake, 1994,
p. 237). It is my belief that the struggles experienced by the particular focus group
students who are highlighted in this study reflect the experiences of the larger group of
students, and represent the struggles that will be experienced by other adolescent
readers of these texts.
My story is mainly told by means of the individual voices of the ten focus group
members. It is told by highlighting the single literary investigations of these individual
students (a male from one class and a female from another) as they explore the gender
and relationship issues generated in their respective class discussions o f one of seven
literary works. Hopefully, their individual voices resonate with the interests and
responses of others, and hold out the promise of providing valuable insights for
educators dealing with young men and women facing similar issues in the same or
comparable literature. Teachers reading such a study may make distinctions between
their classroom cultures and mine, but see applications for their educational spaces and
for their students.
Lincoln and Cuba (1989) argue that it is not the responsibility o f qualitative
researchers to “specify external validity of an inquiry because they cannot; they can
only provide the thick descriptions necessary to enable someone interested in making a
transfer to reach a conclusion about whether a transfer can be contemplated as a
possibility” (p. 310). In an effort to provide transferability from my study to other
classroom situations, and make my research as trustworthy and relevant as possible, 1
have attempted to provide rich description and make as many connections as I could to
the perceived commonalities in high school classrooms everywhere.
Co-educational Studv
Transferability is also enhanced by the fact that this study has not limited itself
to the investigation of only girls’ responses to gender issues in literature. This study
123
extends the value of the study of gender representation beyond women’s studies
departments and into co-educational high school classrooms. The inclusion of boys into
the dialogue provides teachers in co-educational high school classrooms with useful
data about the ways in which male and female adolescents negotiate gender
representations and textual ideology. A study which includes the responses o f both girls
and boys to literary gender issues may provide a model for literature teachers as they
engage with students of both sexes to explore the ways in which gender impacts on
readers’ responses to and enjoyment of literature.
Reflexive Studv
Lastly, the self-reflexive aspect of this study enhances transferability. It does
this by not only providing data about how boys and girls respond to gender
representations and critical approaches to the text, but also by providing a teacher’s
reflections on her own decisions, her own struggles with the materials and strategies,
and her own analysis of the success and failure of her choices. Such reflexivity
provides of self-analysis important for other educators concerned about how a similar
pedagogical approach might work in their classrooms.
Conclusion
The research design o f this study, its multi-stanced reflective interpretivist
feminist perspective, and its three-tiered approach to the presentation and interpretation
of the data, has allowed me to conduct and present a study which has the potential to
offer new knowledge for the field of gender studies and English education. Because the
design frames the study of the effectiveness of various teaching approaches on students’
awareness of gender issues in literature, it also has the potential to inspire an
emancipatory pedagogy. The validity of the study, brought about by the employment of
124
triangulation, peer debriefing, and reflexivity, insures the transferability of the study to
teachers in other classrooms.
The analysis and the interpretation of the data is included in the following three
chapters, introduced by an explanation of how the three chapters are organized.
125
CHAPTER 4
PREFACE
The Format
The research data is analyzed and interpreted in three chapters: Chapters 4, 5,
and 6. Chapter 4, “Marriage and the Generations,” includes the study of James’
Washington Square. Goldman’s “Love and Marriage,” and Stein’s “The Gentle Lena. ”
Chapter 5, “Images of Romantic Relationships” includes the study of Fitzgerald’s The
Great Gatsbv. Hemingway’s A Farewell To Arm s, and Hurston’s Their Eves Were
Watching God. Chapter 6, “Voices of Men and Women, ” is dedicated to Anderson’s
“The Untold Lie,” and the dramatic portrayal of that literar>' investigation that I wrote as
a method of inquiry.
I have organized the three chapters by dividing them into sections headed by the
title of each literary work investigated. The works are listed in the order in which they
were studied in the course. Each literary piece is introduced by my explanation of why
the piece was chosen, followed by a synopsis and my ‘reading’ of the work and the
‘gender issues’ I identified therein. My readings’ determined pedagogical choices
made, directions taken, and the literary and ideological views that I brought to the
discussions.
Each section is also headed by the names of the students who are featured in
each literary investigation. The “story” of each literary investigation, then, is told by
126
highlighting two focus group students—one focus group participant from each class— to
represent his or her class in the literary discussion of the particular work. Into this
discussion, 1 included my supporting and/or challenging remarks and those of the other
students in the class. Each section/ literary investigation then, includes the analysis of
each focus group participant within the context of the classroom study.
Focus group members were identified to be featured in particular literary
investigations either on the basis of their thoughtful exploration of the particular work,
or their insights concerning significant, recurring issues and questions raised during the
course. Focus group participants, then, elucidate their issues, those issues that surfaced
in their classrooms, and those likely to surface in other classroom investigations of the
specific literary works. In this way, the focus group participants function “evaluatively”
(Goetz and LeCompte, 1984; Cuba and Lincoln, 1981; Patton, 1980), and are
illustrative of “a still larger collection of cases” (Stake, 1994, p. 234).
Although all focus group members, who were selected during the first weeks of
the course, participated in the investigations of all literary works during the course, for
purpose of efficient description, each focus group member is highlighted in the
description of only one literary investigation. Therefore, in order to represent the
breadth as well as the depth of the actual study, I integrated the focus group members’
references to other literature studied in the course with their responses to the particular
literature under investigation. This allowed for a comprehensive investigation of the
students and their responses to gender issues in the corpus o f the literature.
The format of each literary description, or “story” follows the sequence used in
the classroom study of each work. All students’ responses are organized according to
the particular approaches used in the classroom: written responses, discussion and
dialogic investigation, critical writing, responses to critical readings, social imagination
activities (creative writing, drama and art), and final projects. I also included sections
127
on extended discussions and dialogic investigations that took place in interviews with
individual students. Occasionally, 1 have either diverted from this sequence or
combined two approaches (e.g., critical reading and critical writing) if the direction
taken by a particular class required a follow-up more appropriate for the study.
There are several other exceptions to the prescribed format explained above.
Firstly, in Their Eves Were Watching God, the focus is on two girls from one classroom
instead of a boy from one class and a girl from the other, which is the usual model. This
change was based on the way in which visiting professors conducted the study of the
novel in both classes. Secondly, for two literary works (Goldman’s essay, “Love and
Marriage” and Anderson’s short story, “The Untold Lie,”) I have dramatized the
students’ investigations rather than narrating them. I organized’ the material into
dramatic scenes because I believe that this form more clearly illustrates the challenges
encountered by the students and by me during these literary investigations. With the
exception of transitional lines, these dialogues and scenes were developed from the
participants’ responses, taken from the transcripts of interviews, class discussions, or
written work.
The description of the study of “Love and Marriage,” read early in the course, is
included in Chapter 4 to elucidate students’ development during the study. The “Love
and Marriage” section combines written and verbal responses of students in the larger
group (both classes) to illustrate the ways in which the students responded to the various
points on love and marriage made by Goldman. “The Untold Lie ” features all members
of the focus group instead of highlighting one from each class. In addition, the focus
group continued the work begun on the study of “The Gentle Lena” beyond the
classroom in group discussions and improvisational workshops. An explanation of that
portion of the study is included at the end of the section on “The Gentle Lena” in
Chapter 4.
128
In addition to the studies of each o f the literary works by the highlighted
students, there is the analysis and interpretation o f initial and concluding surveys
administered to the larger group of thirty-five. The discussion of the final survey is
included in a Postscript following Chapter 6. The following is a discussion of the initial
survey.
Initial Surveys
In order to evaluate students’ development as critical respondents to gender
issues in literature over the course of my study, I administered a survey (Appendix A) to
all students before beginning the investigation of the gender representations and
ideologies in the literary works.
Part One of the survey was designed to assess the students’ educational
background as it relates to gender studies (familiarity with feminism: terms, concepts,
history, goals) and to indicate the level of awareness of gender issues. The questions
were designed to help me to determine the ground upon which to meet the students in
the forthcoming study. The following table illustrates the students’ responses
RESPONSES TO PART ONE (Background in Gender Studies)
% Understanding ‘gender’ and ‘sex’ as synonymous100%
% Having experienced minimal gender-related education5%
% Understanding the word “feminism” in a negative light 90%
% Seeing gender as a combination o f biological and social influences
90%
% Feeling limited by labels of masculine/feminine behavior5%
Table 4.1 Responses to Initial Survey (Part One)
129
In the survey, students reported that they had received no formal education on
identifying sex role stereotypes in literature or sexist images in advertising. They also
reported that they had been exposed to some literature written by women, but had been
introduced to no formal study of the history of women’s literature or women’s history
per se, prior to their entrance into high school. Since entering high school, there had
also been no formal study of images of men and women in the media, women’s
literature, or women’s history. Four students in the group of thirty-five reported that
one high school history teacher had included information about women suffrage while
covering the struggle for the right to vote in America. Two students referred to an
English teacher who occasionally addressed women’s issues in discussions of stories
read in his class.
None of the students was able to make a distinction between gender (socially
constructed characteristics) and sex (biologically determined characteristics) and most
initially saw them as synonyms. However, all but three reported that, although they
thought that biology accounted for sexual differences, they saw some behaviors as the
result of socialization. Only one of the thirty-five students reported that he would
identify himself as a feminist, and that student was male. Several did point out that they
shared some feminist ideas, and were sympathetic to some causes, but did not want to
be called ‘feminists.’ Most students saw the word “feminist” in a negative light.
None admitted that he or she was personally limited or troubled by expectations
for ‘masculine’ or feminine’ roles or behaviors, and several stated that they believed
that most gender discrimination was passé, .although students listed traditional
characteristics such as ‘quiet,’ soft,’ ‘sensitive,’ ‘compassionate,’ ‘helpless’ and
‘manipulative’ among feminine characteristics, and ‘com petitive,’ ‘egotistical,’
‘intimidating,’ patronizing,’ strong’ and ‘logical’ among the masculine traits
130
Several female students admitted that getting women into more positions of
political power would be good and a positive step for women. Most o f the boys
reported that women now had the rights to be whatever they wanted to be, and that there
was no longer a need for quotas to assist women in gaining jobs or equality.
Part Two of the intial survey dealt with essay questions designed to evaluate
students’ experiences reading classic literature that may have involved a gender gap.
The questions in this part of the survey were designed to determine students’ reading
experiences and to help them to monitor their reading practices and their responses to
the representation of gender. The responses were less definitive than those given in Part
One of the survey and leant themselves more easily to a narrative description than a
table.
The majority of the older students claimed that when reading across historical
periods, they often dismissed gender or sexist issues in the literature as indicative of a
bygone society, thereby using an intellectual approach to bridge the gap between their
culture and the literary one. Some claimed the ability to empathize emotionally with the
human condition, or make connections on the basis of similar experiences they were
able to share with the characters. The younger students claimed that they did not have
enough reading experience to answer this question. And, of the students who answered
the question, none reported having had the experience of being drawn into a story while,
at the same time, resisting it on some personal, cultural, or ethical grounds. Thus, they
had not yet experienced Bogdan’s (1992) “misrecognition scene.”
After the administration of the surveys, I selected the focus group participants. I
then administered an initial questionnaire (Appendix D) to the focus group participants
in order to gather in-depth demographic information, educational background, reading
habits; and students’ sexual preferences, sexual activity, and attitudes about feminism
131
and gender equity from the group o f ten. This information is included in the
descriptions of each focus group student highlighted in the following three chapters.
Following the administering o f the surveys and questionnaires, the students in
the two classrooms and I began the course with the reading of Washington Square.
While I was frank throughout the course about my perspectives on each piece of
literature and the gender representation and governing patriarchal ideology therein, I did
not begin the class by defining my feminist politics. I was interested in fostering an
open dialogic encounter with the students, and in stimulating questions and the art of
problematizing. I did not want to declare my perspectives out of the context of the
discussions of the gender issues in the literary works. Basically, however, over the
course of the study, my perspectives on gender equality became clear (See Chapter I.
For list of perspectives in the ‘Rationale.’ section).
With this information informing my course design, I began the study of the
literature that is interpreted in the following pages of this and the subsequent two
chapters. At the end of the course, I administered a final survey to the larger group and
a final questionnaire to the focus group participants. The results o f the final survey will
follow the literary discussions in the comprehensive interpretation of the data. Here, the
final surveys then can be seen in reference not only to the intial surveys but also to the
literary investigations in which the students and I engaged.
Results from the final questionnaire administered to the focus group are included
in the section in which the particular focus group students are highlighted, and also in
the section at the end of Chapter six which focuses on final responses of focus group
members to the final survey, the final questionnaire, and a final improvisational
workshop in which they participated.
132
CHAPTER 4
MARRIAGE AND THE GENERATIONS
Learning to read and write against the grain . . . is therefore about learning to read and write against conventions that construct women in ways that are demeaning and restricting. It is about learning to read and write in ways that offer constructions of female subjectivity that are not fixed and static, but are dynamic and shifting. It is about learning to understand the discursive construction of subjectivity and the potential spaces for resistance and rewriting.
Gilbert and Taylor, 1991. p. 150
“Literature and the ways that we talk about it have the power to define
what we perceive as acceptable in our culture.”
Pace and Townsend, 1999, p. 43
Introduction
This initial chapter in which data is analyzed and interpreted is comprised of the
investigations of three works: James’ Washington Square. Goldman’s “Love and
Marriage,” and Stein’s “The Gentle Lena.” These three literary works were the first
three works investigated in the study. They are grouped together not only because they
follow in chronological order, however, but also because they all deal with the theme of
“Marriage and the Generations. ”
Students investigated this theme and the ways in which the particular authors
dealt with it during the study of the three works.
133
WASHINGTON SQUARE
By Henry James
DECONSTRUCTING STEREOTYPES
CANDY AND MAYNARD
When we recognize that complex Jamesian judgments are. in many cases, universizable, we recognize something important about the way in which a novel offers ethical education and stimulates the ethical imagination. □
Nussbaum, 1990, p. 38
Propositions about women can tell us nothing, then, until we ask. Who utters them? In what circumstances? In what tone? With what qualification by other utterances? And, most important of all: What is the quality of our emotional response, point by point and overall?
Booth, 1988, p. 399
Choice
I selected this piece because of the importance given to the author in the American canon. It is the shortest of his pieces and the one studied in high school when James’ work is part of the high school curriculum. I began with James as he is chronologically first in a study of early twentieth century writers. I think his work is important to this study because he is concerned with women’s place in the society of his time and with the conventions of marriage and the family.
Svnopsis
Catherine Sloper, James’ heroine in Washington Square, is the heiress to the combined fortunes of her father, and her wealthy, deceased mother. Dr. Sloper resents his extremely devoted daughter, whom he deems to be plain and dull-witted. So, when the dashing Morris Townsend comes to call on Catherine, her thrill at being courted by such a handsome suitor is only surpassed by her father's suspicion about Morris’ motives.
After Sloper finds Morris to be financially dependent, he works to break the engagement, first, forbidding Catherine from seeing Morris; then, forcing a separation by taking Catherine to Europe; and eventually withdrawing her inheritance. Catherine, deeply in love with Morris, chooses to have her lover with or without the money. The irony of course was that the doctor is not only righteous but also right. Predictably, Morris betrays Catherine with a refusal to marry her once she is disinherited.
Morris’ betrayal causes Catherine an unfathomable deepening of sorrow. However, when Morris does return after Sloper’s death to ask for her hand once again, she refuses him. Although she loses her faith and her interest in romance for the future, this act allows her to reclaim her lost dignity. She lives out the rest of her life, contentedly, as a single woman caring for children and doing charitable works.
134
Mv Reading
In Washington Square. Henry James contests social institutions in America,
particularly the manipulation of women in romantic and marital relationships.
According to Nussbaum (1990), in the novella, as in The Bostonians. James holds up
the station of women for examination and “shows the ethical crudeness of moralities
based exclusively on general rules (p. 37). In Jam es’ polite New York City society,
women are powerless pawns in the mating game, with only beauty guaranteeing them
worthy admirers. Because Catherine Sloper is neither beautiful nor clever. Dr. Sloper
asserts that “love and romance would not be a man’s motivator for her hand” and that
she could only expect to attract a man by means of her fortune. He prevents that from
happening without much of an initial struggle from Catherine. Through the struggle
between Dr. Sloper and Morris for Catherine’s soul and money, James depicts his
heroine as a commodity in a battle in which she is squeezed into near oblivion between
her father and her suitor.
James created the dramatic irony that exposes the cruelties of the social system
and its main characters. He did this by means o f a third person narrator, whose
disclosure of the inconsistencies between Sloper’s view of Catherine and her own
dignity, raises Catherine to the stature of heroine, while damning Sloper and Townsend
as villains. In the end, James has Catherine triumph with integrity as she grows beyond
victimization and a childish worshipping of her father, to transcend the forces working
against her.
135
CANDY (AJVI.)
Sexism is a moral issue. The mindframe of one sex being superior should be changed. All people are th e same. We are equal. I think it is ridiculous that men dominated relationships. I try not to let my relationships be that way. Candy
Like I always ask the guys I am dating, like a lot of times, like are you sure that you really like me or are you ju st using me? Candy
Candy is an attractive, sixteen year-old junior. She has an exotic look, with high
cheekbones, carefully applied make-up, and long black hair. She is always coifed and
stylishly dressed and most often surrounded by the circle of male and female friends
with whom she seems to enjoy easy relationship and communication. Interestingly,
however, in my class. Candy sat quietly in the back of the room and burrowed safely
and comfortably into the woodwork from September through January. She did not utter
more than three sentences throughout the entire fall semester, and those were uttered in
response to questions specifically directed at her. Neither did her non-verbal
communication suggest any interest in the subject or literature at hand. She seemed
disinterested. For this reason, I chose her as a student to interview.
In our conversations, as I attempted to “probe the many reasons for the silence,”
she claimed that her silence had nothing to do with the fact that her particular class was
top-heavy with extremely conversational boys—boys who may have intimidated her
and many of the other girls into silence (Gilligan, 1982; Pipher, 1990; Sadker and
Sadker, 1994). “I have never talked in class,” she said. “It doesn’t have anything to do
with the fact that there are guys in the class, it’s just that there are a lot of people in the
class. I just don’t like talking in front of big groups of people.” According to her, she is
confident and isn’t afraid of what others are going to think or that she will make a fool
of herself. “It just really bothers me and I am real scared of it basically for some
reason,” she said. She claimed that she believes, as do all of the other students
136
interviewed, that her silence and the silence of the other girls in the morning class was
due to the fact that she and most of the other girls were just very quiet people by nature.
Others also agreed that there were few naturally quiet boys in the class.
Candy is not at a loss for words, however. She had much to say in the one-on-
one conversations. In fact, although she described herself as quiet, she said that her
close friends think o f her as loud and funny. In addition, she is a prolific writer who
does not hold back her many and strong opinions in writing. She wrote lengthy
responses to the readings and class activities throughout the course. Most staff
members have experienced this verbal/written inconsistency. One teacher calls her an
introvert who opens up when asked the right questions. While I apparently never asked
the right questions in class, I had more success in the interviews. She was extremely
forthcoming during our conversations about gender issues and literature. Her classroom
silence on literary characters and situations proved to be an ineffective yardstick for the
measurement of either her engagement with or her interest in the literature or the gender
issues.
I found Candy to have an interesting combination of characteristics. On the one
hand she projected a feminine deference when she spoke of her boyfriends and
relationships; on the other hand. She had a strong no-nonsense intolerance for any kind
of poor treatment from the opposite sex. For example, during a conversation about
Daisy Buchanan in The Great Gatsbv. she expressed strong irritation at the way that
Daisy silently accepted Tom’s cheating and bad treatment without really doing anything
about it. “She should have left him, that’s what she should have done,” said Candy.
She clearly connected with Daisy and took her part (Golden and Guthrie, 1986; Tierney
and Pearson, 1983). This independent Candy sees herself as having characteristics that
are more masculine than feminine. She calls herself independent in relationships and
reports that if someone cheated on her or hit her she would not say, “oh, it’s ok, sweetie,
137
don’t worry about it” or suffer in silence like Daisy, and so many other traditional
literary heroines did (Walkerdine, 1984, p. 182). “I’m gonna get mad, that’s what I’m
gonna do, and I’m either gonna leave or kick some ass.”
She expressed similar sentiments when discussing Their Eves Were Watching
God. She claimed that if Jody had hit her like he hit his wife, Janie, that she would hit
him back. “I don’t let people tell me what to do,” she said. That’s just the way it is.
You’ve gotta tell them what to do. You’ve got to put them in their place.” While she
definitely sees her friends being controlled by boyfriends and letting them dominate, she
says she tries not to let her relationships be that way. She attributes her strength to the
fact that nobody has ever told her what to do ever since she was little. She also
attributes her strength to her mother, who has raised her and her older sister since her
parents’ divorce when she was four.
Candy resists the notion that women are fragile and can’t speak or do things for
themselves, and believes that “women are Just as capable of leading relationships as
men are.” She believes in her own independence and complains about the fact that so
many girls are not independent, or don’t know how to be, and don’t think that they can
do things on their own. She expresses a belief in the construction of gender as opposed
to a biological imperative (Butler, 1999; Davis, 1992; Gilbert and Taylor, 1991; Lewis,
1990; Martino, 1995; Obbink, 1992; Walkerdine, 1984) when she says, “girls just need
to learn how to do things for themselves. If a lot of people did, all of a sudden it would
become like this independent gender and we would not show as much need for men.
Then, I think it would change because the view of women would change.” She thinks
that marriage may be good if you find the right person, but she personally doesn’t think
that she will get married.
Candy, like so many of the other students, made the strongest connections with
fictional characters with whom she shared some common traits and/or circumstances
138
(Rosenblatt, 1978). Interestingly, however, she saw her connections with Daisy Fay
Buchanan tGatsbv^ and Janie ("Their Eves Were Watching God) on the basis of the more
dependent side of herself. She reported connecting with them on the basis of the fact
that both of the women were chosen by their husbands because of their beauty and little
else. A recurrent theme in Candy's conversations, in addition to her pride in her
independence, was the view that she is used by guys who are more interested in her
looks than anything else. “With lots of relationships,” she said, I basically feel like I am
just a trophy, and that is all I am and that is all I am worth to anyone.” When asked
what it means to be a trophy, she replied that “they don’t really care about how I am on
the inside, and nobody really takes the time to get to know me.” Candy said that when
she talks they hear what she says but they are not really listening. She said that this
kind of treatment makes her feel like that is all that she is worth. She feels that although
she looks the part of the ’typical girl’ and that many think of her that way, she is totally
different on the inside.
According to her, having been used as a trophy has resulted in her losing trust in
guys. This loss of trust, unfortunately, has relegated her to a place where at the level of
desire (Walkerdine, 1984), instead of being able to sustain her conscious identification
of herself as an independent young woman, she is inclined to question her self-worth.
She is also inclined to give over her power to the guys with whom she is involved
(Lewis. 1990; Brown and Gilligan, 1992). “I always ask them a lot of times,” she said,
“are you sure you really like me or are you just using me? I ask them so many times
because I just don’t trust them. They can tell me that they are not using me as much as
they want, but 1 just don’t believe them.” Somehow, even for this independent girl, the
guys are still seeing girls mainly in terms o f looks (Wolf, 1991) and determining the
female reactions, setting the tone, and calling the shots. Considering her view of herself
as one who is used by guys and questionning her self worth as a result, it is not
139
surprising that in addition to relating to Daisy and Janie, she also connected strongly
with Catherine Sloper from Henry James’ Washington Square (Rosenblatt, 1978).
Written Responses
Candy’s connection with Catherine was among the bits of information she
provided in response to my prompts to elicit the students’ initial written responses to the
literature (Appendix C). The prompts were:
1 .In terms of gender representation, are men and women and the love relationship(s) portrayed realistically? Could this story take place today?
2. Did you relate to any characters? Relationships? How? If not, what were the issues that made relating with the characters or relationships difficult?
3. Did you find that your difficulty to connect with characters or relationships (due to culture-based 1 gender disparities) affected your appreciation of the text?
4.What do you think the author’s point is in this story? What is his/her attitude toward main characters in this story?
Because I had wanted unmediated responses. Candy and the other students
answered the questions without the benefit o f introductory discussion about the novel
(Soter, 1997). Because we had not yet engaged in any conversations about the book I
was uncertain about their reactions to Washington Square per se.
1 used the prompts to 1). Focus the students’ attention on gender issues in
literature itself, 2). Determine students’ connections to the characters, 3). Determine
whether and to what extent these older gender representations/ ideologies diminished an
appreciation of the literary work, and, 4). Determine what students believed to be the
author's attitude about the scenarios and characters created. I wondered: Would they
find Catherine Sloper an anachronism? Would they see any connection between her
relationship with Morris Townsend and relationships they witness today? Would they
find Catherine’s relationship with her father irrelevant by today’s standards? Would
these anomalies jeopardize students’ enjoyment of the novel? Would they be able to
interact (Iser, 1983)? Would they pick up on James’ critique o f the culture?
140
Initial responses indicated that with the exception of Candy and a few others,
most of the boys and girls in the morning class had difficulty with the novella. Half of
the students in the class volunteered their dislike for it in written responses. Although
more than half of the class reported that the story was “realistic for its time,” most
students reported that it was difficult to relate to the novella at all due to the fact that
“things have really changed and things are really different now.” They cited longer
courtships before marriage and diminished parental authority in their own society as
two examples of things that are different now. Almost all of the students, with the
exception of Alicia and Ellen (two immigrant girls who described their families as
traditional), had trouble understanding the kind of authoritarian father Catherine had.
Students also reported that they also found the novella difficult to relate with
because of what they called Henry James’ wordy and old-fashioned writing style. They
judged it to be slow, too descriptive, and too long. Students reported that they “were
quickly bored with it,” “were anxious for it to end,” and “would have stopped reading it
altogether but for the fact that it had been assigned.” “There wasn’t a whole lot of
style,” said Dale, one of the focus group participants in the A M class. “And, you’ve
gotta have style.”
In spite of their general rejection of the novel, like Candy, the majority did
report connecting with Catherine Sloper as she was portrayed in the earlier part of the
novella. Almost two-thirds of the boys and girls in the class related with Catherine on
the basis of their sympathy for her oppression by her father and her betrayal by Morris.
However, only one boy and none of the girls (including Candy) in the morning class
related with the Catherine who became strong in the end. Most of the students didn’t
see James’ critique of the treatment of women and patriarchal courtship in the novella.
They judged Catherine as flawed because of her eventual choice to be alone, and
indicated that that she was responsible for being ‘emotionally dead’ at the end because
141
of her inability to move on. I concluded that the kind of resolution offered by James
might have been jolting to these readers. I assumed that they were more familiar with
romances in which endings either find the suffering heroine taken out of her misery and
rescued by the ‘prince,’ or abandoned in loss to pick up the pieces and start another
relationship (Walkerdine, 1984). Washington Square does not end with its heroine’s
triumph through love or even the hope of new romance, but rather in her triumph
through dignity, bom of acceptance, humility, survival and self-sufficiency. The
students’ disappointment and lack of understanding for Catherine’s singular status and
apparent contentment at the end of the novella echoed the confusion expressed by Dr.
Sloper and Morris Townsend who also question her decision not to ever marry.
In their written responses, all of the girls in Candy’s morning class rejected the
idea that the kind of sexism evident in Washington Square was at all present in their
lives. A few cited some difficulty bridging the cultural gap threatened their
appreciation of the book, saying such things as: “people no longer assume anything
about anyone because of age, race or gender but by personality.’’ However, most of
them used the rationale of the cultural gap to resolve the issue. One student stated that
“at first it was hard [to relate] with the book because I believe in total equality, but
since it was written so long ago, I tried to understand.”
Candy concurred with the girls, finding the relationship between Morris and
Catherine only realistic today in terms of the fact that some people still enter into
relationships for money. She, like most of the other students, however, found the
characterizations “realistic for their time,” although not for the present time. Ellen was
the only one in this class who found no cultural gap, claiming “I think that no matter
how old the book is, women and men have certain characteristics that will never go
away.”
142
Responses from the boys in the morning class echoed the girls’ responses in
terms of a difficulty with cultural differences. “Things like this happened a hundred
years ago but not today,’’ said one boy, and “men don’t think they are better than
women anymore, ” declared another. In addition, the boys often expressed value
judgments about the ways in which Catherine was treated, which none o f the girls did.
"I didn't like the way the Dr. made Catherine seem worthless. Men had so much power over women. Catherine had no power."
“I fe lt pity for Catherine. She was being abused by both men."
All o f th e women seemed like objects as if they couldn't think for themselves."
“Women then had no say. They lived their lives for men. Their fathers chose the mates and they were like property. I t was terrible!"
One boy, however, held Catherine somewhat accountable for her victimization
by writing that “it was a pity that she allowed herself to be conned.’ And, another boy
expressed an awareness of and a reaction to the fact that “men looked like bastards in
the book. ” Only one boy in this class expressed the belief that Catherine’s submissive
status and the fact that she was judged on her beauty, were things that he sees in
everyday life today.
Interestingly, Candy would eventually rate her connection with Catherine as the
strongest of all connections with the literary characters read, because she too had been
“used by guys, not for money but for other things.” However, the connection would be
a one-on-one, personal one. She did not see the connection within the wider context of
a patriarchal society that, in my opinion, still defines women’s roles as submissive and
men’s roles as dominant in relationships. Her failure to see this as a pervasive cultural
problem may have been due to the competing and more consciously accepted image of
herself as a spirited, independent girl who is anything but oppressed by guys (Lewis,
1992). “I have no gender or sexist issues so they didn’t affect what I thought of the
143
book,” she said. Though she knew she “had been used by guys,” she didn’t connect that
or the fact that she “was only appreciated for her looks,” with male dominance in
society or with W olfs (1991) beauty myth.
In addition. Candy had difficulty seeing what I believed to be James’ feminist
project. Unlike many other students, who claimed that “James was just telling a story,“
she did express in one interview, that James seemed like a feminist at the end of
Washington Square, but that she did not think he was at the beginning. She explained
that “in the beginning, Catherine was still listening to her father and doing what he told
her to do and didn’t start changing until the middle or end part.” She felt that later,
James was more of a feminist “because at the end she was fine by herself.” She
explained that when Catherine made the decision that she didn’t want the guy and she
didn’t want the money, she was happy just alone.” My suggestion that Catherine, the
victim,’ and Catherine, The sadder but wiser’ woman, fit together as two sides of the
same character created by the same author had no immediate effect on her. Though
Candy was beginning to see beyond the story as story, she and most of the others were
still resistant to consider the hand or the mind of the artist in the construction of the
story. Though she appreciated Catherine’s growth, she could accept that the story was
■feminist’ only if the character was 'feminist’ or independent and strong.
Discussion
The initial discussion on Washington Square confirmed some of Candy’s fears
about men using women—especially for sex and beauty. The discussion also succeeded
in putting into question some of the written responses which argued that the kind of
sexism evident in Washington Square was at all present in their lives. Although nearly
all of the students sympathized with Catherine, many boys said they easily understood
why a plain girl such as Catherine Sloper would not get many suitors (Lewis, 1990).
Many of the boys also understood why Dr. Sloper would want to protect his plain
144
daughter from being used by gold diggers like Morris. They assumed the father knew
that men would not be interested in her for anything but her money. They explained
that physical attraction is more important for boys than it is for girls. One male student
admitted that he aspired to being the character in the story who married the lovely
cousin whose beauty was constantly contrasted with Catherine’s awkward plainness.
Believing that James was making a critical statement about a social system
which, among other things, focuses on external decoration at the expense of internal
beauty, I was disappointed to hear this student’s opening remarks over one hundred
years after James’ critique. I was particularly discouraged because I had decided to
begin the course with Henry James’s novella mainly because of what I saw as its not-so-
subtle challenge to women’s inferior status in turn of the twentieth century New York
society. 1 also saw the easy application of this challenge to women’s status at the
beginning of the twenty-first century. 1 believed that through this James novella, 1
could gently introduce the students to the subject of gender relations in romance, and
engage them in the beginnings of a conversation about the ethical implications of
gender inequality in literature and in their lives. 1 hoped to do this by referring to
characters engaged in, or victimized by sexist activity as critiqued by James. I assumed
his attitude to be closer to their 21st century paradigm than the perspectives evident in
some of the literature to follow. However, many students’ early responses indicated
either a difficulty with or a resistance to apprehending authorial attitude and, like
Harper’s (2000) girls, a lack of sympathy for victims of sexism and the double standard.
Though their comments echoed Morris’s, they were blind to the connection between
themselves and the objects of James’ critique.
As we shall see more clearly in the P M . discussion of the novella, Howard, a
student from the P.M. class and focus group participant, suggested in his initial written
response that he had seen evidence of the story’s stereotypical and sexist behaviors in
145
his own life. He claimed that boys were still more interested in girls’ looks than in
anything else; that girls were still often used as trophies; that they were often seen as
second class citizens; and that fathers still controlled girls more than boys. Thinking
that this connection might inspire a similar recognition in the students in the morning
class, I shared his response with them. Students in the class did not take up that
discussion for more than a few minutes, preferring the topic of ‘marrying for money.’
For the time being, most o f the students in this class were not making strong
connections between the sexism in the story and any in present day society, even though
their verbal responses indicated continued sexism. For the most part, they focused on
financial issues and comforted themselves with the belief that these issues were
predominantly affecting the upper classes. People like them, in the middle classes, had
a better chance of marrying for love, they argued. Marrying for love was, for this
group, the only reason to marry. There was some discussion about the possibility that
Catherine and Morris could learn to love each other, and could be happy together in
spite of Morris’s initial love for Catherine’s money. However, most of the students
spoke from within the discourse that valorized a romantic ideology untarnished by any
practical considerations. Confirming the research, they believed that “in the long run,
sexual relations are ultimately channeled into monogamous relationships within a
context of romantic love ” (Taylor, 1993, p .133).
Critical Readings
Continued discussion of the book led my co-teacher Margaret Jackson and me to
the realization that James’ style, his upper class characters, and the time frame of the
novel, resulted in some confusions about not only plot and characterizations, but also
authorial perspective. We were disappointed that so many students had given so little
thought to the book’s possible meanings, had missed some important points of plot and
146
characterization, had been blind to the tone, with little interest in determining James’
perspective.
I uphold Rosenblatt’s (1995/1938) view that “[l]iterature speaks to the reader in
literary experience because o f the synthesis of what the reader already knows and feels
with what the literary text offers” (p. 259). My students’ responses, however, did not
show the responsibility to the text that Rosenblatt insisted upon. Therefore, I decided to
encourage critical response by encouraging Bogdan’s (1992) call for students to
“supplant initial responses to a story with a more precise measuring of their responses
against a closer look at the text” (p. 121). She recommends re-reading texts, reflecting
on responses, and reading literary criticism as ways to begin to move students into the
critical realm. As the book was too long for a re-reading, I opted, at this point, to share
some critical readings with the students. My solution was to distribute critical readings
to them so that they could benefit from some scholarly perspectives, and possibly
expand their literary critical horizons.
I selected two critical pieces, one by Blackmur (1962) and another by
Wagnenknecht (1983). Essentially, they were meant to engage the students in critical
thinking about the literature, and provide models for ways of thinking about the story. I
included what I saw as Blackmur’s position that “Catherine had been progressively
tampered with . . . and eventually tampered with herself in response to all of these
tamperings” (p. 10), and Wagenknecht’s (1983) contrasting argument that “Catherine
alone among the characters in this novel, was capable of growth” (p. 72). The articles
did not effect too many changes. After the reading, most of the boys reiterated their
disappointment that Catherine “didn’t have a man in the end,” that she “blew Morris off
in the end,” that she was “responsible for being alone in the end,” and that “she should
have allowed Morris to come back. ” One summed up many of the boys’ responses by
saying:
147
I f I were to rewrite the book, and edit what I wanted, I would have changed th e ending. In James’ ending, Catherine ends up alone and miserable. James leaves the reader thinking that she’ll not fall in love again, which I thought to be a pathetic end to a so-so book. Instead, Catherine should have been out and about looking for a true love in a new suitor. I found it humorous that James let the tamperage that Catherine received turn her into a failure, which is what her father perceived her to be.
He and one other girl from the class agreed that Washington Square had no
deeper meaning. The student wrote that she didn’t really understand why all the critics
were trying to get something out of the book. She didn’t think James meant anything by
the book. “He just sat down and decided to write a book,” she said. Many of the girls,
on the other hand, had different responses that, in my estimation, reflected some literary
growth on their part. One said that Catherine was a heroine in the end, risking the
mainstream way and not getting married. She suggested that she “became a role model
for all those girls.” And, another said, “Catherine did not need Morris to complete her
cycle.” Candy was one of the students whose ideas about the book developed as a result
o f the critical reading. This growth was particularly evident in her critical essays.
Critical Essav
When Candy had the opportunity to complete the assignment which involved
reacting to two critiques of Washington Square, she began to see the novella somewhat
more holistically, as a story dealing with the growth of the female protagonist from
dependent victim to an independent and self sufficient woman. Reading the critiques by
Blackmur (1962) and Wagenknecht (1983) clarified her own opinion on Catherine and
caused her to begin to see James’ hand in the narrative from beginning to end. The
writing of the paper helped her to capitalize on her strong connection with, and
sympathy for Catherine. It led her to develop a challenge to Blackmur’s (1965/1962)
claim that Catherine “tampered with herself . . . and tampered so deeply that she
excludes herself from all ordinary life” (p. 10). In challenging his opinion she also
148
challenged some of the students who did not appreciate Catherine’s growth and
development in the book. This challenge represented her own rejection of other
students' idea that Catherine was emotionally dead at the end of the story. For her, it
seemed that blaming Catherine for what happened to her was tantamount to taking the
responsibility off the two men who were complicit in implicating her in a misogynistic
game of romance which in my opinion, James saw clearly and critiqued memorably.
She was beginning to interact with the text.
I believe that her struggle with Blackmur (1962) represented a struggle between
her own subconscious fantasy to be desired, loved and appreciated in relationship, and
her conscious belief in her own self-sufficiency (Brown and Gilligan, 1992). It also
represented her own struggle between her penchant for deferring to boyfriends’
opinions of her, and a growing awareness that that such capitulation is often done at the
expense of a woman's self-respect (Lewis, 1992). Finally, it represented a growth for
Candy that was similar to the growth experienced by Catherine. As a result of the
paper. Candy reported an awareness of a connection with Catherine that was based not
only on her deferential self, but on that side of herself that she so valued, and that she
now saw in Catherine -her independence.
By adopting Wagenknecht’s (1983) assertion that “Catherine’s great virtue lay
in the fact that she alone among the characters, was capable of growth’’ (p. 74), Candy
showed that she had brought together a pity for Catherine for missing the experience of
love, with a pride in her for turning Morris down in the end. Although Candy shared
with Catherine the dubious distinction of having been used by men as either trophies or
money magnets, it seemed to me, if not to Candy, that she also shared with her the
strong, independent nature which made itself known, by the end of the novel. In the
final analysis. Candy had begun to tap into her own independent side to connect with
the independent Catherine by means of the writing assignment.
149
Continued Discussion (Interview)
Because I also wanted to raise students’ awareness of their own personal gender
issues, I had hoped that the novel would also have served as a vehicle for Candy’s
investigation of the anomaly at the center of her personal life and the social forces that
constructed it (Hines, 1997; Rogers, 1997). That anomaly was characterized by the fact
that she played the role of the typical girl, while insisting that she was not really like
that on the inside. It was also characterized by the fact that she formed her self-concept
from the ways in which males attended to her, while insisting that she was in charge.
That anomaly was still not obvious to her. Neither the preliminary discussion, nor the
critical reading and writing had stimulated a recognition of the formation o f Candy’s
own subject position as the passive party in her own personal relationships, or the
society's part in the construction of gender roles which privilege men.
I continued to struggle to understand what prevented her from seeing boys
“using her,’’ “not listening to her,’’ and “not caring what she was like on the inside’’ as
gender issues for consideration for her and other girls and boys living today. I even
asked her if she thought that she might be selecting the wrong partners or if she had
asked enough of these boys, as I had thought she deserved more, and should be
conscious of that. To her credit, she did consider the possibility of this. However, I
suspected that the answer lay deep within preconstructed fantasy levels about what it
means for a teenage girl to be ‘feminine’ and for a boy to be ‘masculine’ within a
heterosexual paradigm (Davies, 1992; Walkerdine, 1984). I also imagined that the
existence of such fantasy levels fit together somehow with her negative attitudes about
‘feminism,’ her resistance about being identified with feminists, and her belief in her
own independence (Harper, 2000). While she claimed that her experience with boys
made her “look on guys as the whole male gender,’’ she still stated after the writing
exercise that she did not identify herself as a feminist.’ She, like Harpers’s (2000)
150
girls, argued that she had no gender issues in her life, and that as a rule she does not
resist sexist stereotypes in either literature or in life. In fact, she said, “I might even
reinforce them by being an ‘extreme girl’ as far as appearance, clothes and make up
go.
I feared that for Candy some resistance to feminism may even have been
reinforced a bit by having read Washington Square. Where a more traditional happy
ever after’ situation might have acted to temporarily resolve Candy’s conflicting
feminine identity issues by satisfying her desires for love and relationship, Washington
Square may have served to locate Candy in the middle of her struggle between romantic
fantasy and a more self-sufficient identity (Brown and Gilligan, 1992; Davies;
Walkerdine, 1984; 1992). Walkerdine points out that while feminist texts “might well
provide the vehicle of an alternative vision, for some readers, they may feed or fuel
resistance to the feminist alternative unless other fantasy resolutions are offered by the
text, fantasy resolutions that somehow operate on the level of desire and not reason”
(Walkerdine, 1984). Candy and others may have been experiencing a conflict between
a desire for knowledge and their embodiment as sexually desirable human beings,
which, according to Lewis (1990), lies just below the surface in a feminist classroom.
“Feminist politics,” says Lewis, “confront the compromises many women (and girls)
have made in their lives and in their relationships with men (and boys) (p. 481). Brown
and Gilligan (1992) found this to be true in their study of high school girls. They
pointed out that one by one, the girls revealed the inner division they experience in
adolescence as they feel compelled to “dismiss their experience and modulate their
voices in making the compromise between a relationship with themselves and other
women, and their romantic relationships with boys (p. 7).
Williamson (1981) states that “we cannot teach ideologies—or even teach about
ideologies, but only try to bring students to an understanding from their own
151
experiences of the way that we are all caught up in ideological processes in our
everyday lives”(p- 137). Drawing from this point, I proceeded with some activities that
would promote experiences which I hoped would stimulate Candy’s personal
recognition (Dewey, 1922) and that of the others.
Social Imagination Activities
Humans develop through time and may only come to know who they are and who they might become by seeing how it is that they play various roles, inhabit various characters, or create new characters. Unless we can put ourselves in the place of another, unless we can enlarge our own perspective through an imaginative encounter with the experience of others, unless we can let our own values and ideals be called into question from various points of view, we cannot be morally sensitive.
Mark Johnson, 1993, p. 199)
In an effort to try to move Candy beyond her location at the center of her
struggle between romantic fantasy and an investment in independence, 1 attempted to
engage her imagination in the creation of an alternative relationship with the text. 1
hoped such a relationship might intensify her engagement with the text in a way that
would increase reflection on her own life (Greene, 1995). 1 strove to intervene and raise
issues with her to broaden the repertoire on which she was drawing to construct her
understanding of what it means to be female. 1 knew full well, however, that
“ [r]ecohstructing femininity in new ways is difficult and challenging because it involves
deconstructing dominant ideologies and challenging subjectivities” (Taylor, 1993, p.
136). Believing that the kind of consciousness that I wanted to bring about would
necessitate a stronger fusion between romantic fantasies and a persona of independence
and self sufficiency, I asked her and the others to create some “alternative fiction”
(Walkerdine, 1984, p. 184) by responding to the literature artistically. I adopted
Greene’s (1995) idea that the arts give rise to shocks of awareness that can leave us
somehow ill at ease, prod us beyond acquiescences, or “move us into spaces where we
can see other ways of being ” (p. 135). I hoped with Greene, Freire (1987) and Scholes
152
(1985) that this approach to reading would in time move the students to wonder about
going beyond reading the world to “transforming it by means of conscious, practical
work” (Freire, 1987, p. 35).
1 provided a prompt for the writing of a letter (Appendix H) and Candy
responded to my request to create an alternative fiction by writing in role as Catherine
and delivering some lines that Catherine did not speak, but might have spoken, as the
“the sadder yet wiser’ Catherine at the end of the story. She spoke the following words
in Catherine’s voice:
I am going to do what I want to do whether you want me to or not. I t is my life, not yours. And, I will make my own decisions. Maybe I am alone but I still have myself (I guess).
Candy’s response illustrates the beginnings of a connection that Candy was
making not only with the two sides of Catherine, but with the two sides of herself. In
this response she exhibits an understanding of the Catherine that emerged at the end of
the story. She also shows her understanding of sacrifices that she knows that Catherine
(or she) would have to make to find resolution in terms of her lifestyle though the
dramatic positioning of her “I guess.”
The lines also expose the bifurcation that has and continues to characterize her
experience when it comes to romance and relationship. The T guess’ at the end reveals
her ambivalence about being alone and paying Catherine’s price of solitude for her
integrity and her self-protection. The exercise provided the stimulation for
contradiction that Kohlberg (1986) insists is necessary for the development o f moral
reasoning. The question is, will that awareness of the ambivalence and bifurcation
serve as a stepping stone toward increased self-knowledge? Will the awareness help to
integrate the parts of herself that represent the warring cultural messages that
contemporary adolescent girls experience (Brown and Gilligan, 1992; Christian-Smith,
1993; Taylor, 1993; Walkerdine, 1984)7
153
While Candy wrote her response “to be directed toward Dr. Sloper,” it is hard to
read it knowing what we know about Candy's relationships with some boys. It is hard
to read it without thinking that it is her own cry for a new kind of determination to value
herself and her own desires as well as those of her boyfriends. Will the ‘I guess' lead to
questions that lead to further reflections on how boys and girls come to adopt the
particular subject positions they adopt in romantic relationships even today? Will those
questions be followed with more questions about the social forces pressuring them?
i j i f<T H E | Ç > Z O sI M t l Q Z O S
Final Project
Candy's final project was the construction of
a magazine that traced some of the gender
issues of the early twentieth century through
various media. It did not focus on Washington
Square, but did require a study of the feminist
movement in the 1920s which contributed to
her knowledge of the social forces.
Figure 4.1: Amanda’s Project
Reflections
My experience with the study of Washington Square with the morning class
shocked me into the awareness that as far as Candy and all but one male student
(Charles) in the class were concerned, gender issues of the kind that existed in James'
society, did not trouble their lives. At the same time. Candy said that boys were still
using' girls and were focused mainly on their looks; that “many girls are not
independent, and don’t know how to be;” and that many struggle for appreciation for
154
the person they are on the inside. Candy struggles between being ‘■feminine’ within a
heterosexual paradigm (Walkerdine, 1984), and being an independent female.
Because students found it difficult to identify James’ tone and theme, they had
trouble making the connections that did exist between their lives and the characters’
lives. They had trouble in spite of the fact that the boys’ comments in the early
discussion betrayed their belief that girls would be considered desirable only on the
basis of their looks. Many resisted the idea that James had a point to make at all, much
less one that related to them.
For Candy, though not for others, critical readings did offer insights into her
connection with Catherine’s independent self as well her vulnerable side. And, while
the novella did not promote an awareness of the social construction of her subject
position within a sexist culture, writing in role helped her to begin to see herself as one
compromised between being true to herself and successful in heterosexual relationships
(Brown and Gilligan, 1992).
In Candy’s initial written response, she had reported that she “tried to put herself
in their [characters’] shoes to make a bridge but it was hard because of the time
difference and the fact that Catherine had let people run her life for so long.” By the
end of her study of this work, through essay writing, writing in role, and discussion
which “made her think about things more,” she had moved slightly beyond her initial
opinion that “this story could not take place now.” She now considered the ways in
which the story was relevant for her time, and for her.
Candy’s struggle helped me to understand the difficulties experienced by high
school girls in integrating their need for power, independence and equality, and the need
to identify themselves as ‘feminine,’ ‘pretty’ and ‘submissive’ in the traditional sense.
155
MAYNARD (PJM.)
Stereotypes come from real example. They are not just plucked out of nowhere. They begin because that type of person does that type of thing. Stereotypes are not good, but a lot of the time they can be true.
Maynard
We tend to agree that women have been written out of the histories of culture and literature that men have written, that women have been silenced or distorted in the texts of philosophy, biology, and physics, and that there is a group of embodied beings socially positioned as ‘women’ who, now, under the name of feminism, have something quite different to say.
Butler, 1999. p. 324
Maynard, though a quiet, mild-mannered senior, was an active participant in the
discussions that took place in the afternoon class, particularly in terms of Washington
Square. His presence added a voice of reason to a group marked from the start by the
clashing of ideologies and strong personalities. Maynard often positioned himself as the
moderating influence on two students (Marie and Richard) whose oft-stated opinions
were diametrically opposed in terms of gender assumptions, religion, culture, and just
about anything else one could consider. This was particularly apparent during the
discussions of “Love and Marriage” by Emma Goldman and “The Gentle Lena,” by
Gertrude Stein. Maynard was able to bridge the gap between Marie, a fundamentalist
Christian female, for whom premarital sex, divorce, homosexuality, and feminism were
abhorrent, and Richard, who described himself as an atheist and a bisexual, open to
multiple alternative lifestyles.
Like Mark Twain, Maynard claimed to not like people (in general) but, unlike
Twain, he has sometimes tried to annoy them by wearing clothes that they (especially
baby boomers) won’t like, and playing his music loudly so as to annoy. He says the
music he refers to is metal music and German techno’. In my class, however, this
rebellious nature did not show itself. He impressed me as a really nice, polite and soft-
spoken kid with a great blend of strong masculinity and sensitivity. His remarks in
156
class were always intelligent, well thought out, and considerate. Because he is a
thinker, his views were usually unpredictable. His long hair and black clothes didn’t
seem to put anyone off, including other staff members. One staff member pointed out
that “he wears black but seems nice,” and that he looks like a tough guy but isn’t.
Another claimed to be more impressed with him the longer he was at the school.
Several teachers said that he was not afraid to discuss and give his opinions in class, and
another referred to him as creative.’ One staff member pointed out that he had
overcome much adversity in his life.
In terms of adversity, Maynard talked about coming to terms with his father’s
death during his freshman year of high school. The death followed a long illness, many
hospitalizations and surgeries, and consequent financial problems and depression. He
and his brother were living with his dad at the time of the death, and had been since his
parents’ divorce when Maynard was three. His dad had been the primary care giver of
his childhood years. Because his dad was a working, single parent, Maynard was called
upon to do a lot of housework. He helped with the cooking, and learned a fair amount
about how to do household chores. Since his father’s death, he has been back living
with his mother, his stepfather, and his fifteen-year-old stepbrother. He remains
extremely close to his own twenty-one-year-old brother who is now in college. He has
a few close friends and a girlfriend whom he has been dating for about a year and a half.
In the future, Maynard hopes to work in the music production industry and,
because of his childhood experiences, is intent on having a very secure financial
situation. He has good feelings about marriage as the ultimate expression of love, he
says, and when his finances are secure, and if he meets the right person, he would like
to get married and possibly have children. “Kids are nice when you are older . . .to
know that you have helped someone grow and become something, and maybe get grand
kids even. But, when you are younger,” he says, “you still want to get out there and do
157
things and be part of everything.” He hopes to have “a spontaneous job” where he can
go places and meet people and work with new things and new technologies. “It’s going
to be something where I am always active. I ’m gonna be in a city, and going places and
doing things all the time. So, it is going to be really active. So, that is why it will be a
while before I will ever settle.
In spite of the fact that he claimed not to like school, he has usually maintained a
‘B’ average. In addition, although he said that he does not like to read, preferring
listening to music and watching movies, he was always prepared in my class,
completing assignments and participating in discussions. He was actively involved in
the discussion of Washington Square.
Written Response
As in the A.M. class, students in the P.M. class reacted negatively to James’
writing and the book. In fact, nine of the fourteen claimed to have not liked the book
for reasons that echoed the morning class’s reasons. Only two students liked the book,
and both were focus group students (Sarah and Howard).
Again, to Margaret’s and my dismay, the students were, but for one, unaware of
a critique of the society James may have been making. Marie, one focus group
participant in the P.M. class who related to none of the characters, remarked that she
thought “it was one of the most pointless books [she] had ever read ” (Pichart and
Anderson, 1977). James “goes on and on with nothing to say,” she argued. “You read
to take you out of life and this doesn’t do it.” She chanted the feelings she experienced
while reading the book: “please let it be over; please let it be over; please let it be over. ”
While over half of the students responded to the initial written response prompts
(Appendix C) by reporting that the story was ‘realistic for its time, most students
claimed that they had some trouble appreciating the story because o f the fact that things
are so different now. “I am not submissive,” wrote JoAnn, who was also the student
158
who had picked up on Jam es’ social critique. “I can’t relate with anyone who is
submissive because I never understood how someone could be like that. Girls are not
taught to be submissive as girls were then,” she wrote. Another student pointed out that
it was also hard to relate to the story today because “now parents do not tend to favor
boys over girls or because o f looks over intelligence anymore. Men and women are
considered equal.” A third girl agreed that the parental control and sexism in the book
was now passé.
Discussion
The first discussion was initiated by the girls’ responses. Although most of the
girls had reported in written responses that they had related to Catherine, in the
discussion, the largely female PJvI. class argued much more strongly than the male-
dominated A.M. group from a perspective that Britzman (1995) had dubbed
“heteronormativity” (p. 24). They posited that because Catherine did not engage in
another relationship, “she hadn’t come very far in the end” and “she hadn’t matured in
relationship.” One student said that “maturing in relationship meant being able to get
beyond the trauma of one painful relationship to be able to participate in another.” That
same student argued that “some happiness would be better than none.” She argued that
Catherine’s lack of self worth and integrity of commitment were responsible for her
final downfall. She said that she was “an inhuman, who neither loved nor lived and
exiled herself to her own private hell.” She called her “the one and only loser in the
story.” Only one student (JoAnn) related positively to what she saw as the stronger
Catherine at the end of the novella, pointing out that “Catherine became strong, and that
is better than any repeat of stories with endings like Cinderella. ”
Again, I believed that their arguments reflected a desire on the girls’ parts for
fictional resolutions more compatible with their romantic fantasies about ‘the happy
ending’ (Davies, 1992; Lewis, 1992; Taylor, 1993; Walkerdine, 1984). I also believe
159
that their arguments reflected confusion about what to do with a heroine who didn’t find
love in the end. I suspected that their reactions were based in their conventional
romantic fantasies. I attempted to stimulate a consideration of James’ attitude toward
Catherine at the end, but failed to be able to effect that conversation. JoAnn, who might
have been capable of engaging, was quiet, and is a freshman reluctant at this point to
put forth her ideas in conversation.
The second part of the discussion was stimulated by the fact that three of the
four boys in this class had made strong connections in the initial written responses
(Appendix C) between sexism in the book and in their present society. Because none of
the girls in either class, (and only one boy in the A.M. class) had made such an initial
connection, I continued the discussion with the class hoping to translate a reaction to the
book into a conversation about their lives. “Men and women have not changed, Howard
had written. “I know girls who remind me a lot of Catherine.” Richard, a progressive
thinker and self-defined bisexual, had agreed, and had written that “the book is realistic
today because there is still an issue that there are less women bosses, less money
making for women, and no women presidents. Although they have all their rights on
paper, they don’t necessarily have it all.” Howard claimed that “before the women’s
rights movement, a lot of women were like Catherine, afraid to take a stand when it
came to anything. He also said, “though women are now more liberated, there are still
Catherines who are taken in by Morrises.”
In spite of the fact that the girls had initially seen no connection between their
lives and Catherine’s in terms of dominant/submissive behavior between males and
females, Howard claimed in the discussion that he had seen a connection between
Catherine and girls of today. He had even recommended that several of his female
friends read Washington Square to gain some insight and self-recognition about their
floundering relationships and ill treatment from boyfriends. He claimed that he had
160
recommended that they examine Catherine and her experience with Morris to gain
insight into their own lives. When I asked the girls in the class what they thought of
this, no one responded.
While this discussion stimulated an interesting investigation about sexism in
love and marriage then and now, there were no real resolutions. I followed up on the
discussion by administering the assignment I had given to the A M. class, assuming that
it would bring out new discoveries.
Critical Readins/Writins
The writing assignment in which the students responded to the criticisms of
Blackmur (1962) and Wagenknecht (1983) had a much greater effect on the students in
the P.M. class than it had had on the students in the AAÏ.class. While they started out
making little connection with Catherine, many of their initial written and verbalized
opinions were eventually tempered by the arguments of Blackmur (1962) and
Wagenknecht (1983). These critics helped them to begin to wonder about James’
project and to consider the value and the meaning of Catherine’s transformation at the
end. The initial written responses had reflected the mostly female class’ difficulty
relating with Catherine as she had developed in the end. The written critical papers
revealed deeper understandings of Catherine and more appreciation for her growth.
One girl pointed out that
Catherine changes much from the beginning of the book to the end. She went from always trying to please her father to standing up to him. At first I thought that she should have taken Morris back. But, now, after having read these articles, I have a better understanding as to why she did not. She had been through enough.
Another noted out that:
Blackmur made me see things I had not seen before, re: tamperage. But, we should see Catherine as strong in the end. She found out that she could live with being single.
A third added that:
1 6 1
I think people should se e her as a beautiful, strong individual in the end.She should be admired for realizing who Morris really was without her father deciding for her.
Maynard himself, although he still maintained that he did not like the book, appreciated
Catherine's growth into her own independent person in the end.
My personal opinion of Catherine is that at the beginning of the book, she was very timid and shy due to all the years she was insulted and verbally abused by her father. When she met Morris, she couldn't believe that he actually liked her. She was naive and had low self-esteem when she met him. He gave her confidence and a shred of pride in herself. The fact that Dr. Sloper told Catherine that Morris would never like her for anything other than her money probably didn't help with her already damaged self image. By the end of the book, she seemed more mature and experienced.She showed this when she turned down Morris and stood up to her father.As time passed, she got over Morris and grew up, so to speak.
Although Maynard had been affected by the critical readings, he had not been
one of the three boys making an initial connection between sexist behavior today and
that evident in Washington Square. While he found the book “realistic for its time”
because “women were still considered inferior to the men then,” he stressed that “now
women are considered equal and would never be treated like they were in this book.”
When I questioned him about what he thought James' project might have been in the
novella (hoping to then encourage a connection with sexism today), he answered that
James “was just telling a story” and argued that he was not trying to get any big point
across. When I suggested that some had argued that through the novel James was
presenting a feminist expose of the impact of late nineteenth century mating rituals on
women such as Catherine, he reiterated that he thought it was “just an entertaining
story” and that he saw no feminist perspective. “A lot of times people dig in too deep
and try to pull out something that this person might have had or done or believed in,” he
said. “[ can’t see him being a feminist or the story being a feminist statement at all.”
162
My discussion with Maynard and other students again alerted me to students’
difficulty in picking up subtleties in the novel. I realized that in order for them to
identify irony, tone, governing ideologies, and gender representations later, they would
need to be better able to distinguish between the perspectives of the implied author, the
narrator, and the characters. To help them with that, I introduced them to some
narrative theory by providing them with a handout defining several terms. Among
those terms were: ’narrative audience,’ the audience a reader must pretend to join for
the fiction to work; ‘implied author,’ “that consciousness responsible for the choices
that create the narrative text; and the ‘narrator,’ the sometime reliable and sometimes
unreliable teller of the story (Phelan, 1996, p. 218).
The handout also provided Rabinowitz’s (1987) four types of reading
conventions to further help them improve their reading. They were: Rules of Notice,
for prioritizing certain textual aspects, i.e., titles, first and last sentences, etc.; Rules of
Signification, for inferring the significance of specific textual aspects; Rules of
Configuration, for inferring patterns to predict outcomes; and Rules of Coherence, for
conceiving how disparate parts of the work fit together (p. 112).
Both classes attempted to apply some of this knowledge in discussions about
Washington Square. I introduced them to some clues that illustrate how the text steers
readers into forming specific conclusions about Catherine, Dr, Sloper and Morris. 1
identified indicators that I believed were present in the text to substantiate my idea that
the implied author (Booth, 1961) favored Catherine, and not Dr. Sloper or Morris, and
that the novella critiqued the patriarchal mores of the day. To do this, I pointed out
differences between the narrator’s choice of words in descriptions o f Dr, Sloper vs.
Catherine. I also noted ironies set up through the Juxtaposition of Sloper’s view of
Catherine’s intelligence vs. that of her aunt and the narrator, and the treatment in the
end, of Catherine’s ability to transcend and triumph in dignity. I welcomed students’
163
opinions but continued to persuade them to accept my point by citing the values in the
fiction that I thought evidenced James’ attitude. For, as Fish (1980) has said, '‘a teacher
will always have an opinion that s/he will want to argue and persuade others to accept,
and until he exchanges one opinion for another, s/he will not be able to see that s/he
should do anything but argue for his or her present opinion” (p. 359).
Maynard did begin to see the artistry. He did agree that Dr. Sloper was drawn as
the character not to be like, with the author trying to show how pompous he was. And
others saw that Sloper “had to be a caricature as no one could be that bad.” But,
Maynard, like many, stopped short o f seeing a central perspective, much less a feminist
one. When I pushed it a bit further, questioning him about the meaning of Catherine’s
triumph at the end of the novel and her contentment as contrasted with the losses of the
men, he again argued for it being “just an entertaining story.” He did identify with
Catherine, as he would eventually with Jay Gatsby, because of his value for true love.
Catherine was “looking for true love and to be happy for the rest of her life,” he said,
and “I somewhat know how it feels to not find it.”
In spite o f his sympathy for Catherine, however, his acknowledgment of
Catherine’s growth in the end, and his acknowledgment o f Sloper’s shortcomings,
Maynard made his most intense identification o f the semester with Dr. Sloper. He
based this connection on his understanding of how a father would react to a man
moving in on his daughter. “I felt kind of bad for her dad,” he said. “He was looking
out for his daughter’s best interests, even though he was being a jerk about it.” He
pointed out that while Dr. Sloper was a stereotype, stereotypes are reflective of reality
even today. “This is often an issue in sitcoms and in movies now,” he said. ’’There is
always a feeling of losing your territory.” He claimed that he understood Sloper’s
protective attitude toward his daughter. Sloper didn’t like or trust Morris, he said, and
164
“while you might feel better about a guy you like moving in on your daughter, you
would still react negatively to anyone moving in on your territory.”
His understanding about Catherine’s need for protection from Sloper, and his
view of Catherine as her father’s ‘territory,’ startled me as it seemed suggestive of a
view of women as chattel. I challenged him to explore his identification with and
acceptance of this stereotypical father by contrasting a daughter's ‘need’ for protection
with a son’s lack of that need in more prevalent incidences of women pursuing men for
money and security. In response, he drew a clear distinction between this sort of thing
being seen as ‘mooching’ or even stealing’ in a man, and only a desire or need for
support in a woman. Clearly he still saw women as dependent and needing support.
Maynard didn’t deny what appeared to me to be his support of a double
standard. He admitted that he sees men as wanting to be in control, and said that in
social situations, they usually dominate. He said that he does not see this changing
because of fundamental differences in men and women. Women, he says, are more
emotional. “It is not a weakness,” he said, “but more of a handicap. They don’t seem
as established,” he said. He thinks they have characteristics that men could use,
however, like being nurturing and caring, and especially loving. And, he sees women
as a little more sensitive when it comes to emotional things, and not as angry as men.
“They don’t have so much hate,” he says. Fundamentally, he stands by a belief that
women are different than men and that they should stay that way. He sees the
difference, in good part, as biological, although influenced to some degree by society.
“It is not a coincidence,” he said. “I see it in males and females everywhere.” He said
he didn’t understand how anyone could think of the sexes as equal. “They should have
equal rights, but they are not equal at all.”
Because he sees the difference as predominantly biological, he believes that it
might not be a good thing to try to change that in the name of equality. “That might
165
mess up something,” he claimed. “If it is true that it is biological, it might be that way
for a reason.” He said that he supports women fighting for the right to gain equality in
business and political areas, and thinks that that is happening. However, he thinks that
in social situations and relationships, “males are still going to try to be in control and a
lot of women are going to allow it.” I don’t know if that is wrong, he said. “Men
always seem to be at the top and the main focus o f whatever is going on in careers
because “men are the foundation of everything.” He does see that if he were female he
might be feeling limited because of problems with moving up in careers, getting respect,
and being treated as sexual objects.” Hearing his opinions made me wonder if these
arguments were an additional way for women to be kept down, and later used that as a
class discussion topic.
While Maynard does stand behind biological difference, his references to
changes in what women will put up with from men; what the law will now prohibit; and
the changes in relationships since the days of the Slopers, alerted me to a contradiction
at the heart of his argument. Following Harper (2000), I investigated that contradiction
as well as the discrepancy between his stated ideas about fixed gender identification,
and his admission of serious gender bending in his own life. Maynard claimed to be
happy being a male, and said that he does not feel at all limited by his gender. He did,
however, admit to an awareness that he does not strike some others as a conventional
male because of his long hair, his black clothes, and, as he says, “some feminine things
that I have done.” As a freshman in a traditional middle class suburban comprehensive
high school, he used to go to school with nail polish, rings, barrettes in his hair, fishnet
pantyhose on his arms, and legs and really tight shirts.” In his younger days, he says, “I
would do whatever I could to aggravate the masses.”
He admitted that he was completely aware that his ‘Goth’ appearance, and
related androgynous look’ made people uncomfortable, and even caused more ‘macho
166
football player types’ to pick fights with him and call him ‘gay.’ “I would wear that
stuff and people would be sitting next to me and they would feel really uncomfortable
with it because they weren’t familiar with ‘the look’ and they were confused. They
didn’t know what to do around me; they didn’t know if I was a weirdo or if I was gay or
straight or normal,” he said. But, his campaign to ‘deconstruct’ conventional notions of
gender were rooted in a desire to ‘shake things up.’
What he seemed to be doing with this exhibition, was rebelling against
traditional gender stereotypes, and simultaneously attempting to show, like Candy
before him, that “what you see on the outside is not necessarily what you get on the
inside.” He seemed to be making an attempt to set up a distinction between the exterior
and interior gendered self. My challenge to him on the contradiction between his own
personal troubling of gender roles and his position on the biological imperative stated
earlier, was met with his distinction between gender differences which seem
fundamental vs. those that are simply decorative.
I t is more of what's on the outside that I have a problem with people judging. I t is more . . . because you are wearing this, or because this color is on your nails, that you are considered somewhat of a d ifferent gender.You are acting like a different gender, but what does that mean? That's society putting that on there. Society is saying that if you have paint on your nails, you are feminine because that's what women have done, not the guys. Girls have always worn dresses, not the guys. And, when someone, like a guy, wears that people call him gay because they think it's more what a woman should do.
Maynard said he reacted negatively to the ways in which others judged men
superficially, by calling attention to what he saw as non-essential indicators of
masculinity. On the other hand, he was not willing to engage in a challenge of those
‘superficial,’ non essential indicators of women’s femininity (beauty, submissiveness,
deferential behavior) by challenging them. He continued to hold the notion of
attractiveness to men as a measuring stick of women’s worth, not only in the men’s eyes
167
but in the woman's eyes as well (Wolf, 1991). His double standard regarding beauty
was emphasized in a subsequent conversation about the lost dreams implicit in
marriage, emanating from Sherwood Anderson’s “The Untold L ie.” In this
conversation, Maynard identified the male’s fears regarding lost dreams as those
involving freedom, an investigation of the world, and being with a beautiful woman
who is not “a funny looking housewife. ” In contrast, he identified women’s fear of lost
dreams in marriage as those connected to male desires and not the women’s own, citing
loss of beauty, sexual attractiveness” (Taylor, 1993).
Maynord: Women can be very bitter about what has happened to them. I mean, there are a lot of reasons to say, “I used to have a nice figu re , and look at what happened to me because I had these kids" and “I used to be so pretty, and, now I am not as good looking as I used to be, and my husband doesn't find me attractive and doesn’t really care."
Pat: This business of looks . . . you have brought up its importance several times with women and not with men in reacf ing to the story. A critic called Rosalind Coward (1984) says that the emphasis on women’s looks becomes a “crucial way in which society exercises control over women's sexuality" (p.77). Do you think there is still a higher priority placed on how women look to men and on how women feel about how they look as opposed to how men feel about their own looks?
Maynord: I t is still important. You see it in movies all the time. There is a married couple and the wife is home while the man is at work all day. And, the woman, the most activity she has all day is going to the market to get food for the kids for th e dinner. They stay home all day in a robe while they vacuum and clean the house.
Pat: Is that real or is that a stereotype?
Maynard: It's real and a stereotype. There is a kind of mix there. But, I mean, you know. They stay home.
Pat: Do you think there are many people that are doing that these days, or is that some sort of holdover from the 40s and 50s?
Maynard: I t is less today, because you know, there are many women out there working. And, they have people taking care o f the kids. But, it is still here. And, there are always going to be housewives.
168
Pat: Do you think that the way women look is still a centrally important thing for men?
Maynord: Yeah, it will always be.
Pat: Is that reciprocal?
Maynard: I think it is more prevalent for guys to judge women on their attractiveness because men are more superficial. Women can see through that more and look for a good man. But, it is still . . . yeah, you still have to find the man attractive, but it is more important for men because, you know . . . that is what we look for first.
Although he was, like Candy, located in a contradiction between traditional
stereotypes and a desire to explode those stereotypes, his ability to see through what
Judith Butler (1999) calls gender performativity in his own experience was not
replicated in any awareness about the superflcialit>' o f comparable female stereotypes.
And, his focus on the women’s ‘looks’ signaled a truth in Wolf’s (1991) argument that
the more legal and material hindrances women have broken through, the more strictly
and heavily and cruelly images of female beauty have come to weigh on them. Wolf
(1991) claims that “[a]s women released themselves from the feminine mystique of
domesticity, the beauty myth took over its lost ground, expanding as it waned to carry
on its work of social control ” (p. 269). And, Maynard seems to confirm that women
must continue to value “beauty” because men value it in them, even if it is “because
[men] are superficial.”
Maynard’s ability to challenge male stereotypes, however, made me believe that
he was capable of engaging in an investigation about the ‘flip side’ superficial
indicators of women’s femininity and value, which Candy had experienced often, and
which James, in my opinion, was holding up for examination in the novel.
169
Extended discussion
I drew on Williamson’s (1981) position that students learn about ideologies
when they actually have to confront them through a practical situation rather than a
purely intellectual connection. And, I began with Maynard by addressing the
similarities between his and James’ challenges to the kind of gender stereotyping which
results in people being judged and valued only in terms of superficial indicators.
Connecting Judith Butler’s (1999) ideas to Maynard’s story, I decided to 1). Introduce
him to as much as I thought he could handle of Butler’s notions of gender
performativity to “trouble” gender difference and stereotypes and 2). Stimulate an
ethical conversation about the ways Catherine and any contemporary versions of
Catherine were/are treated because of their female identities.
Essentially, Maynard had “troubled” gender constructs in the way in which
Butler (1999) attempted to trouble them: by insisting on gender performativity and the
use of parody to disrupt staid and confining gender identifications (1999). Butler’s
point is that gender is social artifice, and she argues that “what we take to be an
“internal” feature of ourselves is one that we anticipate and produce through certain
bodily acts, at an extreme, an hallucinatory effect of naturalized gestures.” (p. xv).
Performances involve gesture, dress, action movement, and language. In the treatise,
she uses performativity such as the ‘drag’ with which Maynard experimented to
illustrate a troubling’ of what we see as the reality of gender:
If one thinks that one sees a man dressed as a woman or a woman dressed as a man, then one takes the first term of each of those perceptions as the “reality” of gender: the gender that is introduced through the simile lacks “reality” and is taken to constitute an illusory appearance. In such perceptions in which an ostensible reality is coupled with an unreality, we think we know what the reality is, and take the secondary appearance of gender to be mere artifice, play, falsehood and illusion (p. 175)
Foucault (1980/1976) argued in The Historv of Sexualitv that the body is not
sexed in any significant sense prior to its determination within a discourse throughout
170
which it becomes invested with an idea of natural or essential sex (p. 117). Butler
(1999/1990) drew from him in positing in Gender Trouble (as Maynard attempted to
demonstrate on his own), that there is no underlying, fixed, gender reality. She says:
That the gendered body is performative suggests that it has no ontological status apart from the various acts which constitute its reality.This also suggests that if that reality is fabricated as an interior essence, that very interiority is an effect and function of a decidedly public and social discourse . . . . In other words, acts and gestures, articulated and enacted desires, create the illusion of an interior and organizing gender core, an illusion discursively maintained for the purposes of regulation of sexuality within the obligatory frame of reproductive heterosexuality (p.173).
When we behave in gendered ways, claims Butler (1999), we are not enacting
something that is already fixed in the world, but rather actually constituting it, creating
the social fiction that these gender differences exist separately from the acts and deeds
with which they are inextricably connected. Butler draws from Foucault’s notion that
any oppositional approach designed to disrupt the dominant systems of knowledge, may
always already be inscribed in what it hopes to transform (Foucault, 1980). She
suggests that the one avenue for agency in this hierarchical society is the road Maynard
took: the deliberate parodie repetitions of the original performance, designed to “compel
a radical rethinking of the psychological presuppositions of gender identity. This kind
of parodie repetition, she believes, would enact and reveal the performativity of gender
itself in a way that destabilizes the naturalized categories of identity and desire (p. 177).
1 thought that a connection between her work and Maynard’s actions was a way
in to a consideration of the social or performative construction of gender with the
students and an eventual ethical discussion about how women got to be subjugated and
why that system continues to stay in place. Maynard was trying to do what Butler
(1999/1991) was advocating: attempting to “invert the inner/outer distinction and
compel a radical rethinking of the psychological presuppositions of gender identity and
171
sexuality . . . [to] compel a reconsideration of the place (emphasis Butler’s) and stability
of the masculine and feminine” (p. 177).
I briefly shared the information on Butler in the afternoon class, which drew
great interest only from Richard, the member of the afternoon class who had admitted to
being bisexual. He understood what Butler was saying perfectly, and her theory
addressed him personally. Others, including Maynard who did not make a cormection
with Butler’s ideas, seemed skeptical, however. Addressing the skepticism, I informed
the students that before Butler (1999), others such as John Stuart Mill had suggested in
The Subjection of Women, that “what is now called the nature of women is an
eminently artificial thing” (Mill in Nussbaum, 1999, p.40). Mill had concluded that
“women’s nature derives from and shores up hierarchies of power, and womanliness is
made to be whatever would serve the cause of keeping women in subjection” (p. 40), or
as he put it, “enslaving their minds” (p. 40). And, I pointed out that more recent writers
like Walkerdine (1984) had “argued that the conventional understanding of gender roles
was a way of ensuring continued male domination in sexual relations as well as in the
public sphere” (Nussbaum, 1999, p. 40).
After the discussion of Butler’s (1999) ideas of performativity and the others’
notions of gender identifications that are socially constructed to serve the interests of
men, I returned to Maynard with specific questions about Washington Square. I
assumed that anyone engaged in troubling gender the way he was, would empathize
with an author who, like James in my opinion, was engaged in an expose of the
treatment of the feminine gender. I cited specific lines from the novel wherein I felt
James (1959) troubled conventional ideas of femininity and a woman’s worth in terms
of beauty and cleverness in turn of the century New York society. This included
conversations about her cousin’s marriage; Sloper’s emphasis on Catherine’s plainness
172
and dress; and Sloper’s remarks equating women with chattel evidenced by Sloper’s
conversation with Catherine when he has taken her to the mountains in Switzerland:
I have done a might good thing for him [Townsend] in taking you abroad; your value is twice as great, with all the knowledge and taste that you have acquired. A year ago, you were perhaps a little limited—a little rustic; but, now you have seen everything, and appreciated everything, and you will be a most entertaining companion. We have fatted the sheep before he kills it (p. 143).
I wanted to see if our discussions had resulted in any connections made between
his gender politics and James,’ attempt to address the limitations o f the gender
•constructions of his day (Hines, 1997; Rogers, 1997; Rosenblatt, 1978). I was
interested to see if his awareness about his own dissatisfaction with male constructs had
translated into either a consciousness of current female as well as male stereotyping, or,
into a resistance to the stereotyping o f women as well as men.
Pat: Did the conversation or any activities that we did with this book make you look at the situation at th e heart o f the book, and, say, “th ere is something wrong with the way that Catherine is treated in this novel by her father and her lover?" Did you say “I hope I don’t reproduce that kind of setup, that kind of behavior, or are you saying, “that is just th e way it is."
Maynard: That could very well just be the way it is, depending on the father . . . well . . . and . . . ju st depending on the father and the daughter and how naive he thinks the daughter might be, if she is not ready for this . . . if she is being taken advantage of . . . or if the father is very protective of the child. I t just depends on each family whether this might happen again.
Pat: When you read the book did you think that you didn't want Catherine to be treated this way? Or, that you didn't think Dr. Sloper needed to be taking on this kind of masculine protective attitude?
Maynard: Yeah. I fe lt sorry for her because she had never really been in with anything . . . because she was rather plain looking and nothing special.I fe lt sorry for her that this all happened to her. Yeah, but it is something that happens.
173
Although he had seen and rebelled against the ways in which his own gendered
self had been constructed, his words showed that he still has not been as resistant to
constructs which keep women subjugated and men like Sloper trapped in controlling
positions (Martino, 1995). I wasn’t sure whether I was more disappointed in Maynard’s
failure to reflect on his apparent belief that plainness resulted in her being 'nothing
special’; his failure to challenge Sloper’s responsibility to ‘determine her readiness for
romance’; or his “it’s something that happens” response to my moral question. But,
reflecting on it, 1 am sure it is the last of the three. I had believed that James’ position
on Dr, Sloper and Catherine would “offer ethical education and stimulate ethical
imagination” (Nussbaum, 1990, p. 38) to Maynard and others when they read one of
James’ works. 1 had hoped that “this book would become” for Maynard, “a signpost, a
continuing presence in [his] life” (Coles, 1989, p. 68) that would give “a warning . . . to
take a hard close look at the world ” (p. 39). It did not turn out the way I had hoped.
Social Imagination Activities
“The imagination is what above all, makes empathy possible”
Greene, 1995, p. 3.
Social imagination activities often allow students to go beyond discussion to
connect with some deeper realities about a character. Through such activities, they are
often able to ‘see’ some previously unimagined significances of a narrative’s meaning
or theme, or to become more aware of their own personal responses to the literature
through experience (Dewey, 1922; Edmiston, 1998; Heathcote, 1984; O ’Neill, 1995).
1 hoped to deepen the class’ connection with Catherine’s situation and Sloper’ and
Townsend’s abuse of her by encouraging the students to construct “alternative fictions”
(Walkerdine, 1984, p. 184 through social imagination activities. I engaged the
afternoon class in the same activity as the one conducted in the morning class. Most of
the students, in their letters of advice to Catherine, warned her of Morris’ designs on her
174
money and on her need to consider her father’s perspective in making her decision to
accept Morris. Maynard’s letter to Catherine followed that pattern.
Catherine:I think you should be more careful about this guy Morris you are with. You have to watch out for th e moneygrubbers. Do you think this guy really loves you? I hope for your sake he does. Your dad seems to be awful upset about all o f this. Just think about who you are with?
Unfortunately, this exercise did not lead Maynard into a deeper consideration of
the inequities in the gender roles in the story. However, it did illustrate his connection
with Dr. Sloper.
Social Imagination Activities/Final Projects
The use of social imagination activities in final projects resulted in deeper
reflection on the part of the students for Catherine’s difficult situation. One student in
the class, who had originally said that Catherine hadn't come very far in the end” and
that “she hadn’t matured in relationship, ” argued that Catherine's lack of self worth and
integrity of commitment were responsible for her final
downfall. To fulfill the requirement to create an ‘alternative
fiction,’ the student chose to make the red dress that
Catherine Sloper wore at the beginning of the story. She
chose it as a symbol because she thought it represented “the
beginning o f seeing how terrible Dr. Sloper was to his
daughter.” When Catherine walked through the door wearing
Figure 4 Catherine’s Dress
that dress her father said, ironically, “Is this beautiful creature my daughter?” (James,
1962 p. 22). Then he stated how beautiful her mother had been wearing that dress.
175
To make the dress, the student formed the base out of wire mesh and then
covered it with a plaster paste. She painted the paste with acrylic red paint, and then
covered it with shattered red glass.
Her description of her sculpture of Catherine Sloper’s dress suggests that she
had moved from her original position to afford Catherine some dignity not previously
given, and to place the blame, not on Catherine, as she had originally done, but on Dr.
Sloper. She explained, “the glass is shattered to symbolize the sharp pain her father
bestowed upon her. The glass is heavy to symbolize the weight and pressure she was
given by her father to be a good woman.
By engaging imaginatively with the text, she was able to tap into another
interpretation of Catherine, which allowed this book to become a ‘signpost’ for her own
reflections and developments, than it had been. The dress served as a symbol. Through
it, the student was able to show how the weight and sharpness o f her feminine role
brought Catherine pain and suffering. She said that the activity clarified her view of
Catherine's oppression by her father and Morris. And, I think that her sculpture and
Candy’s poem could be brought together to make a creative statement about Catherine’s
ambivalence and struggle, and the ambivalence and struggle the girls experience as they
make their way toward a less passive subjectivity.
Maynard’s choice for the creation of an ‘alternative fiction’ was to use popular
music to enhance his understanding of characters and situations in the novel. I
welcomed this choice as tunes, rhyme schemes, rhythmic patterns and literary devices
such as alliteration, synecdoche, metaphor and metonymy can enlighten students to
unconscious moods and conflicts present in the literature. Also, themes and images
emerging from poems and songs can put students in touch with their own feelings and
those of the characters and writers. Maynard chose four songs; his first choice was “All
Over You ” by Live’ and illustrated “how Catherine felt when she and Morris were
176
together. She was in love and happy that a man accepted her, not shunning her for
being plain.” Assigning the lyrics from this song to Catherine showed a growing
consideration of the feelings that Maynard had not shown evidence of having reflected
upon earlier. Through this song, he lets her (and himself) speak o f the initial joy of her
relationship with Morris, showing his awareness o f her aborted happiness. This
represented his deepening understanding of her circumstances and showed that he had
internalized her perspective. The song reveals the speaker/Catherine’s emotional
complexity as she experienced this joy even in the face of the acknowledged threat that
the “angel” will be “pinned down and abused” by her father. Dr. Sloper. Before long,
however, Sloper does darken the day and pin down the angel.
Maynard's second tune is from Sloper’s point of view and is directed toward
Morris. The contrast between the imagery of brightness in “All Over You” with the
darkness of “Swamp Song” illustrates the distinction that Maynard drew between
Catherine’s lightness with Morris, and the harshness of Sloper’s perspective. Looking
more closely at the song, however, one sees that it reveals the understanding of Sloper’s
feelings toward Catherine, which Maynard claimed to have understood -throughout the
class. The authoritarian tone of the speaker almost suggests jealousy, rather than anger,
and reveals the depth of Sloper’s pain as Maynard has imagined it. The lines “so
suffocate,” “get out while you can,” and “No one told you to come, I hope it sucks you
down,” suggest a desperate Sloper rather than a diabolical one. This may account for
Maynard’s sympathetic attitude toward him and helps to explain it. In a further
exploration of that response (Bogdan, 1997), Maynard explained that Sloper may have
reacted the way he did out of jealousy, suggesting that Catherine’s marriage would
leave him alone once again. He substantiated this by arguing that James had portrayed
Sloper as having been grief-stricken at his wife’s death and that Catherine’s departure
would also be devastating.
177
His final choice was “Fell on Black Days” by Soundgarden. He described it as a
song about what you thought your life would be before it changes for the worse.
Catherine wasn’t expecting Morris to leave and she had to learn to live without him.” he
said. Again, he put himself into her role, allowing himself to express her heartbreak.
Here Maynard speaks in Catherine’s voice to express the true pain of “doing time” for
Morris in her “Black days.” Like Maynard, I find the pathetic wail o f “How would I
know that this could be my fate?” a particularly poignant expression of Catherine’s
grief, especially when seen in juxtaposition with “Just when every day seemed to greet
me with a smile.” This expression of Catherine’s grief is particularly interesting when
juxtaposed with Candy’s final utterance, spoken in Catherine’s voice. Both show the
depth of Catherine’s response. Candy, in the end, expressed her connection to the
stronger side of Catherine; and Maynard allowed himself to experience the pain of the
woman squeezed between Morris and Dr. Sloper.
Reflections on P.M. Class
Most of the students in this class experienced what Soter (1997) calls ‘aesthetic
restriction,’ and did not appreciate the text because they saw little relationship between
their culture and James.’ In addition, they argued that sexism was now passe'. Their
failure to see James’ critique further prohibited them from fully appreciating the
novella. Thus, this part of the study substantiated Jauus’s (1982) claim that “we never
come to cognitive situations empty but carry with us a whole world of familiar beliefs
and expectations” (Jauss in Godzich, 1994, p. 41).
Three of the four boys in the afternoon class saw a link between Catherine and
girls today, arguing that they knew girls who reminded them of Catherine, and that
“although girls have all their rights on paper, they don’t necessarily have it all.” No
girls in this class saw what the saw. My attempts to bring the students to an awareness
of some comparable limitations in contemporary times were somewhat successful. The
178
literary criticisms resulted in critical essays that showed more sensitivity to Catherine’s
plight than was evident in the morning class. And, the imagination activities did foster
an introduction to an understanding of Catherine’s position for Maynard.
However, while Maynard was able to sympathize with Catherine’s position, he
found himself more connected to Sloper and sympathized with his choices (Golden and
Guthrie, 1986). This was part of the reason that he had some difficulty connecting with
James' perspective. While he posited that sexism was passé, unlike the three boys in
the class who saw sexism in our society, he vigorously supported a double standard and
an acceptance of women as territory.’ The contradiction at the center of his argument
had him engaging in ‘gender bending’ to discourage his being identified by non-
essential traditionally ‘masculine’ attributes, while hesitating to engage in the critique of
women being seen in terms of non-essential feminine,’ categories.
My attempts at a dialogical approach with him failed to change his perspective.
Maynard did, however, tap into an awareness of Catherine’s position to some extent
through the critical readings. He also tapped into an awareness of Catherine’s position
through the imagination work he did with the music in the final project. However, he
mainly used the activity to explore Sloper’s character.
Conclusion
The study of Washington Square revealed an acceptance of traditional sex role
stereotypes on the part of the two focus group students and the majority of the boys in
the AA1. class. Ironically, with the exception of three boys in the P.M. class, and one
boy in the A.M. class, the study also revealed that most o f the boys and girls in the
larger group do not believe that their lives are troubled by the sorts of gender-based
limitations evident in Washington Square.
179
“LOVE AND MARRIAGE”
By Emma Goldman
A FEMINIST APPROACH
Choice
The second literary work was “Love and Marriage,” by Emma Goldman, whose work follows chronologically after Henry James. She provides a radical twentieth century view on sexism that I wanted to share with the students to stimulate a consideration of an alternative perspective.
Synopsis
“Love and Marriage” is an example o f the speeches and essays that Emma Goldman wrote in the early part of the twentieth century. As a feminist, anarchist, and labor activist. Goldman promoted ideas, which were radical for their time. Goldman spoke on the subject of love and marriage to enlighten women to the ways in which traditional marriage robbed them of freedom and independence, not to mention love. The essay promotes the idea that love is a spiritual connection, and marriage economic systems of controls, by which women are reduced to slaves and dependents, chattel and second class citizenship.
Mv Reading
Goldman was a true iconoclast who was ahead of both her time and the second
wave of the feminist movement, which would take shape long after her death. Her
essay shows her ability to see how traditional marriage stunted women’s growth and
curtailed their freedoms—all in the name o f love. Goldman (1969/1911) spoke out to
prevent a continuation of the kind of institution which robs women of their names, their
self respect, their economic independence, and their ability to perform as productive
members of society, substituting ownership for love between equals. Her words inspire
women today to resist the romanticizing of patriarchal marriage, which still subjugates
women, though in more subtle ways. They encourage us to develop an institution
through which men, women, and love may flourish.
Note: See Chapter Four Introduction for an explanation of my decision to describe the
larger group’s (A.M. and PA/I.) discussion o f Goldman’s essay “Love and Marriage” in
dramatic, rather than narrative form.
180
FEMINIST RALLY AJM7PJVI. mix).
LIGHTS UP UPSTAGE RIGHTEmma Goldman, Feminist speech; kids in audience listening. W omen’s Flag in background
Emma: Marriage and love are not synonymous. They have nothing in common. They are as far apart as the poles. Marriage has nothing to do with the continuation of love.
Marie: That is ridiculous! Of course it does!
Charles: Marriage has nothing to do with love. If you love a person you don’t need a contract. Love should be enough.
Joe: You don’t have to have a ring on your finger to have love.
Marie (to Joe): If that isn’t love, what is?
Hillary: She doesn’t like the whole idea of marriage.
Richard: Marriage is a piece of paper and love is forever,
Maynard (To Marie): The idea that marriage and love have nothing in common is one of the worst things I have ever heard.
Marie (to Maynard): I don’t think she understands.
LIGHTS OUT
SCENE #2 TV POLITICAL RALLY
(A M yPM . mix).
LIGHTS UP, DOWNSTAGE CENTER
Emma Goldman, Feminist Leader, speaking on TV; Kids watching in living room
Emma: Love needs no protection. It is its own protection. Marriage is primarily an economic arrangement, an insurance pact. If a woman’s premium is a husband, she pays for it with her name, her privacy, her self-respect, and her very life, “until death do us part.’’ Moreover, the marriage insurance condemns her to life-long dependency, to parasitism, to complete uselessness.
Marie: She is like attacking women!
Brenda: She is not attacking women, she is attacking men! She is saying women are second class. Has she been married and had like a hard time or something? To some people, marriage is the best thing in their whole life. She is making marriage such a bad thing when it is not! She is trying to take what is a generally accepted thing and poke a hole in it! Her marriage opinion just bothers me.
181
Candy: She is not bashing men, but when women get married the men take over.
Peter: Once she marries the man, she loses individuality.
Alicia: Is she saying it is the men or the institution?
Dale: If she is not bashing men, how is it that this happens in the institution? Instead of bashing men she is trying to empower women, and in so doing, she is raising women above men!
Alicia: No. She is saying, “girls, girls, girls, look what is happening to you!”
Raoul: It is just like you women to shut us up. Yes, we must have marriage. We must control you!
LIGHTS OUT
SCENE #3 LABOR RALLY
(PJVI. class)
LIGHTS UP: DOWN STAGE LEFTEmma Goldman; Labor Organizer (ROSIE THE RIVETER FLAG BACKGROUND
Emma: The woman considers her position as a worker transitory, to be thrown aside for the first bidder. Has she not been taught from infancy to look upon marriage as her ultimate calling? Marriage guarantees woman a home only by the grace of her husband. There she moves about, year after year.
Hillary: She is down on women who would stay home. I have a problem with what she is saying. My mother has stayed home and is a housewife. My mother is completely content staying home and taking care of my brother and me . . . making us nice dinners. That is what she likes to do.
Howard: It’s a wakeup call. That’s all it is.
Richard: Yeah, she is telling women to wake up and see that women are being treated poorly and are lower because they take it. Stop being subservient! Mute beast fattened for slaughter, a parasite, an absolute dependent!
Sarah: Girls still dream of the big wedding. They will buy the dream house like Ken and Barbie. It is still a typical belief.
LIGHTS OUT
182
SCENE #4 ANARCHIST RALLY
(P.M. class)
LIGHTS UP, DOWN STAGE RIGHTSpeaker: Emma Goldman Anarchist (FLAG EST BACKGROUND)
Emma: Love, the strongest and deepest element in all life, the harbinger of hope, of joy, of ecstasy: how can such an all compelling force be synonymous with that poor little state and Church-begotten weed, marriage?
Marie: The part about the church is outdated. You have to be counseled before marriage now. The church is very careful about that stuff, actually. They have something to offer. They are not being controlling.
Sarah: It would have been more acceptable for my grandmother to kill her abusive husband than divorce him.
Kelley: Men and women of some religions must get married because without it, living together is unacceptable. Marriage is too institutionalized. And if you get married and are miserable, why are you gonna stay with it? Someone could kill you!
Marie: Because you are living for someone outside of yourself. Because you have a cause. If isn’t about you and what is good for you but another.
Margaret Jackson: Are you saying that if your life is in jeopardy you should stay?
Marie: But, where do you go that isn’t an abusive situation?
Margaret Jackson: Are you saying that if my husband is beating me . . . are you actually saying that it is not a cause to do something about it?
Marie: I don’t want to say that people should stay in an abusive relationship. But,there is the heat of the moment.
LIGHTS OUTSCENE # 5 .
SCHOOL (AJM. class)
LIGHTS UP, DOWNSTAGE RIGHTTeacher (reading Emma’s words): The less soul a woman has the greater her asset as a wife, and the more readily will she absorb herself in her husband. It is this slavish acquiescence to man’s superiority that has kept the marriage institution seemingly intact for so long a period. We have not yet outgrown the théologie myth that woman has no soul, that she is a mere appendix to man.
Dale: The word 'dyke’ comes to mind when I listen to her, here. Bitter and hateful toward the opposite sex. She is totally talking about how men control women. She seems really bitter about relationships and men whether they may be controlling or not. She seems falsely upset about al lot of stuff.
183
Rob: I think she just wasn’t getting any.
Steve: I think she’s a lesbian.
Pat: That is not true. She had lots of men.
Steve: Are you serious? She is so gross.
Pat: I am telling you . . .she had lots of men.
Raoul. Lots of ugly men.
Pat: There was beauty in her soul. You sound like Dr. Sloper
Jim: Look at her (a picture). She is so ugly. She had lots of men, so she didn’t know what love was.
Teacher: How do you know she didn’t know what love was?Girls, what do you think? The guys are saying she is angry with men. Is that what is she saying? That they are being controlled and oppressed? Was it the case in her time? Is it the case now? You are young women. This is your life we are talking about. What do you think?
Girls: no response
LIGHTS OUT
SCENE #6 COLLEGE GRADUATION
Emma Goldman: Graduation Speaker (AAl. class)
LIGHTS UP, UPSTAGE CENTER
Emma: Now that she is coming into her own, now that she is actually growing aware of herself as a being outside of the master’s grace, the sacred institution of marriage is gradually being undermined.
Steve: She shouldn’t have pointed the finger at marriage or men, but at women for letting that happen. If some women didn’t want marriage, it wouldn’t happen.
Charles: I don’t think it is the woman’s fault, because if you are told something from the time you are bom, it is hard to get out of it.
Maynard: This is all outdated because now there is equality between men and women.
Brenda: Marriage was probably not as great then as it can be now.
LIGHTS OUTTHE END
184
Reflections
By dramatizing a series of discussions on “Love and Marriage" in both classes, I
have attempted to capture the students’ traditional perspectives on marriage and the
level of resistance with which they responded to alternative notions of marriage and
relationship rather than taking up her ideas for consideration. By combining their
remarks into dialogue, and juxtaposing them with Goldman’s critical perspectives on
marriage, I have been able to demonstrate the larger group’s general response (and the
• responses of most focus group members) to this work in a more dramatic fashion than
would have been possible through extended narration.
In assigning the essay, I had hoped to foster students’ consideration of
Goldman’s critical views on the effects of marriage on men and women. I hoped that
while they might not accept some of Goldman’s views, they might consider them as
they reflected on traditional patriarchal marriage. While I expected them to resist some
of her ideas, I was not prepared for the level of resistance to and rejection of her
critique, as her ideas hardly seem as radical today as they may have in 1912.
Most of the students defended the value of the traditional institution of marriage
without reflecting at all on the possibility that it might have privileged one sex over the
other. Many of the girls were unable to distance themselves from the status quo in order
to hear’ her objections to women’s identified sacrifices in marriage, without assuming
that she was either attacking women or attacking men. Of the larger group participants,
only Candy could admit that men take over in marriage, and only Sarah could see how
the “fairytale marriage ” continues to lure women into potential subjugation. Her remark
that “it would have been more acceptable for [her] grandmother to have killed [her]
abusive husband than divorce him ” would have seemed funnier had Marie not resisted
divorce even in the face of abuse, accepting the existence of abuse in the name of living
for another. Only Alicia was able to make the distinction between an institution and the
185
men and women in it. Even when that distinction was made, some of the boys
continued to insist Goldman was bashing men because of her critique of an institution
which limited the men and women of her time.
The most frightening aspect of the investigation was the ways in which some of
the boys resorted to name calling and blaming women for the problems Goldman
identified. They reacted to her charges by calling her “bitter,” “hateful,” “gross,”
“ugly” and a “dyke,” apparently assuming that these labels would diminish her
credibility. These retorts and Steve’s remark that Goldman shouldn't have pointed the
finger at marriage or men, but at women for their part in the undermining of marriage as
an institution, were tactics that not only validated Goldman’s remarks but also served to
intimidate those sympathetic with Goldman's point of view. Of the boys engaged in the
conversations, only Charles was able to see the distinction Goldman made between love
and marriage, and only Howard and Richard were able to see the essay as the wake up
call I believe it to be.
The resistance (Harper, 2000; Lewis, 1992,) shown by Brenda, Marie and
Hillary, to the critique of the subjugation of women and women’s acquiescence to male
superiority was even more astounding than many of the boys’ reactions to Emma’s
looks and her suggestion that women played a submissive role in relationship. But their
responses supported what Davies (1992), Martino (1995), Lewis (1992), Obbink, (1992)
and Walkerdine (1984) have argued with respect to the ways in which girls and boys
continue to be unconsciously enculturated into traditional gender and relationship roles.
Their responses also validated Walkerdine’s (1984) argument that rationalist anti-sexist
literature fails at reaching girls and boys if it assumes that a passive reader will change
as a result of receiving the correct information about how things really are (p. 164).
186
“THE GENTLE LENA”
By Gertrude Stein
ISSUES OF ENFORCED HETEROSEXUALITY
DALE AND SARAH
We all operate within a particular language, culture, social formation, and historical moment, collectively referred to as language or discourse (Marshall, 1992). This language shapes who we are, what we can say and know, how we think, what we can mean, what vexomes visible and what is possible. W illett, Jeannot, 1993, p.483
Choice
Before introducing the works of Fitzgerald, Hemingway, and Anderson, I decided to introduce a story by Gertrude Stein. This work, which chronologically fits in here, is beginning to make its way into the canon. In addition, after having seen their responses to Emma Goldman, I wanted to present the students with a fictional account of compulsory marriage to provide them with yet another view of marriage to consider.
Synopsis:
This story by Gertrude Stein is one chapter in the novel. Three Lives (1906). In the story, Lena is brought over from Germany by her aunt, Mrs. Hay don, to live with and work for her family. She is discriminated against by the other children in the family for being second class, German, and a bit on the naive and slow side. At a certain point, Mrs. Haydon decides it is time for Lena to get married. She contacts her friends the Kreders, and they all decide that Herman Kreder and Lena should get married. Lena isn’t really interested in marriage, as she is happy just being with her girlfriends, for whom she experiences ‘gentle stirrings.’ that she cannot define. But, “it never came to Lena’s . . . nature to do something different than what was expected of her just because she would like it,” so, she goes along.
Herman runs away to his sister’s house right before the wedding. He isn’t interested in marriage either and much prefers to hang around with his male friends. He does not appreciate women and has no interest in having them around. Despite this attitude, his father goes after Herman, explaining to him that “a bargain is a bargain.” His sister “did not want him not to want to be with women,” and talks him into going back with the father, explaining that marriage would “do him good.” He returns, and he and Lena marry. Lena becomes less and less interested in taking care of herself, and has less and less interest in life as the years go on and the babies are bom. She has no interest in babies either, as opposed to Herman who does enjoy raising the children. She eventually fades away in this relationship, becoming weaker as the years go on, and eventually dies giving birth to her fourth child.
187
Mv Reading
In the story, Stein is attempting to subvert the dominant story line in romance
genre that posits marriage as the only possible ending, and marriage and motherhood as
the ultimate satisfaction for women (Harper, 2000, p. 22). Essentially, she attempts to
disrupt the system of compulsory heterosexuality (Butler, 1990; Rich, 1972;
Walkerdine, 1984) and its required ‘happy endings’ that fail to raise alternatives and
signify closure by indicating only one kind of future. By writing what reads like an
allegory, Stein has Lena's semi-catatonic character sleepwalking through the marriage
to her death, the ultimate result of this enforced heterosexuality and the hegemonic
system, which undergirds it.
DALE (AJM.)
We have been conditioned since birth with fairy ta les about knights and princesses, fair maidens and princes, stu ff like that, where we have come to accept an ideal of heterosexuality and may not even realize everything that is going down with us. We get this idea of what is normal and we chase after it until we either catch it or we get too tired of chasing a dream and die. Dale
Dale is an extremely bright seventeen-year-old junior boy and a happy member
of both his school and his family communities. He lives with his parents, both
professors, who have been married for twenty-seven years. “They try to oppress me but
not very hard,” he says, “and we are all cheerful.” His hobbies include seeing and
analyzing films, hanging out with his girlfriend, listening to music, playing video games
and wishing he were in a rock and roll band. With respect to religious affiliation, he
describes himself as agnostic.
Dale is the king of the witty repartee. He contributed to literary discussions
more often and more enthusiastically than any other student in the combined group did.
Much of the conversation in the A M . class was either initiated or enriched by him.
188
And, discussion suffered when deprived of his contribution. He always came prepared
for class and always promptly handed in assignments. In general, he showed a high
interest in the class and the literature, and a strong desire for literary exploration.
He has a girlfriend, a few close friends, and a smattering of acquaintances who,
he says, see him as funny and silly. He is well liked by friends and staff, and is
generally successful at school. He does not like school, he says, but knows he needs it.
Most staff members enjoy him very much and appreciate his intellect, but think that he
does not work to his potential. And, he admits he is lazy. However, in this year, he
successfully taught a film class at the school. Film is his passion.
He is conflicted about his feelings about feminism. On the one hand, he admits
to guilt by association, and, he credits his mother for the awareness he has about gender
issues, such as the wage gap, the pressure to perform certain tasks, and the fact that it is
more acceptable for guys to be wrapped up in work than it is for women. He is also
conscious of how ingrained some gender prejudices are, even in himself. On the other
hand, he has a negative perspective on feminists. “While some of their causes are just,”
he says, “there is a caricature that makes young people not want to-get on board.
Society has characterized them as shaved headed, lesbian, butch, mean people, which
really isn’t accurate, but I still react to that stereotype.” He was the student who, when
responding to Emma Goldman’s point about women in the teens being an appendix to
men in marriage, said, “the word ‘dyke’ comes to mind when I listen to her.” However,
he says he thinks feminism itself should be called humanism’ and not ‘feminism’ “so
we can unite rather than divide and embrace the oneness in terms of gender and sex.”
He has often reacted negatively to some feminist literary criticism as well.
When reflecting on Leslie Horst’s feminist reading of Kesey’s (1969) One Flew Over
the Cuckoo’s Nest, which suggests that Kesey attributed society’s problems to the
women, he said that the critique “is defensive to the point that it turns around and starts
189
to do the same thing that it is criticizing. It bothers me because it is not any better.” He
also admits that he does not like to think o f literature in terms of author’s sex role
stereotyping of characters because it lessens the enjoyment. “Reading is supposed to be
a form of entertainment . . . so you don’t want to be just looking for that stuff and
overlook the good things in the story. ” On a personal note, he thinks that feminists have
taken some things too far . . . like open doors for women. “I started opening doors for
girls because it made me feel slick and James Bondesque,” he cracked. “I don’t want to
stop.”
He does, however, see gender as more of a construction than a biological
imperative and while he thinks feminists have taken things too far, he says that he is “all
about bending gender” himself. He thinks that it is a combination of fun and a
statement which says ‘don’t accuse me; 1 will accuse myself.’ He has admitted to an
understanding of confusion about sexual preference and of the ways in which society
pushes role-following. When I asked about the trend of many kids declaring themselves
bisexual and bending gender, he said that he believes that gender is the last, or at least
the latest frontier of civil rights— “the next battle that everyone is going to be having. It
is the whole. I’m black and I’m proud of it thing,’ only being gay, and not black.” He
thinks that throughout history, we have had these two separate little groups of people
with the girls and the guys, and this is a way o f not even having to be that separate
anymore, and allowing everyone to be the same.
Written Response
Dale made his most intense connection of the course with the character of Lena
in Gertrude Stein’s “The Gentle Lena. ” He understands, he said, how she got shoved
into something because she didn’t know what she wanted. He relates to that, and he
found a point where no one else did—that the story was a metaphor for ideological
coercion. As opposed to the other boys and girls in the A.M. class, who reported that
190
they thought the narrative was ineffective and dull, repetitive, uninteresting and
simplistic. Dale pointed out in his response that the simplistic form “revealed a
complexity beneath the surface.” Other students in the class felt that a situation like the
one in “Lena” was unrealistic for today because no one is still as lame or slow as Lena.
They also argued that people now would say ‘no’ to parents pushing them into
marriage. Dale disagreed, pointing out that:
I t still happens; it's not like something that just happened in the early 1900s. You could be Lena now. Lena's been going through life just trying to make the best of things. She moves on with life and then she meets this guy and keeps telling herself that she's going to get through it and then she dies.
Discussion
The class struggled to identify a message and to make some connection with the
story in early discussions, but to no avail. They argued with and heatedly repeated the
attacks that they had leveled against Lena in their written responses, calling her
“mentally handicapped,” “cardboard,” “oblivious,” and a waste of skin.” Dale also
argued that the repetition and slow pace of the story were devices used to develop her
theme and build characters. One student from the class retorted that he could have
written the story when he was in kindergarten. That student, looking for support for his
distaste for the story, finally asked me what I thought of it. I confessed that I focused
more on what Lena had to say than on her repetition, but agreed with Dale that in some
way the repetition helped to develop Stein’s characterization of Lena as well as her
theme. I offered up my idea that Lena might be suggestive of people who are herded
into particular behaviors by society. I was hoping to bring about the awareness of the
allegorical and metaphorical qualities of the story. I asked, “Does she represent people
who sleepwalk their way through life?” “Is she comparable to the plain and simple girl
who does what her parents tell her?” and “Is she blind to alternatives?” Margaret
191
Jackson asked whether Stein might have been saying that the patriarchal society turns
these people into sheep. From there, the same student asked why Lena was so stupid,
and this time Charles responded by saying “that is all society expects from her.”
Charles, who was beginning to see Dale’s point as well as mine, went on to
explain that “she’s a childlike little person and that was why it was written in a childlike
little form.” Dale agreed, saying that her whole situation was built around how
childlike she is. Charles then realized that “at that time, a woman’s societal duties were
to grow up, get married and give the man children.”
In attempting to bring the story into the students’ present day consciousness to
stimulate engagement (Bogdan, 1990, 1992; Hines, 1997; Jauss, 1982; Rogers, 1997;
Rosenblatt, 1978; 1995; Scholes, 1985), Margaret and I tried to lead the students into
some awareness of a current situation that might elicit a ’sleepwalking type’ response in
them—a situation in which they were coerced to behave in a certain way. They had
shown much difficulty in understanding why Lena could not just say no’ when there
seemed to be few pressures of this sort exerted. I somehow had an idea that things
hadn’t changed entirely since I was a girl, and Sandra Taylor’s (1993) research had lent
some credence to that. She found that “[f]or teenage girls, relationships are still usually
seen in terms of marriage and motherhood (p. 130). So, working from her idea that in
developing a feminist classroom practice it is necessary to consider lived social
relations as they relate to the construction of masculinity and femininity (Taylor, 1993),
I shared my life experience with them. I explained how conscious I was of doing what
was expected of me by marrying early and avoiding the threat of becoming “the old
maid” at age 22. Drawing on the students’ openness to and familiarity with
homosexuality and bisexuality today, and their knowledge of the history of gay
oppression, Margaret and I asked a few questions such as, “What if you don’t care to be
married?” What if you liked hanging out with the girls in the park better than you liked
192
the idea of a guy?” “What if you were a guy and you didn’t really like having women
around?” Our questions prompted a question from Charles, which changed the
direction of the conversation: “Was Stein suggesting that Lena’s husband was a
homosexual?” he asked.
We had studied Stein’s autobiography while working with some of her poetry,
so the students saw a possibility in Charles’ suggestion, and they began an intense
exploration of whether Stein was suggesting that either or both of the characters were
gay. They considered that possibility as well as the possibility that the two leading
characters just weren’t interested in the opposite sex. Although they knew Stein herself
was a lesbian, and entertained the idea that she might be creating a lesbian character, no
one was certain. Charles suggested, however, that if it were about not being interested
in a heterosexual relationship but being forced into one, then “it takes a whole new
meaning if that is the way you look at it. ” The group agreed and became more
interested in the discussion and in examining the text for support for this thesis. As they
talked, they became a bit more aware of the continued pressures society places on
individuals when it comes to heterosexuality. Candy, was, uncharacteristically, one of
the three girls who spoke during the conversation. In considering the idea that Lena
might have been gay, she realized how difficult it would have been in the early
twentieth century to follow that option. She made a most interesting point, suggesting
that for Lena, who was so constructed by the society’s pressure to marry when she
didn’t want to, that the only way out marriage was to die.
Dale pointed out that, as far as he was concerned, either of the two characters
(Lena or Herman) might have been gay. He cited Lena’s “gentle stirrings” for the girls
in the park, Herman’s preference to be with the boys, and both of the characters’
resistance to marriage as proof. He went on to say that while that avenue of thought
was interesting, more important to the story was the idea that they were victims of
193
enforced marriage and the insensitivity with which society leads, and the blindness with
which people follow.
The thing that attracted me about th e story was that I am fascinated by repression and people doing things that they think they have to do to get b y . . . people cutting themselves o f f from their emotions and doing what they think they have to do. That fascinates me and that is really what the whole story is about with Lena. I don't know if a lot of people find that boring or don't get it.
When I asked Dale about how he thought Lena was repressed, he said that with
Lena, more than Herman, she was just ‘queer’ in the sexual sense and also in the social
sense, but she didn't want to be. He thought that she wanted, deep down, to be the same
as everyone else, and to do what was expected of her. “Not wanting to do what was
expected of her didn’t make any sense to her because she had always done everything
that people had asked her to do. He explained that after being led into it, she thought,
“Oh, o k . . . marriage . . . I guess it won’t be anything different than the rest of the
stuff.’” Dale’s idea was that she tried it and didn’t want to come out and say, “This
isn’t working for me.” Instead, she just kept trying to make it work. Picking up from
Candy’s idea, he said, “eventually she just tried less and less and then she died.” His
idea about Herman was that he was not necessarily gay, but not particularly interested in
married life. Dale thought, however, Herman was interested, like Lena, in doing what
was expected of him.
Criticism
While 1 did not introduce any of Walkerdine’s (1984) theories to the A M . class,
I did share her theories with Dale during one o f our interviews. Dale was open to her
notions about gender identification and sex role behavior being enculturated,
particularly as it constructed heterosexuality. Although he had earlier resisted
Goldman’s (1969/1912) ideas about heterosexual marriage, he understood Walkerdine’s
194
(1984) points regarding Lena and Herman on a fundamental level, and worked within
her perspective to analyze the story in his writing.
Writing
Dale was so interested in continuing to investigate the story that he decided to
write his own adaptation of it that would allow him to further explore the same spirit of
social construction and resultant repression but from a contemporary point of view.
I have this feeling that if I just reread Lena and then sat down in front of a computer, I could make it work. The thing is, you hove to illustrate the invisible pressures in a not-too-obvious way, whereas back then, the pressures seemed more obvious. Our pressures come as much from within as without. There's a tremendous yearning to be normal.
Dale pointed out that while people have learned to accept homosexual
celebrities, they are often much less tolerant of gay people closer to home. He stressed
that the idea that he is part of a generation where people can do ‘whatever’ they want
with no social repercussions, is a mistaken one. “It is more like the illusion of “you can
do whatever; but, it has to be some sort of ‘whatever’ that is socially acceptable.’’ He
said that while young people today are not constrained, they still know that there is
always going to be some reaction and that guys always have to take that reaction into
account before doing anything. “You decide, ok, is this going to be worth being called
a fag?” The status quo was confirmed during the conversation about the story when one
boy in the class suggested that “if Lena and Herman just opened up to each other in this
relationship, they would like the opposite sex a little more.” We pointed out to him that
his attitude and that of Lena’s aunt and Herman’s sister were identical.
Although Dale preferred discussion to any other approach to processing a
literary work, I thought his choice to write would provide the ideal vehicle for his
further exploration of thoughts about Lena and the ways in which her issues play
themselves out in current society, so I encouraged it. Cixous (1980) has observed that
“writing is precisely the very possibility of discovery and change, the space that can
195
serve as a springboard for subversive thought, the precursory movement o f a
transformation of social and cultural structmes (p. 249).
In describing his experience with the writing of the adaptation, he talked mostly
about his frustrations attempting to create a situation in which the repression could be
replicated, and feeling that he had failed in doing so. In attempting to show that Lena
did not have the linguistic apparatus to be able to translate her discomfort into “I don’t
want to get married,” or “I want to be doing something else,” or “I like girls better,” he
portrayed her as someone who meekly followed the rules. He explained that
I think the way I did it was th at she would always say, “I like hanging out with the girls." She would never say "better" and she would never say “I don't want to do this." She would just say “I like hanging out with the girls."They would say, “but you have to get married," and then she would say,“oh." She wore herself out ju st doing what was expected and not having a problem with that.
In attempting to adapt the story for a contemporary version. Dale realized that Stein was
able to do something with the people of her time that he was having trouble doing in an
update with characters representing men and women of today.
Stein would have been much happier if Lena could get up and say "No, I am not going to get married now," but she still understood that for a lot of people, that is just not something they are capable of doing. She showed, though, that this is what happens to those people. Stein has great empathy—at the same time, knowing what the person should be doing and knowing she is not doing it, or even capable of it but loving the characters anyway. She has got it!
In my effort to get him beyond his writer’s block, we worked to identify
comparable yet contemporary gender-related societal pressures which still result in
standardized rituals and behaviors that rob individuals of uniqueness and personal
freedom. However, we were unable to replicate the combination of oppression,
conformity, and repression that so effectively demonstrated the loss of self and
spontaneity in the main characters in 'The Gentle Lena.” In the end, although he wrote
an adaptation, he considered it a failure and said that he believed that what the story had
196
to say was not important enough for today’s audience. He believed that what “The
Gentle Lena” was able to portray was indicative of repressive gender roles and
perspectives that our progress toward equality. He said that
We are just beyond the problem but we are aware of the problem. And, sometimes that can just make things worse because we are aware of the problem and we are tying to fix it but we still can't. And, then, you know that you are failing and it breaks you down. Knowing something is wrong and not being able to fix it is worse than having something wrong and not knowing about it. That is where we are now. We are aware about our prejudices about women, but it is still so ingrained into our psyches, that you don't know what you can do about it.
Believing that there still existed a possibility to update “Lena” for contemporary
audiences, and that more exploration on the connections between Stein’s world and ours
would put the students in touch with the coercive ideologies robbing individuals of
alternative options today. Dale and 1 continued to explore possibilities. To keep the
investigation going, I eventually called the ten focus group participants together to bring
Dale's ideas to fruition through group discussion and improvisational drama.
Social Imagination Activitv/final proiect
For a creative writing project. Dale did write a screenplay updating “The Gentle
Lena. ” However, although the thinking process in which he engaged was beneficial to
his understanding of social pressure per se, both he and I felt the screenplay to be a
replica of lines the students had come up with in the focus group (see end of this chapter
for discussion). Dale also wrote a screenplay in which he brought the protagonist in
Hemingway’s A Farewell To Arms beyond its last page and into the future. His
character, Frederic, moves on after the death of his beloved Catherine, and like his
creator, Hemingway, he goes to Paris where he meets Gertrude Stein and Alice B
Toklas. While Dale does not deal with the story of “The Gentle Lena ” per se, he does
continue his own investigation of society’s ambivalent perspectives on homosexual love
through a love triangle involving Fred, Gertrude Stein, and Alice B. Toklas. By
197
juxtaposing Frederic’s response to the lesbians, with Gertrude and Alice’s responses to
his challenges. Dale presents a conflict between traditional and alternative approaches
to homosexuality.
In the beginning of ACT II in Dale’s screenplay, Fred and Rinaldi discuss
Gertrude and Alice’s relationship.
RINALDIBaby, what’s wrong?
FREDWhat do you think about Gertrude and Alice?
RINALDIOh. I’m a big fan of theirs. They’re nice ladies, very nice.
FREDYes, I agree. But, doesn’t it strike you as a b i t . . . odd?
RINALDIOdd, how do you mean?
FREDYou know, for two women to be . . . like that.
RINALDIYou mean gay?
FREDYeah, that’s exactly what I mean. It just seems like . . . it’s not the way it
oughta be.
RINALDIThey’re very happy. Are you saying they shouldn’t be?
FREDNo. no. not at all. Just the way they go about being happy . . . . is quite
unusual, that’s all.
RINALDIOh, baby, you crack me up.
FREDI’m perfectly serious.
RINALDIYou’ve got a bit of a crush on old Gertrude, don’t you?
198
Further on in ACT II, he has Alice speak after Gertrude tells her she loves Fred and Dale explores his 'normal theme:
ALICEYou love me! You love me! I don’t know how else to explain it. You’re sick of being viewed as an outsider; you want to be normal. So you find a man who has “feelings” for you . . . who thinks he knows what love is, and he tells you you’re in love. Well, you know what? That’s bullshit! It’s bullshit! You’re . . . GOD [that’s taking the Lord’s name in vain, not proclaiming GERTRUDE as God]. You’re so smart and beautiful and everything . . . How could you fall for it? Do you think you’re going to be happy with him?
GERTRUDEAlice . . . I am happy.
ALICENo, you’re not!
GERTRUDEAlice, I’m sorry.
Through the play, Dale worked through Gertrude’s love o f Alice, her
experimentation being with a man, and Fred’s experience loving a lesbian. At the end
of the play, he eventually brings Alice and Gertrude back together. He brought out his
own and others’ biases and attitudes and resolutions. Through the use of his
imagination, he was able to explore what he had not been able to explore as completely
even in the many discussions. As Maxine Greene has pointed out.
Not always but oftentimes, the extent to which we grasp another’s world depends on our existing ability to make poetic use of our imagination, to bring into being the ‘as if,’ worlds created by writers, painters, sculptors, filmmakers, choreographers and composers, and to be in some manner, participants in artists’ worlds reaching far back and ahead of time. (Greene, 1995, p. 4)
Reflections
With the exception of Dale, the students in the A M. class began the study of
“The Gentle Lena” experiencing little or no connection to any of the characters, no
relationship to the plot or theme, and no appreciation for either Stein’s style or her point
199
of view. Dale really appreciated “The Gentle Lena.” He also appreciated Stein’s style
and the story’s connection to contemporary situations. “Lena exists now, ” he stated. He
argued that people in his generation are still pressured to do the acceptable thing, and
that the idea that they can do ‘whatever’ they choose is an illusion. Regarding gender
equality, he argued that “we are somewhat beyond the problem but still aware of the
problem, which makes it harder to fix.’’
Discussion is Dale’s favorite way to learn, but writing the screenplay helped to
put him in touch with the gender issues in “The Gentle Lena’’ and the social pressures in
contem porary life. He was able to explore the issues of enforced
marriage/heterosexuality through the attempt to write that screenplay, and he was able
to continue that exploration and extend it to an investigation of bisexuality in his update
of A Farewell to Arms.
Dale’s perspectives on “Lena ” affected the rest of the group. While the rest of
the class did not grow to appreciate the way in which the story informs contemporary
societal influences as much as Dale did, his attention to the story and its connections to
adolescents today had an impact on Charles and, eventually, the rest of the group.
There is a dramatic difference between students’ resistance to the story evident in
written responses to the characters and Stein’s theme in the beginning of the
investigation, and their ability to discuss the story toward the end of the unit. Focus
group participants from both classes continued to explore possibilities for updating the
story. This work is described at the end of this section.
SARAH (P. M.)
Sarah is the antithesis of the rich, ultra-feminine, ultra-manipulative Fitzgerald
heroine, the demure Catherine Sloper, or the submissive Lena type. Rather than finding
her in gauzy white linen, or red velvet you are more likely to find her in a black or faux
leopard halter, exposed belly, black pants and boots. She is direct and down to earth,
200
but is not masculine by any traditional standards. She says that she has different
tendencies than a lot of girls that have had a strong female influence, because she was
raised without her mother, for the most part. “I am not dainty, she says. "‘I would not fit
in with the mainstream high school girls.” She claims that growing up, she had many
chances to fit in with “cutesy, manicury types,” but it never interested her. She thinks
that a lot of ‘how a woman acts like a woman’ is learned. She has learned to
communicate a lusty earthiness.
Sarah speaks her mind, even when opinions are different, and they often are.
She says that sometimes that results in admiration from people, and sometimes in
frustration. “ I respect myself and those who earn it,” she says. “I’m open and
intelligent because I know it’s important to be if I want to be happy. ” The fact that she
is open and independent in her thinking means that she often “chooses the truth over
tactfulness,” she says. “There is a reason I don’t put up with idiots, but it doesn’t mean
I am not nice or kind.” She is more a critic of the society than of individuals, and is
veiy respectful of and sensitive to individuals. She considers herself very social, but
concentrates on a few good friends. The staff describes her as popular with her circle of
friends. They also see her as strong, confident, unconventional, and competent.
Sarah is very bright. Her hobbies include visiting museums, traveling, watching
films, and appreciating art and music. She does very well in school, likes to read and
reads a lot. She says she is committed to everything but math. Her sharpness is really
apparent in her ability to see through the social pretenses and hypocrisies, however, and
she does this with a great deal of aplomb and witty sarcasm. Besides describing herself
as independent, she also thinks she’s ‘eccentric,’ funny,’ genuinely weird, and a lot of
fun.
She finds her suburban hometown neighbors generally small-minded, and claims
that she does not like living in the town. She resists the conservatism and uniformity of
201
thought, dress, and behavior that she thinks characterize the town. She also resists the
ways in which people can be categorized in unfair ways, and she has, at times, felt that
she has been the victim of unfair categorization.
Sarah is an atheist. She is also open and has a progressive look and an open way
of looking at marriage, sexuality, behavior, and gender construction. She is
heterosexual, has dated a lot of guys in high school, and has had a steady boyfriend for
about a year now. She is open to all kinds of people and lifestyles, and she openly
challenges those who are judgmental about others’ choices. She herself has no
intentions of getting married. She can’t predict the future, so if she vowed her love for
all eternity, and took it back later on, she wouldn’t see herself as a very honorable
person. On the other hand, Sarah says, “if I waited to get married to have sex, I would
not have it at all, ever. ” She claims that “I don’t need a piece of paper to tell me I’m in
love. If I really want a symbol of my love with another person, we can still use rings or
whatever else we want.” She thinks love is stronger if finalized by the couple and not
someone else. She does think it is difficult to follow your own way because there is just
as much social pressure now as there ever has been. She says that the only difference
now is that “not only are we being told to follow the norm, but we are also told to be
unique and independent individuals. She is not surprised that this results in confusion
for many people.
Sarah has had a unique background. Her father raised her from the time she was
three, and she describes her relationship with him as extremely casual. “I was raised by
a bunch o f guys,” she says. 1 was pretty much raised roughhousing and playing. Her
dad, his friends, and her godfather are among those having the greatest influence. Her
mother was in her life somewhat but not as a role model for femininity. She thanks her
grandmother for that. She says she was a strong role model for conventional femininity
and taught her to behave ‘like a girl.’ When she thinks about femininity, however, she
202
equates it with strength. “Being strong is feminine, dammit” is her mantra. “I am
strong, but I think of myself as ‘feminine.”
When asked about feminism, her reply was that she “doesn’t like obnoxious
loudmouths” but that she does respect those who do what they feel is right. And, she
thinks there is cause for feminists’ concern. She was the one in the Emma Goldman
scene who understood that “it would have been more acceptable for her grandmother to
have killed her husband than to divorce him.” And, she does think that the feminist
stand on abortion rights is right on. “It is the woman’s right to choose, not the man’s,”
she insists. But, she adds, “men can be feminists too. I don’t think it is just women by
any means.” She does point out, though, that she doesn’t think that feminism is socially
acceptable in her town, especially if someone is the kind of feminist who is outright and
very forward. “That is definitely not acceptable here,” she says. She thinks that there
are about four feminists in the town, saying that “it is about as rare as Michael’s
(another student) family being Bahai. ”
Sarah also claims that there is still sexism in our country on a high level,
evidenced by the lack of women in public office. “We can have social role models and
rock stars, ’’she says, “but having some women up there in some high ranking positions,
that’s a different thing. ” She says that to have women in high-ranking positions “you
would have to have a country full of open minded people, and this certainly is not that
country.” She also says that
Women seeking political office would have to be tough. I t would be hell to go through. You would have to be strong, intelligent and not too emotional and thin skinned. You would have to be wonderful in every womanly kind of way and feminine and flowery but you would have to be able to be strong and take on a manly position.
She says that there is a lot of oppressive stuff going on, “it’s just more subtle
than it used to be.” She believes that there is still strong pressure on guys to be manly,
and strong pressure on girls to be pretty and cute. She claims that because young people
203
get pressure from both sides, “they are constantly trying to find the balance between
extreme sex role stereotypes.” She sees teenage girls reinforcing stereotypes.
“Teenage girls love being pretty for boys who want to play,” she says. And, she says
that there are many really strong girls now, but there are still many saying, ”love me
love me love me need me need me need me.” She thinks gender roles are definitely
learned, but it is not a conscious thing. She drew from Butler’s ideas in saying;
There is nobody teaching you that this is right and this is wrong. But eventually you pick up on it. Watching people. Watching a woman g e t . . . as sweet as it is, you know, chocolates and flowers and things. You know, just the whole . . . people go out. Man wears slacks. Girl wears a skirt. I t is not enforced or not all bad or anything like that. I t is Just learned s tu ff you pick up along the way.
Sarah thinks the media exacerbates stereotypical gender roles by playing to
extreme gender constructions, but realizes that this sells. She thinks that these issues
are apparent in the books we read too, and that reading the novels and stories has made
her realize how constructed people are in terms of gender. But, “people aren’t bad,” she
says. “People don’t have wrong views, it is just that society eventually has put this
impression on all of us without our knowing it, that this is the way it is supposed to be.”
She has a commitment to change things but prefers to address personal issues rather
than to attempt to work with society at large. “Protesting is useless, she says, “personal
strength is best.” She thinks that proving your own life and your role in it is the best
way to approach some things. “Men and women should be on a more equal footing, “
she says. “At this point, guys still need to understand that women are equal. Women
need to realize that and.practice what they preach. Don’t fawn all over men!
Sarah also thinks that there are many teenagers who get love and infatuation
confused. She finds many girls and women exceedingly dependent. “Many teenage
girls think that if they lose this one person they are with, that there will never be
another.” She thinks that one thing girls need to realize when they start dating is that
204
they should be able to picture themselves alone before they start picturing themselves
with someone else. She really appreciated Catherine in Washington Square and Janie in
Their Eyes Were Watching God for their independence. I found this interesting
considering that Candy related to these characters through weakness at first. Sarah
thought that Catherine was too docile in the beginning, but admired her in the end
because she ended up not marrying somebody and not really listening to her father.
“She evolved as the book went. It is nice to see characters evolve into something.” She
also liked Janie in Their Eves Were Watching God because she was a good role model
for the strong and independent woman. “If you haven't decided that you are going be
ok on your own, then you will not be good with somebody else.”
When Sarah reads, she says that she does not initially notice sexism in the
novels or short stories, so she thinks it is important for teachers to help students to point
out stereotypes and sexist paradigms. “Otherwise,” she says, “students will just have
the usual discussions about the books and pick up the wrong things from the book or
maybe not really get the point.” She feels that the fact that she had never really been
introduced to gender issues before is because it is such a sensitive topic.” I mean
schools are so sterile: middle, elementary, and high. People are so careful about the
way that they talk about things here in this town.
Sarah thinks that revising the literature and playing with it to bring out the
sexism is a healthy thing for those who are reading it. She thinks that it is especially
important right now when people are starting these serious relationships.
You are actually entering young adulthood and reading something like that .. . like I said . . . very unconsciously you will pick up on things. I mean you are gonna get an impression of life that may not be true but that is what you get a fter a while because you see it so much. I t sort o f osmoses into your psyche.
205
Written Responses
The written responses in this afternoon class mirrored those from the morning
class. Here too, the students’ initial reactions were negative. They echoed each other’s
judgments that the story was ‘dumb’ and ‘boring,’ that they could not relate to either the
characters or the story, that none of the characters was realistic, and that the story could
not take place today. Their main complaint, however, was that the writing was
repetitive. They had thought that repetition had worked in Stein’s poetry, which we had
read before “The Gentle Lena,” but that it did not work in Stein’s fiction. Sarah initially
made no contact with any of the characters in the short story, and. like most of the other
students, had difficulty understanding Stein’s point or appreciating her style.
Discussion
Howard, the student who had seen Goldman’s treatise as a wakeup call, argued
passionately, as Dale had done in the A.M. class, for the value of “The Gentle Lena. ”
However, his argument that the point of the story was to show that all the characters are
one-dimensional and that “they don’t change or deviate,” went unheard by the rest of
the class. He continued to argue for his hypothesis, recalling the section on how
Herman’s sister pushes the status quo: “Go along. Don’t be afraid of women. Just get
married and you will be happy. Go along with Papa now and you will get married and
be happy,” he chanted ironically. But, no one could either see Stein’s point or
appreciate her style at the beginning. Brenda said that it would have been much more
interesting had she not repeated everything fifty times. Howard disagreed, saying, “the
repetition helped to drive the point home that she was so gentle, and compliant and
naive. He argued that if this had been reduced to a 1 and 1/2-page story, it wouldn’t
have been as effective. “The message would not have hit so hard.” The message
unfortunately seemed only to have hit him and Sarah. Sarah suggested that Stein might
have used her style to reflect Lena’s personality.
206
In an effort to move the discussion beyond stalemate and toward a line of
thought that might engage the students in a more personal consideration of the story’s
theme (Bogdan, 1997, 1999: Rosenblatt, 1978, 1995), I retold my coming of age story
and Margaret Jackson shared her experiences with social pressure. We then asked the
students to consider today’s mores in terms of both the pressures on Lena and Herman
to marry, and the pressures on me to not be ‘an old maid.’ I asked my first question:
“has that kind of social pressure to marry gone away?” If so, if someone were
reproducing this story today for a current audience, with what kind of pressures would
they be dealing?” Responses to that question resulted in a discussion about sex and
sexual mores of today. What struck me were the contradictions under which these
students were living.
The class responded by elucidating the forces in the culture that do pressure
them in terms of sex and marriage. One student admitted the pressure that his friends
put on him because he is still a virgin and he confessed his worst fear: remaining a
virgin until his wedding night. At the same time, he did admit a preference for a
virginal wife. Both girls and boys confirmed the thriving double standard, which his
statement revealed. “If a girl has sex you call her a slut, but if a guy has sex, you say
“Congratulations.”
Sarah had jokingly said that because her parents are so liberal, they “don’t care
what she does as long as they don’t have to pay for it.” And, because of the fact that
she had little parental pressure to do the appropriate thing,’ she thought that she would
not have a tendency to walk blindly into marriage like Lena had. She did, however,
relate to the issue of girls and guys calling girls sluts as an example of sexism and
pressure to behave in appropriate’ ways that she had experienced. She says that
women are still held to a different standard than men regarding sexual activity. If a
woman scores with a couple of guys she is a slut, if a man does it, he’s a hero. She
207
argued that this kind of sexist slur doesn’t just come from men. She thinks women put
other women down more than men do because of competition generating from Jealousy.
This opinion had been borne out in the class with both girls and boys accusing
such female characters as Louise Bryant (in the movie Reds) of being a slut. Despite
my many attempts to deconstruct the word and discuss its capacity to control the
behavior of women but not men, it did not stop. Even my attempt to have students
consider Louise Bryant's decision to two-time Jack Reed by writing a poem or diary
entry, did not really stop the tendencies to peg certain women as ‘sluts'
Sarah herself had been called a ‘slut,’ she said, and that slur had hurt her.
However, she feels that she has gotten beyond the sting’ of it by realizing that “name
calling is usually something that is the result of some unresolved issue. If someone
calls me a ‘slut,' it is because they have a problem with me, and that is just it, it is their
problem. It speaks about their insecurity.” She has also gotten beyond it by realizing
that such slurs come from the fact that teenagers get love and sex confused, and look
down on sex that doesn’t involve love. She did say that, although she has gotten past
most of the pain of the comments, it is difficult to get through that kind of pressure and
criticism. It is especially painful because the word is not used for men; it is another
example of the double standard.
The other girls pointed out that they still react to the mixed messages and
consequent pressures and confusions that such a double standard still exerts on them.
Narratives such as “what a man wants is to be a woman’s first love and “what a woman
wants is to be a man’s last romance” were recited and it was confirmed that they still
play out in their heads as maxims by which to live. According to the girls, such
narratives pressure them to behave in certain ways but also serve to confuse them when
delivered’ side by side with contradicting narratives insisting on the freedom to do
what they want.
208
Sarah made several references to the effects of contradicting narratives offered
by the society and the ways in which teens are impacted by those contradictions. She
said that she is more and more aware that she is being told to follow the norm but also
while doing this, she is obligated to be a total individual. She said, “everyone is telling
you to ‘follow this certain path and specific rules, “ but be totally yourself and unique
and go for it.” It is hard to put the two together,” she says. And, while virtually all the
students had difficulty relating to Stein’s fictional world defined as it is by parental
authoritarianism, enforced m arriage, absence of divorce and blindness to
homosexuality, they still expressed an awareness of the mixed messages sent out by
their society on many of these issues.
For example, although in discussion of both Washington Square and “The
Gentle Lena,” Hillary mentioned that parents don’t have the same kind o f control over
adult children that they did in the past, she still related Lena’s situation to her own
deference to authority by means of her direct response (Bogdan, 1992; Soter, 1999).
Because Lena is gentle and sw eet that probably meant that she was shy like me and didn't want to speak up. Like me, she might have fe lt that her guardians knew what was best for her. In a way, I am kind of like Lena too because I don't like to rebel. I think if my parents told me to do something that was really wrong, I would probably say something, b u t . . . otherwise it would be hard for me.
And, though Brenda pointed out that “most everyone in America won’t have to go
through a forced marriage, Sarah replied that she thought pressures like Lena’s were
still there, but “just more subtle.” Furthermore, although Hillary mentioned that “it is
now more acceptable not to get married if you are a woman,” she and several others
mentioned that as far as their parents were concerned, there is great pressure that they
already feel to eventually marry and have children. As far as my parents are concerned,
“I was put on earth to have children,” said Brenda. And, although there is freedom to
209
divorce when things go wrong, realities make it as difficult as ever. She reminded the
others that
You guys asked, “why didn’t she ju st get divorced?" But, seriously, when you are married and you have children and you have a stable home, if you leave that it will break it all up and there is this huge obligation to just stay there and deal.
On the subject of homosexuality, while many of the students could agree that
gays are more accepted now, they still admitted that society still “looks down on people
who are gay and think it is wrong.” And, though some even admitted to a trend which
pressures kids to experiment with bisexuality and alternative lifestyles “to be hip,” there
is still an awareness of society’s bifurcated stance on the subject. One boy captured the
ambivalence when he said, “I’ve never looked at a gay couple in the park and said,
"damn, that looks awesome. I want to be gay too!”’
Marie explained how she addresses society’s mixed messages and her
ambivalence through religion. She has vowed not to have sex until she is married. “It is
always a bad decision to have sex before marriage,” she argued, and stated that she
hadn’t even kissed a guy. “It is that much more of an accomplishment in a society that
is all about having sex,” she said. “I would never call anyone a hussy for kissing
someone,” she said, “but there are very undeniable standards of right and wrong. Sarah
has not drawn the same moral conclusions, and has not chosen celibacy, admitting that
she suffers the consequences of her decisions in spite of this ‘open’ society. “First of
all, “ she says, “ it is fantastic that Marie is proud that she had not kissed a guy, but I am
not going to lie. People in here know that I am not a virgin. All I am saying is I get
called names. You get called names on both ends, either a prude or a feminazi. Even if
I am in love, I am a ‘slut.’”
Other students offered contrasting kinds of unique pressures in an attempt to
understand Lena’s situation. Hillary pointed out that
210
Lena might have fe lt that she needed to get married because it was her only offer . I know I haven't kissed anyone, because I haven't had any offers. So. I think after a while, you sort o f wonder, “will I have any offers?" I t was important in Stein's time to get married. She might have realized she was shy and didn't talk to people and wouldn't have another chance.
All in all, the girls and boys reacted in ways that seemed to suggest that
contemporary teenagers were at a crossroads marked by contradictions and mixed
messages that resulted in some ambivalence, and they reacted to Lena in terms of their
personalities and life situations. While discussion suggested to me that the double
standard still thrives, there is more openness now for kids to make individual decisions.
I concluded that an attempt to conjure up a contemporary version of “Lena” that
could address the ways in which people today are anesthetized into behavior
comparable to Stein’s characters, would be a challenge, but an important one. I was
beginning to see that Dale’s idea about the existence of an internal, rather than external
pressure to be normal” was the clue to an update that would represent contemporary
society. The update, while exposing current methods of anesthetization, would also
have to speak to the tension between the individual freedom that kids experience, as
well as the subtle pressures to live up to society’s dicta and the desire to be ‘normal.
What was normal for these kids? I wondered. And, how did normality relate to gender
identification? I hoped to address those issues in continued discussion.
The first part of the conversation with the afternoon class had led to my
awareness that I needed to address the subject of enforced heterosexuality (Rich, 1986;
Walkerdine, 1884; Butler, 1999; Davies, 1992), particularly in view of the many
references to gays that were made in both classes discussing “Lena. ” So, I asked my
next question based on both Dale’s point about being ‘normal’ and Stein's celebrated
lesbianism: “What if we looked at “Lena” as a commentary on the kind of culture that
is so caught up in a basic heterosexual narrative (romance, love, and then marriage), that
211
it is insensitive to any other options, lifestyles or individuals.” I hoped that this question
would eventually lead to an identification of comparable pressures in their lives and the
tensions between these pressures and the belief in their individual freedom (Rosenblatt,
1995/1938, 1978).
This began a discussion, dominated by Marie, that, although extraordinarily
difficult, proved a very significant one not only for the identification of contemporary
social pressures which involve gender and sexism, but also for the students’
investigation of attitudes about homosexuality, which according to Helen Harper
(2000), is an important issue not dealt with enough in the schools. The discussion also
reinforced the ideas emphasized by both Dale and Sarah regarding the multiple and
conflicting messages coming at teenagers today with yet another example.
Mostly all of the students struggled with Marie’s abhorrence of alternative
lifestyle options and her connection of homosexuality with crime and sin. Richard had
a particularly difficult time as the philosophy threatened his beliefs and bisexual
lifestyle. They both devoted much time attempting to make the other understand his/her
perspective.
Pat: What if we look at this story in terms of a commentary on enforced heterosexuality in our culture?
Marie: Of course heterosexuality is enforced. I t is ridiculous to think that it wouldn't be. I t ’s what happens naturally. Think about it.
Richard: But sometimes naturally, other things occur. Like being gay or bisexual or lesbian. Bisexuality and being gay and lesbian is natural as much as heterosexuality is. I t is natural because I think that genetically a person is born that way. They can't help it. And, you shouldn't criticize or ridicule people for being that way. They can't help it. And I think it was a good point that Stein was making.
Marie: I f people are born into homosexuality or heterosexuality, why do people switch back and forth so much?
Richard: Because they are confused.
212
Marie: Richard. No. I t just doesn’t work th e same way. I t isn't genetic. Do the diagram. The actual equipment, it works with a guy and a girl, not really another combination. We have talked about how males and females are quite d ifferent emotionally and just the way that mentally they think. They complement each other very well, and it just seems unnatural to me. You can’t say that because society accepts something that makes it natural or that makes it even right. Society accepts abortion as being right. In our society, you can murder someone and walk away from it.
Richard: I am bisexual, and so when you say that it is a sin to be who I am it is a slap in the face. I can’t help who I am.
Marie: But you can help who you are.
Richard and the class reacted in strong opposition to Marie’s position, which,
incidentally, I realized served as a comparable governing mindset to the one that had
created the social climate that Stein was challenging in “’Tlie Gentle Lena,” and the one
to which Lewis (1992) and Walkerdine (1984) had referred. It was clear to most
everyone that the unchallenged adherence to the bible that Marie exhibited could be
seen as synonymous with Lena’s aunt’s compliance with the mores of her time.
Sarah's perspective was illustrated in this conversation as she tried to speak for
those who were feeling attacked by Marie’s connection of homosexuality with crime.
Sarah : You’re comparing homosexuality with crime. With crime, you’re hurting someone.
Marie: Ok, Greed. Compare it to greed. Compare it to any other thing that that bible names a sin.
Sarah : I would say that as far as crime goes you are directly hurting someone else. With homosexuality, who (sic) are you hurting?
Marie: You are hurting yourself.
Sarah: You are hurting yourself? You’re making yourself happy with someone you love.
Marie: No, you are not. You are falling into like something that society has conjured up.
213
Sarah: People have to be real careful about comparing sexuality to crime because that is just dangerous.
This discussion alerted me to one of the difficulties inherent in employing
critical feminist pedagogy, and that is the tension experienced when the feminist agenda
conflicts with sacred, cultural, or religious ideology. I was reluctant to tamper with
Marie's religious beliefs, as I neither felt that it was my right to do so, nor did I see any
possibility for change. At the same time, there were people in the class who needed
protection, and I felt it was wrong for them to be accused of being sinners. So, while I
believed that the issue of compulsory heterosexuality was an important one for
consideration in any discussion of this story and this author, I also realized that this
particular class would not benefit from a continuation of the ideological argument about
the immorality of homosexuality.
While I believe, with Pitt (1994) that “[rjesistance, like any communicative act,
changes all those involved in the experience, and can open up possibilities for dialogue,
communication, and even community between unlikely parties”(p. 32), I was aware that
these possibilities could only be opened up when teachers and students alike were open
to critical reflection. I did not see Marie, at this point, as open to critical reflection on
this subject due to her religious beliefs. Therefore I decided that further exploration of
the relationship between her and Lena’s compliance would have been inappropriate.
The argument was not effecting any kind of change on either side and it was beginning
to be upsetting to those, like Richard, whose lifestyles and beliefs were considered
immoral. Although the strong sentiments against alternative sexual preference troubled
many of the other students, they also confirmed the power o f the intolerance of Stein’s
society, as well as intolerance operating in today’s society.
Although the students were tempted to take it on in an extended conversation, I
felt that Marie, Sarah, Richard and the other students would benefit more from a
214
different approach. Therefore, I chose to eventually focus on the potential for our
insensitivity and discrimination of ‘the other’, when we are committed to the belief that
our ideas are as appropriate for everyone as they are for ourselves. And, I chose to
focus on what one student called ‘Lena’s struggle to run her own life.’ By taking the
focus off the political/religious argument, and putting it on the ways in which blind
insensitivity impacts on the ‘victims,’ I believed I could leave the door open for
individuals to consider various reasons why enforced marriage might be abhorrent to
some, be they homosexual, heterosexual, or simply not interested or ready for the
institution. This decision also left the door open for students to draw their own
conclusions about social conditioning today. As one student pointed out, oppression is
the issue, and it is not limited to homosexuals.
I f she is forced into a relationship, it doesn't matter if it is a homosexual or a heterosexual one. The issue is the pressure. She will turn into a robot just as easily either way because she is gonna be forced into this lifestyle that she didn't like, and, she didn't want.
Social Imagination/Project
Only one student in the P.M. class chose to focus on Stein’s work for her final
project. While not addressing the issues of content brought out in “The Gentle Lena,’’
Marie did focus on Stein’s style. She used her own musical talent to compose “An Ode
to Gertrude Stein’’ a musical piece which she translated the repetitive rhythms in Stein’s
work into music.
She wrote the song in the key of G minor, because it, like Stein, is uncommon.
“It is rare in any band literature,” she said. “This suits Gertrude because she stood out,
away from the mainstream, anything but typical.” The ode is also unusual because it
employs only three notes; the song is forty measures long, with only the notes G, B, and
D used.
215
3 ^ e ta • f^ a p o \eo ia
Figure 43 : Marie’s Ode to Gertrude Stein
Beginning with a simple one-octave arpeggio, it continues, like Stein, with many
variations. “I feel this represents Gertrude mostly in the way that she speaks in reading
her poetry and in writing her fiction,” said Marie. “When she says something she
doesn’t just say it once. She says it over and over in order to extract any and every
meaning from the words she chooses. Simply, I used the same principle only applied to
music.”
Reflections
While students in the first class were in general slightly more comfortable with
the subject of homosexuality, students in both classes had significant trouble
understanding Stein’s critique of enforced marriage and enforced
heterosexuality. My attempt to get them to get the class to consider its impact in
216
contemporary society resulted in an argument between class members whose values on
sexuality clashed. There was evidence of a double standard, of a resistance to
alternative lifestyles, and of the problems involved when feminism and religious
ideology clash.
The most important developments to come out of the investigation of “The
Gentle Lena” were Sarah’s references to the society’s contradictory narratives regarding
gender. She pointed out that the message to “be yourself” but also to “follow the norm ”
is extremely confusing for young people right now. Her point opened the door for me
to begin a more intense concentration on students’ contradictions, conflicts and
ambivalence, a concentration that Harper (2000) and others suggested be a central focus
in the development o f pedagogy for the gender-conscious study of literature.
Although Sarah began the course as one conscious of gender inequities in
society, there was significant development in her ability to recognize gender issues in
literature during the course o f the study of “The Gentle Lena. ” This is particularly clear
when intial written responses are compared with later references to the allegorical
function o f the literary piece in discussions and dialogic textual negotiations that
followed. Sarah’s most dramatic progress was evidenced by the insights on Lena that
Sarah saw as a result of her writing of the story update and from the discussions and
improvisations which the focus group engaged while working on that update in the
improvisational workshop conducted with the focus group (See following section for
analysis o f this improvisational workshop).
217
WRITING/IMPROVISATIONAL WORKSHOP The Gentle Lena
(Social Imagination Activity —The Focus Group)
Limited class time prevented our completion of an update of “Lena” in either
class. However, because I thought the activity would make the story more relevant to
students’ lives, and thereby enhance interaction and engagement (Beach and Hynds,
1991; Jauss, 1982; Rosenblatt, 1978; Soter, 1997), I decided to continue the discussion
in a workshop with the focus group participants.
1 called the group together for a writing/improvisational workshop in which the
students could further explore present day pressures for marriage and heterosexuality by
writing an updated screen adaptation of “The Gentle Lena.” My objective was to help
them to further identify, through the literature, the gender-related social pressures that
society exerted on them, using Stein as a model. I hoped that using the writing
workshop would help to replicate of the kind of critique that Stein had accomplished
with “The Gentle Lena.” She had analyzed taken-for-granted practices, and instead of
treating them as 'givens,’ showed that “they must be viewed within historical and social
relations that are produced or socially constructed “(Giroux 1984, p. 322). The question
was could we do the same for an increased understanding of today’s pressures and
thereby help reduce Soter’s (1997) “aesthetic resistance.”
The group met twice in an attempt to write the scenes for the film update o f the
story. Present in the group discussion were Sarah, Dale, Charles, Brenda, Hillary,
Howard, Ellen, and Alicia (a member of the class who enjoyed attending workshops).
Sarah and Dale developed as the leaders of the group and Sarah actually was the
primary writer of initial script following discussion with the rest of the group. The
difficulties the students experienced included identifying a situation comparable enough
to Stein’s early 20th century scenario to work in a contemporary movie. I believe part
of the difficulty in adapting this story into a screenplay was due as much to the
218
allegorical nature of the original piece (which Howard had seen so clearly), as to the
dramatic social changes that had taken place over the years, with respect to marriage
and sexuality (upon which Sarah and Dale agreed).
The writing workshop was scheduled for two days. On ‘Day One,’ I gave
students the charter to come up with a plot and theme for the “Lena” adaptation, which
would appeal to a millennium movie audience. I directed them to come up with
character descriptions for Herman, Lena and the significant adults.
Sarah used Dale’s theme, which was ‘the internal pressure to be normal,’ and
wrote the plot line, which basically told the story of two college graduates who, upon
graduation and return home to Suburbia, USA, were successfully ‘fixed up’ by their
parents. The script took them from the initial return from college, through the marriage
and to the eventual demise of the relationship. The students got far enough to set a few
scenes, which would reveal the students’ disinterest but corresponding need to please
the parents and ‘be normal.’ The two writers, helped by Hillary, Brenda and Howard,
chose to depict a subtle suggestion of Lena and Herman’s confused sexual identities by
means of several scenes.
Some of the scenes served to suggest present day life and culture. For example,
they decided to have Herman hanging out in a suburban sports bar, where he escapes his
loveless and pointless marriage and meets a few guys whose company he prefers. Sarah
also had Lena experimenting with, and eventually becoming addicted to, mind-numbing
drugs to help her through an existence that for reasons unknown to her (because of her
desire to be normal) worked against the grain of her personality and needs.
The students decided that sex scenes should be shot of the couple, focusing
primarily on the disinterested look on their faces as they made love. They thought that
this would illustrate the idea that they have sex merely for purposes of procreation or
“just because they were supposed to do it.” Gazes from Herman directed at males on
219
the TV in the background suggest to the audience that he might be more interested in
them. Also, subtle appreciative and desirous looks between Lena and some of the
women at the gym (where she goes to ostensibly keep in shape for Herman) would
define her as a latent lesbian.
On the second day o f the workshop, I played the disenchanted director,
questioning Sarah and Dale on the couple’s motivation for getting married. I had felt
that the pressures from the parents were important to the original story and not working
in the update. There wasn’t a strong enough motivation. “Why are they together?” I
asked. And, “how did they get pushed into this relationship in today’s world?” I felt
that the scenario wasn’t working to bring the students to the place where they could
actually experience emotions similar to those experienced by Lena and Herman, the
only way I thought they could break down the barriers between their culture and Stein’s
(Edmiston, 1999; Heathcote, 1984; Jauss, 1982; Johnson, 1993; Kohlberg, 1980;
O’Neill, 1995;) and asked the students if they had any other ideas for the scenes? What
other scenarios would work? I asked. “Are there any comparable pressures?
They considered several other options. They thought a Christian family might
work, thinking of pushing conservative religious principles as one possible reason for
such deferential children. They saw the pushing of ‘typical American values’ as
another possibility. In this case, the youngest sister in a family of popular girls could be
the ‘odd girl out’ in a family focused on dating and romance. The older sisters would
be blind to the idea that their youngest sibling (Lena) would not follow in their
successfully heterosexual footsteps vigorously searching for Mr. Right. They also
considered that the couple could be two members of a large gang of heterosexuals, such
as the TV Friends crowd. This type of group, insensitive to the couple’s lack of interest
in the opposite sex, could be developed to coerce them into the relationship due to the
couple’s strong need to be Tike the rest of the gang’ and ‘one of the crowd.’ I felt that
220
any of the scenarios could work, but that they needed to choose the most believable one
for today.
It was Charles’ argument that he knew a lot of girls at the school like Lena,
however, that led others to admit an ability to relate with Lena. This steered the class
into another direction. Dale claimed to relate with her because he could understand how
one could not be sure about what one wants. Others agreed that they related with her on
varying points. I decided to engage them in some improvisational work in an effort to
bring these connections into sharper focus for an eventual revised scenario. I was
motivated by my own belief and the belief o f theorists and educators that in spite of
cultural changes, they were still victims of gender-related social pressures to follow the
prescribed path (Brown and Gilligan, 1992; Davies, 1992; Faludi, 1991; Harper, 2000;
Lewis, 1990, 1992; M artino, 1995; Obbink, 1992; Sadker and Sadker, 1994;
Walkerdine, 1984; and Wolf, 1991). They were beginning to ‘see’ Lena in their midst.
To move them forward, I asked for volunteers and directed them to improvise a
scene in the original story between Herman’s sister and Herman when he had run away
to her house in an attempt to avoid marriage. I chose this scene because I thought 1) it
would allow the students to experiment with both sides of the power struggle; and 2) it
would bring out an awareness of the pressures exerted by the society through the sister.
Alicia volunteered to play Herman’s sister; Dale volunteered to play Herman.
Improvisation #1:
Alicia: I t is your legacy. You have to get married and have some children.What else are you gonna do with your life? You can't just hang around thepub all day. You have to hove a marriage, and stu ff, and kids.
Dale: I don't want a marriage and I don't want stuff.
Alicia: What are you going to do with yourself? Who will take care o f you?
Dale: I will take care o f me.
221
Alicia: You can't spend all o f your time with the guys. Why don't you want to get married? What is wrong with you?
Dale: I just don't really . . . I enjoy spending time with my boys, not with . . .Alicia: What are people going to say? What is wrong with you? Why don't you want to be normal? People grow up and get married. Why don't you want to do that with your life?
Dale: I might want to do it. Just not now.
Alicia: Why? Time is running out. She is a perfectly good girl. She is pretty. She is nice. She is submissive. You could control her.
Dale: I don't know. I just don't wont to be married.
It was my opinion that Alicia successfully drew on her society to utter just the
right words to exert the proper kind of pressure to ensure the desired compliance.
Firstly, she used the ‘legacy’ argument. Herman was, like Hillary and Brenda and
Ellen, bound to marry and have children. Secondly, she appealed to the “male who
can’t take care of him self narrative to remind him of his learned helplessness (Davies,
1992; Martino, 1995; Walkerdine, 1984). Thirdly, she used the “what people think ”
argument to convince him that he was coming across as ‘not normal’ by resisting her
perfectly logical arguments. Lastly, she chose the time is running out’ argument . . .
the same argument that was used on my friends and me in the mid sixties as we turned
the scary age of 21—the age of the old maid.
Alicia’s arguments came quickly and as though it were second nature for her to
speak these words. 1 realized that this argument wasn’t entirely outdated. And, the
students realized it too. Alicia claimed that she “was just talking like her grandma. ”
The students had a variety of responses. They recognized not only the words, but also
the power behind those words. Howard said that he felt very sorry for Herman as “the
sister had a much better argument because she had tradition and society backing her
arguments up.’’ Playing Herman, all Dale could say was “1 just don’t want to,” and
222
Ellen pointed out that there was no solid argument for Dale. In describing the sister’s
personality, they all said she was aggressive and logical “almost to the point of
cynicism." Dale felt a familiar pressure coming at him from Alicia. “There are still
people who are pressuring other people to do things,” he said. They just don’t say, “no
it’s normal to get married. It’s more subtle.”
The argument given by Alicia reminded Ellen of kids who represent mainstream
society. “They are considered normal to most people,” she said. “Everything they do is
normal to them, and then they try to influence the rest of the people. This made Charles
realize that he personally knew one girl who fit Herman’s sister’s personality and style
to a tea. By improvising a scene in which he drew on the kinds of things that she would
say, he reworked the scene between Herman’s sister and Herman. This time he played
Herman’s sister and Dale played Herman again.
Improvisation #2
Dole (Herman): AAarriage is not that interesting to me in that sort of way.
Charles (sister): Well, what I think should happen is . . . if you are not seeing anyone, and she is not seeing anyone, I see no reason why you are not together!
Dale: I need some time for other people.
Charles: What other people? Who could be so important?
Dale: Like Eric and my friends who watch football with me.
Charles: That is so gay! I t makes so much more sense for you to get together. I t seems so righU
Dale: Why don't you get together with her if you like her so much?
Charles: I already have a boyfriend, and Lena is a good-looking girl. Like,what is wrong with Lena? She has nice Abercrombie clothes. I don't get it.Hey, you're not doing anything right now; she's not doing anything right now!Why don't you just go for it? Just keep yourself occupied! I t makes sense.
223
This improvisation put students in closer touch with the dynamics between the
powerful sister and Herman. They all agreed with Ellen’s reaction about “how small
Dale seemed as in comparison with Charles, and how soft his voice sounded when his
desires met the society’s expectations.’’ Caroline saw him as ‘intimidated’ by the
sister, who is laying out all of these things that are good, with Dale just not knowing
what to do. And Howard expressed s keener awareness of how Charles belittled Dale.
“Eventually, he just resigns,” said Howard. “Ok, stop talking, I will go and get
married.” Hillary had the same reaction, saying, “yeah, he wants to avoid
confrontation. He doesn't want to fight. He wants to avoid that kind o f thing and say,
“oh well, ok, whatever you say!”
This improvisation also helped the students to relate to Herman through these
familiar characters and arguments. My reaction was that these students were very
familiar with these kinds of pressuring arguments, storylines and metanarratives
(Belsey, 1980; Davies, 1992; Flax, 1993; Foucault, 1980; Lather, 1991; Spivak, 1974;
Walkerdine, 1984) and I hoped if this activity was putting them in closer touch with
what they already knew. When I asked whether they had played a role similar to that of
Herman, Hillary. Alicia, Ellen and Dale agreed that they had. Dale explained it as
the feeling that you know what you want to do but you don't know why you want to do it and there are all these apparent good reasons why you should do what they want instead of what you want.
Alicia’s explanation for it was that you just don’t want to deal with the hassle, and you
feel more normal if you just do what they are saying. Ellen concurred with these
responses, explaining that “it suddenly doesn’t seem like a big deal anymore, so you
say, ‘I’m just going to do what everyone tells me!’” My reaction was that she and others
had illustrated the ways in which dominant cultural metanarratives enculturate and
constitute subjects’ behaviors and identities.
224
This activity allowed them to experience the power in Charles’ position. Ellen
pointed out that people like that “seem to have some answer to life that I don’t have. ”
And, Charles explained that he felt like he was in a position to look down on someone
because you have society backing you up with what you say. At the same time, he felt
that Dale should have had all o f society backing him up, since one should be able to do
what one chooses. Charles said that while he was playing the part o f the sister, he
actually was mad at her for pushing Herman around, and mad at Herman for not
standing up for himself. Dale said he was busy thinking, “why don’t I want to be
normal? What the hell is wrong with me?” By the end of the workshop, the students
were enough in touch with some o f the pressures of their day to be able to attempt to
write the screenplay during subsequent focus group workshops.
The students' attempt to update “The Gentle Lena” engaged them in a process,
which forced them to consider the previously unconsidered ways in which
contemporary society enforces marriage or a heterosexual normativity (Britzman, 1994;
Davies, 1992; Lewis, 1992; Walkerdine, 1984). Dale’s point that it is hard to fix the
problem because we are in a difficult place, just beyond the problem but still aware of
the problem, proved to be true. We all found it difficult to identify a scenario that
would make a comparable point to Stein’s 1906 point. Howard suggested that we set
the story in a 19th century Russian village, because, after that, arranged marriage would
not work. And. as it turns out, he might have been right. But, in spite o f the difficulty,
we did come to some decisions. Dale was able to identify the theme; the internal
pressure to be normal; Sarah was able to develop the plot; and Charles contributed the
dialogue, which seemed to bridge the gap between Stein’s culture and ours.
The most interesting development to come out of the experience, and the value
of the workshop, I think, was the fact that through improvisation, most students realized
the pressures that were on them to marry and to do the ‘expected’ thing. By playing the
225
oppressor and the oppressed in role, Alicia, Ellen, Charles and Dale came face to face
with the familiarity of the enforcement of normality. Hillary, Ellen and Brenda realized
the pressure on them to marry and have children, a pressure that the boys say that they
do not feel from their parents.
Conclusion
This chapter has covered students’ and my investigations of the various
perspectives on issues of marriage and the generations put forth by James in
Washington Square. Goldman in “Love and Marriage” and Stein in “The Gentle Lena.
In the following chapter, the focus is on Images of Romantic Relationships and
the literary works investigated are Fitzgerald’s The Great Gatsbv. Hemingway’s A
Farewell To Arms, and Hurston’s Their Eves Were Watching God.
226
CHAPTER 5
IMAGES OF ROMANTIC RELATIONSHIPS
Then wear the gold hat, if that will move her;If you can bounce high, bounce for her too.Till she cry “Lover, gold hatted, high bouncing lover, I must have you. Thomas Parke DTnvilliers
From Fitzgerald, 1995/1925, title page.
We have such a fine time,” Catherine said. “I don’t take any interest in anything else any more. I’m so very happy married to you.
Hemingway, 1969/1939, p. 154
TeaCake looked like the love thoughts of women He could be a bee to a blossom—a pear tree blossom in the spring. He seemed to be crushing scent out of the world with his footsteps. Crushing aromatic herbs with every step he took. Spices hung about him. He was a glance from God.
Hurston, 1998/1937, p. 106
Introduction
This chapter is comprised of the investigations of three works: Fitzgerald’s The
Great Gatsbv. Hemingway’s A Farewell to Arms, and Hurston’s Their Eves Were
Watching God. While the first three stories raised issues of marriage and the
generations, these three stories stimulated investigation of images of romantic
relationships. Therefore, they are grouped together not only because they follow in
chronological order but also because they are connected by theme. Students revisited
this theme during the study of the three works and explored the theme in terms of the
various perspectives held by the three authors.
227
THE GREAT GATSBY F. Scott Fitzgerald
ROMANCE OR MISOGYNY?
CHARLES AND MARIE
We have a duty to ourselves to articulate our differences with whatever others we encounter. Can we not say, indeed, that if there is no freedom of interpretation, no freedom to discuss whatever differences we seriously encounter, there is no political freedom either?
Booth, 1988, p. 415
Choice
This book was chosen because it is the most famous of Fitzgerald’s works, and the one most often chosen for high school American literature classes.
Synopsis
At the beginning of the novel, recent Yale graduate, Nick Carra way, acquires a job on Wall Street and a small a cottage on Long Island, across the bay from the home of his cousin Daisy Buchanan and her husband, Tom. Nick, as narrator, exposes Tom’s habit of cheating on Daisy and his current affair with a lower class woman from “the ash heaps ” of the industrialized city who is married to George, the gas station mechanic who works on T om ’s car. Though Nick’s basic Midwestern values make him somewhat skeptical of the Buchanan’s values at first, he is also fascinated by lifestyle of the rich and powerful, becomes part of the crowd, and begins a relationship with Daisy’s friend, Jordan Baker.
Nick’s next door neighbor is Jay Gatsby, originally a poor man who, in his youth, had been engaged to Daisy Fay (Buchanan) until she threw him over for the richer, higher-statused Tom. From then on. Jay had basically been engaged in illegal rum running and related illegal activities in order to build a fortune and a mansion impressive enough to win back his tme love, Daisy.
He threw lavish weekly parties at his mansion to attract her to one of them, but the parties failed to bring Daisy. His discovery that Nick was Daisy’s cousin, however, prompts him to arrange a meeting with Daisy. Nick set this up, and the continuation of Daisy and Jay’s relationship commences. It reaches a fever pitch when, at the Plaza Hotel, where they all gather for an afternoon, Gatsby asks her to leaive Tom and marry him, insisting that she tell Tom she had never loved anyone but Gatsby. This brings Daisy to conflict and, an upset Daisy and a protective Gatsby leave the city in Gatsby’s car that Tom had driven there, and make their way back to Long Island. When Myrtle sees the car approaching the gas station where she and George live, she thinks Tom is driving, and runs out to hail him down. Daisy runs her down and continues driving. Neither she nor Gatsby suggests stopping for Myrtle. When Tom reaches the gas station. Myrtle is dead, and George is looking for the man he assumes to be her lover and driver of the car that killed her.
Tom and Daisy reconcile, plan their story, and when George reaches their house looking for Myrtle’s lover/killer and the car, Tom sends him to Gatsby’s house where
228
the blood stained and damaged car is in the garage. George goes there and shoots Gatsby and then himself. Daisy and Tom escape to Europe until everything blows over, and Nick is left to organize Gatsby’s funeral with only himself and Jay’s father attending. Nick, revolted by the “rotten crowd,” breaks off his connection with his cheating, lying girlfriend, Jordan, and leaves New York for the saner values of the Midwest.
Mv Reading
Fetterley (1978) identified a central problem with The Great Gatsbv when she
wrote In The Resisting Reader: A Feminist Approach to American Fiction, that is that
Fitzgerald’s indictment of a lapsed dream of American success implicated women as the
embodiment of the corruption of the lost America. While Nick eventually redeemed
Gatsby, and Fitzgerald gave Nick the opportunity to redeem himself, there was not a
woman on the horizon who was drawn to counter Daisy’s ‘dark destroyer’ identity'
(Fielder, 1998 1960), and rise in triumph from the proverbial ashes. So, according to
Fetterley (1978), when Fitzgerald “got the modem age” (Miller, 1975) through a
dramatization of Gatsby's pursuit of Daisy, he also marked womanhood for generations
of readers, as the object of moral indignation (Fetterley, 1978, p. 72).
This implication of women might have been less of a problem in a novel of less
heroic and mythic proportions. But, The Great Gatsby works on a grand scale.
Fitzgerald responded to the horror of the modem life that he saw, and to the way that
Benjamin Franklin’s The Wav to Wealth had been transmuted into the American Dream
of the 1920's boom (Fetterley, 1978; Fiedler, 1998/1960). In what Fiedler (1998/1960)
calls the romantic fairy tale from hell, the penniless knight in the land of promise seeks
his fortune, finds it, and as a reward, wins the fair and wealthy damsel/redeemer. This
damsel, in the end, is not the redeemer at all, but the bitch goddess who is the evil
byproduct of the valley of ashes. And, everybody lives unhappily ever after because the
real horror of the modern age is that love has also been cormpted by an American
dream spun out of control to the point where love and people are bought, sold, and paid
for with dirty money and exploitation of others.
229
But some are redeemed. Fitzgerald’s (1995/1925) juxtaposition of Gatsby’s
idealism with the narcissism implicit in the Buchanan’s value system has Gatsby
emerge a sympathetic character, in spite of some of his own questionable decisions, and
practices, including his involvement in M yrtle’s death. Furtherm ore, Nick,
sympathetically drawn by Fitzgerald, confirmed Gatsby’s status as victim rather than
villain, as one for whom the money was still more o f a means to an end that an end in
itself. There is also hope for Nick, who, though also silent about who killed Myrtle,
develops a moral awareness when, at thirty, he sees that he “is five years too old to lie
to himself and call it honor. ” He concludes that Jordan and the Buchanans are “a rotten
crowd,” and that Gatsby is “worth the whole damned bunch of them put together ”
(Fitzgerald, 1995, p. 162). Thus, the corruption of the dream is left at the foot of the
woman, with no corresponding female saviors to counter the evil.
The golden girl turned “rapist and aggressor” (Fiedler, 1998), and her husband
“smashed things and creatures up and then retreated back into their money and their
vast carelessness or whatever it was that kept them together, and let other people clean
up the mess that they made” (Fitzgerald, 1995, pp .187-8). Fitzgerald, in spite of his
brilliant commentary on the materialism of his time and its impact on the dream, has left
something of a mess as well. By bequeathing us the most famous woman in American
literature as the villain who lives in our minds as the destroyer of the American dream,
Fitzgerald may have “gotten women” as well as the modem age.
CHARLES (AJVI.)
Charles is extremely invested in realizing a left wing political agenda. He
belongs to a young socialist organization, embraces an anti-western capitalist stance
with respect to issues of trade, does not believe in marriage, and is a self-described
atheist. His views also include a commitment to a feminist ideology that is based on his
230
ideas that women are equal, should be paid equally, should be represented equally in
politics, and should not be considered appendages to males. He believes that ’’gender
stereotypes still exist in today’s society, preventing people from reaching their full
potential,” and that these stereotypes are ‘corrupt and short-sighted.’ He thinks it is still
a man’s world. “Just look at our government,” he says, “congress, in the vast majority,
is male; we have never had a female president; and the Equal Rights Amendment did
not get passed a couple of decades ago.”
Charles does not think many in his age group share his views. “1 see many high
school girls fulfilling typical female roles, ” he says. He cites a preoccupation with
shopping and make-up, and “an all around submissiveness” as examples of stereotypical
behavior. “Many girls my age don’t seem to be interested in breaking traditional female
stereotypes,” he says, “but rather support them, unwittingly or not.” One of the reasons
for this, he thinks, is that when a girl is attractive and successful with boys, she decides
that that is what is expected of her, and there is nothing else she has to (Lewis, 1992).
“She doesn’t choose to do things like get good grades or be aggressive or demand equal
rights because she has already been accepted on that one level.”
Charles holds women in higher regard than he holds men. He connects men
with violence and senseless competition. If he is guilty of any prejudice, he thinks it is
prejudice against male jock types. They promote the double standard, he says, “and it is
not right.” On the one hand, “I know a lot of guys who don’t like aggressive women,
and if a girl looks even slightly butch or aggressive, they call her a dyke.” On the other
hand, he says, “guys call girls ‘sluts’ all the time, but they totally ignore how many
people they have been with. To them, guys are just players, and pretty cool.” He agrees
with Sarah in thinking that an emphasis on competition has resulted in girls calling each
other ‘sluts’ too. He thinks that our sexist culture has developed over many generations
of men being in control. He believes that educating young children about gender
231
stereotypes would be a good thing because the older you get, the more ingrained some
of these stereotypes are.
When you have girls growing up all through elementary school thinking a certain way a girl should act and what is feminine and what is masculine, it is a lot harder once you get to high school . . . or college . . . because they are cemented into their heads, and it is hard to get them out.
He himself suffers from what he calls ‘guilt by association,’ and, he has become
rebellious as a result. He does not play competitive sports, he is not physically
aggressive, and he tries to be respectful of girls and sensitive to others’ emotions.
Charles attributes his feminist attitudes to his mother, who, like his father, works full
time as a high school teacher. I really don’t have a model of the domesticated
woman,” he says. According to him, his mother is an assertive woman who works and
“is not just staying home cooking and cleaning; she is out winning bread for the
family. ” He claims that his mom and dad shared child-rearing responsibilities equally
when he was growing up.
Charles has a long-term girlfriend and a few close friends whom he assumes
think of him as somewhat complicated and multi-faceted. He thinks that the staff thinks
of him as mature and responsible, and, in fact, those are two of the qualities that the
staff mentioned when asked about Charles. They see him as sincere, hardworking,
smart, and having some leadership ability. They also see him as “busy being
rebellious” right now. Charles earns high grades, and has consistently done so
throughout his schooling in the school district.
Charles was a definite asset to the class I taught, and particularly to the
discussions. He was a consistent contributor to conversations and one who supported a
pro-feminist agenda, for the most part. He loves to read, particularly classics and
philosophy, and one of his favorite authors is Fitzgerald. It is no surprise, then, that he
232
added much to the discussions of The Great Gatsbv. in which Nick Caraway and Jay
Gatsby were the characters with whom he reported making the strongest connections.
Written Responses
We began the investigation of Gatsby with the usual prompt for direct written
response in an effort to determine students’ responses to characters, gender
representations, author’s perspective and the story itself. The boys and girls in the
morning class related primarily to Gatsby and described the women as “sexual
temptresses,’’ as “striving for acquisition of money and status,” and as “passively sitting
around looking pretty and doing nothing.” Equal numbers of boys and girls as
described the men in the novel: “powerful,” “knowledgeable,” “financially secure,”
“bullies,” and “cheaters.” Students reported that, for the most part, the females were
attracted to the males because of money (with the exception of Daisy’s initial attraction
for Jay Gatsby). They also reported that the men were attracted to the women because
of physical appearance and sex, that men had financial power and women had sexual
power, and that there were definite double standards and expectations for female and
male behavior. The double standards were that men were in charge, had the money and
were expected to go out to work each day: women were dependent, had sexual power,
and were expected to stay home. For the most part, the students agreed that Fitzgerald
(1995) was contesting the moral bankruptcy of Tom and Daisy and Myrtle and the
party-goers who “conducted themselves according to the rules of behavior associated
with amusement parks” (p. 41).
The students did find that this story was realistic for its time, and even realistic
for contemporary times, although they were not initially certain of Fitzgerald’s point.
As an added introduction to this class, I adapted an activity from O ’Donnell-
Alien and Smagorinsky (1999), that was considered by students in both classes to be
233
one of the favorite activities of the course. The activity engaged students in artistic
renderings of characters in The Great Gatsbv. Students worked in one of six groups to
draw life-size pictures of Daisy, Tom, Jay, Myrtle, Nick or Jordan on butcher paper, and
to identify characters’ virtues, vices,
objectives and changes. In addition,
students were asked to identify colors and
symbols associated with the characters,
the characters’ most significant qualities,
and the characters’ three most important
lines. The activity was a success because
it engaged students and also because it
Figure 5.1: Daisy as Trophy
directed students toward an investigation of the text for a clarification o f characters’
traits, perspectives and motivations. Charles’ group designed Daisy as a gold trophy,
surrounded by symbols including a ‘heart for sale,’ a dollar sign, burning sex symbols,
and Gatsby s grave. Other students engaged in familiarizing themselves with other
characters in the novel, and by the time they had finished with this activity, they had a
firm grasp on Fitzgerald’s characters and were ready for discussion.
Discussion
Initially, most of the students in the morning class thought that Nick was
insignificant to the story. Margaret Jones and I tried to suggest that he was the moral
barometer in the story, citing his decision that “they were a rotten crowd” at the end.
However, the group could not see Nick’s importance. Alicia asked the question many
of them had on their minds: “should we admire him because he just stood back and
234
didn’t do anything?” This question was a good one in that it enlightened us all to the
ways in which Fitzgerald used his narrator. It also reminded me that in order to help
students to see the authorial perspective and the importance o f certain literary
characters, I needed to concentrate to some extent on the characters’ progression. In
this case, I need to spend some time discussing Nick’s development in the novel, as he
went from one who was an observer, to one who was an actor.
I considered Nick a good example of a character through which the idea of the
“homodiegetic narrator” (Phelan, 1996) could be explored with the students. I realized
the difficulty readers, and especially young ones, have with storytellers who are also
characters in the story, particularly when they develop and change throughout the
course of a narrative. I also thought that this conversation would be necessary for an
eventual appreciation of Frederic Henry in Hemingway’s A Farewell To Arms, which
was the next novel to be studied. So, in our discussion of the book, I focused on Nick’s
unique situation in the story as narrator and character who is not the same at the
beginning of the story as he is in the end. This helped the students to see his role as
slightly more important to the story than they had originally thought, and to see the
moral implications of Daisy and Tom's behavior through the changing eyes of Nick.
Originally, many did not pick up on what I saw as Fitzgerald’s subtle damning of
Jordan, which made it all the more difficult for them to see the fact that Nick’s leaving
her and the gang represented a moral triumph for him. They did not think that her
transgressions were all that serious. However, some time spent on considering Nick’s
reliability as narrator made Dale and a few of the other boys and girls consider that
Nick’s eventual negative judgment of her lying and cheating was sanctioned by
Fitzgerald.
Charles, being a Fitzgerald fan, had read The Great Gatsbv before, and had also
read it in a class with me where we discussed the characters, the theme, the social
235
commentary and ethical implications extensively. So, he came into this conversation
with a slight advantage over the other students, and his reflection on the book inspired a
more critical approach and deeper reflection by the others. He had had the time to do
the kind of reflection on his own responses that Bogdan (1992, 1997, 1999)
recommends. Charles, who had an ‘extremely high’ connection with Nick on the final
questionnaire (Appendix E), said that he actually connected with him because of his
dual role as narrator and character and even because of his questionable position on
things through most of the novel. He related to Nick, he said, because of “his hatred of
the shallowness while in the middle of it.”
While we did not discuss the representation o f the men and women in the class
previously taken by Charles, it was my central concern for this class. We continued our
discussion by encouraging a textual negotiation on the representations and the novel
with the answers to the students written responses.
Margaret Jackson and I asked about the implications of the stereotypical
representations of some of the men and women in this novel. We threw out questions
such as, “are these stereotypes accurate for the people at the time of the twenties? And,
“are they still reflective of reality today?” Most o f the students believed that the
representations were “realistic for their time,” but Charles asserted that Fitzgerald’s
characters were universal. “I can very much see those kinds of characters being read in
today’s literature,” he said. “There are still evil Toms, social-climbing Gatsbys, and
users like Daisy. ” Many students agreed that the novel still captured male and female
characteristics existing today, particularly for people in the upper classes. They also
agreed with the idea that men have the financial power and women have the sexual
power. And, they agreed that this is still true. The following discussion illustrated this.
Tina: There's still some bullying and there are still some women parading around saying, T have what you want and you can get it,' and so, there is a power trip on both sides.
236
Noel: The men have what the women want—money and the women have what the men want—sex.
Charles: Women become the trophies. “Look how beautiful she is. I amsomebody now. I am powerful." A beautiful wife is one more status symbol, the ultimate trophy. And. society soys that if you are incredibly beautiful, that is all you have to be. The women in the story ore users. They are reduced to whores in the str ictest sense of the word.. . in th e strictest sense of the definition.
Alicia: Why do the women let that happen to them?
Charles: Because nothing else is expected of them in the society.
Alicia: But this is all high class, though?
Charles: I don't think so. They are in love with trophies. I t is like a footballplayer going out with a cheerleader. I t is the same thing.
I was very interested in the way that Charles and some others made connections
between the novel’s characters and situations, and contemporary pressures (Hines,
1997; Rogers, 1997). I also was pleased that he seemed to be awakening in others some
realization about women’s status in the literature, in life, and the way that society
constructs unequal roles, which seem to be accepted by everyone,-including the
apparent victims. In addition, I thought that Alicia’s question was the one question
centrally important to the stimulation of reflective thinking that might eventually
transform thinking about gender roles, and the roles themselves. All in all, this novel,
more than others, raised issues and stereotypes of both men and women.
In an attempt to capitalize on Charles’ connection of those stereotypes with the
students’ lives, and to use Alicia’s question to begin to break apart those stereotypes,
Margaret Jackson and I questioned them on what changes would have to take place for
things to be more equally balanced in terms of gender. “Would these gender disparities
remain if men and women were both allowed sexual freedom without recrimination?’’
we asked. “Should that be the case?’’ We also asked, “Why is/ isn’t it?” “Would these
237
inequities remain if men and women had equal financial security and equal
opportunities for high paying work”? “Should that be the case?” And, “Is there
something biological about the basis for the establishment/ continuation of these sex
role stereotypes?”
While the students agreed that women do want sex, they also agreed that men
want it more. I had expected that one or more of the girls might have contested this
statement, but none did, leading me to judge their answers as culturally “produced” as
opposed to emanating from their experiences. The students also thought that, in this
society, aside from the fact that women had a hard time breaking through the glass
ceiling, men still had the financial power and security because women still chose and
were expected to choose to be the nurturers of the children (Lewis, 1992). And, men
were expected to have careers and make the money.
When girls were asked to imagine how they would conceivably combine
childcare with a career, the very few that reported being serious about careers said they
had considered not having children. Most girls had given the situation no thought,
however, but, when asked, said that that they would wait to go back to work until after
the kids were old enough to go to school. When asked if they thought men and women
could possibly share the responsibilities of home and career, they found it hard to
imagine a scenario that would work effectively within the system that is in place. One
girl said “I don't want to sacrifice a career for my children, so I couldn’t imagine that a
man would.” Alternative considerations, such as instituting workplace daycare centers,
had not occurred to them as yet. Because they hadn’t, most thought about the problem
in traditional ways. No girl or boy expected the husband/father to adjust any career
decisions because of children. Both expected women to do so, however.
Still attempting to stimulate a discontentment (Kohlberg, 1980) with what
seemed like socially determined, yet unequal roles, I tried to foster thinking about
238
contemporary gender constructions through a consideration of students’ responses to the
characters in The Great Gatsbv. To help them to come to terms with their own feelings
about some of the aggressive or submissive behaviors of the men and women in the
novel, we gave them an assignment. The assignment (Appendix H) required that they
write a letter to one of the main characters in the novel in which they discuss their
reaction to their behavior. Charles’ letter addressed the gender politics of his time as
well as Tom’s:Tom,We have to talk. Your actions are those of an egotistical uncaring ape.The way you treat the women in your life is beyond reproach. Things have not changed that much in 1999. While women have made giant steps forward since your time in achieving equality to men in relationships, they are often still treated as inferiors. The fa c t that more women are entering the world of employment and earning their own money still does not matter to many men, and domineering males are still seen as the leaders, the money makers. Women are often regarded as the inferiors and their thoughts and opinions disregarded. Charles
Through this assignment, Charles and a few other students were able to address the
questionable behaviors of the male and female characters and strengthen their own
commitment to more equitable behaviors by means of their direct responses to the
literature (Bogdan, 1990, 1992, 1997).
Literarv Criticism
During the discussion, Charles went beyond references to stereotypes, issues of
male dominance, and female subjugation in the novel to make several references to the
fact that he believed that “ it was pretty clear that Fitzgerald was trying to make the
women out to be the destroyers of men.” I picked up on this comment as it provided a
great transition to the introduction of Fetterley’s (1978) feminist criticism of The Great
Gatsbv. which I had planned to introduce. Conveniently, the first of Fetterley’s points
had echoed Charles’ point. Her position was that the object of the novel’s hostility was
not dead Gatsby but surviving Daisy. Charles agreed. In the following discussion, he
239
points out that ’’she gets blamed for the novel’s whole sordid ordeal and particularly for
Gatsby’s destruction.”
Margaret: Why was Daisy the villain?
Dale: (sarcastically) Well should he have made her a man? Would it be ok then?
Pat: Well, what is the theme o f the book? What do you think Fitzgerald is saying here?
Noel: It's about the level of corruption that exists in the so-called elite society
Pat: Did he have to make the villain a woman to get that point across?
Dale: No. I t wouldn't make much difference if it were a man or a woman.
Noel: I don't think it makes a difference at all.
Pat: Fetter ley is annoyed because she thinks it is a pattern in Americanliterature that the men are redeemed and the women are not.
Dale (sarcastically again): How do you feel about Tom?
M argaret: Do you guys hate Tom and Daisy equally? Do you view one as being worse than the other?
Charles: Daisy ended up destroying Gatsby. Fitzgerald made Daisy out to be not as directly evil as Tom, but in a very indirect way caused the destruction of a man, an innocent man. Tom was a bastard but he didn't really go to any extreme ends to destroy Gatsby.
The fact that Charles believed that Daisy was Fitzgerald’s villain, even in the
face of Dale’s challenge, further opened the door for Fetterley’s (1978) argument. But,
Fetterley’s (1978) point went even beyond Charles’ to make broader implications about
Fitzgerald’s attitude toward women. Margaret Jones and I provided another argument
from Fetterley (1978) to focus on her point:
The Great Gatsbv is based on the lie of a double standard that makes female characters in our ‘classic’ literature not persons but symbols and makes women’s experience no part of that literature’s concern (p. 97).While Gatsby pays for his imagination, Daisy pays more (p. 98).
240
As Fetterley went beyond talking specifically about a particular woman to
suggest that “female characters in our classic literature are not persons but symbols,”
her argument demanded a new perspective from the students. It demanded that the
students not only identify stereotypes in the novel, but that they also remove themselves
from the story (Bogdan, 1992; Hines, 1997; Soter, 1997) to consider the impact of the
author’s and the reader’s culture on novel. In addition, her argument demanded that
students engage in deconstructing the text to “demonstrate how a text works against
itself . . . to consider questioningly, its beginning validity and principles” (Said, 1975,
335). The students found this operation difficult, and resisted it, as I expected they
would. Mainly, they resisted politicizing the literature (Bogdan, 1992; Davies; 1992;
Fetterley. 1978; Martino, 1995; Obbink, 1992; Scholes, 1995; Walkerdine, 1984) and
implicating ‘women’ because of a few characters.
I assumed that Charles would give Fetterley’s (1978) perspective some
consideration because he so often commented on the fact that “Fitzgerald’s work has
some of worst female stereotypes and gender issues in literature anywhere. However, I
was wrong. He clearly resisted Fetterley’s position on two counts. Firstly, like some of
the others, he did not believe that an author could be accused of making broad
statements about an entire sex through a portrayal o f the women in one book.
Secondly, he argued against using an ideological criticism, which violates the history,
and culture in which the literature was produced;
I think that you have to look at a piece of literature within th e terms and the cultures of the literature in which it was originally written because a lot of stu ff, if applied to today's standards, is extremely dated, and maybe not politically correct. People applying today's standards to a past situation . . . I really don't think you can logically do that because what is moral and right now cannot be applied to that other time.
Because of Charles’ feminist perspective and his violation of the older literature
by identifying the ‘gender’ stereotypes, I was surprised by his first response, and a bit
241
confused. I disagreed with the idea that because something (like racism or sexism)
wasn’t considered wrong by a society at a previous time, that it wasn’t wrong even if
judged by higher standards than social ones. Therefore, I made four arguments to
Charles first point. Firstly, there were numerous Daisy replicas in Fitzgerald’s other
novels who were also victims of Fitzgerald’s scorn. Secondly, Fitzgerald critiqued the
lost American dream primarily through the actions of one woman. Thirdly, not one
admirable or redeemable woman appeared in Gatsbv. Lastly, although some of the men
were despicable and portrayed as stereotypes as well, Nick and Gatsby were treated
sympathetically, and allowed to change for the better, or be redeemed.
Charles agreed, of course, that Daisy was the villain. He just didn’t agree that
we should be making judgments on it that would implicate Fitzgerald in a misogynist
plot based on contemporary standards. So, I got nowhere with Charles on these points,
although my objective was geared more to engage him in process of thinking than it was
to actually force an agreement with Fetterley.
When I failed to convince him with my arguments to his first point, I addressed
the second point, which involved his resistance toward revisionism. I took this question
more seriously as my entire project was directed at keeping classic literature alive in
contemporary classrooms by helping students to challenge the stereotypes and address
the ideological differences between authors and readers (Bogdan, 1992, 1993; Obbink,
1992). My ethical investment in this project was based on a desire to promote gender
equality by increasing awareness of literary and life experiences which threaten that
equality—even when that meant taking a revisionist stance toward the literature.
I made use of Booth’s (1988) argument to posit that Charles’ “historical defense
scant [ed] my responsibility to myself and my living friends” (p. 411) who read the
literature today. “Surely,” I said, quoting Booth, “it is dishonest to pretend that all
broadly accepted practices of another time or place are beyond our criticism!” And, I
242
questioned how current readers could continue to engage aesthetically or personally,
with literature that “reinforce[ed] the view that women are at best a delectation for the
life of man, and at worst a threat, a nuisance or a necessary' evil” (p. 409). This novel
certainly did perform the central act of injustice, "turning a woman into something
always threatening to fail him or maim him . . . " ( p . 391). I believed that while
Fitzgerald did critique Tom’s values and his blatant sexism, his choice to lay the
destruction of Gatsby at Daisy’s feet exposed either Fitzgerald’s own unconscious
entrenchment in a misogynist culture or a personal antagonism toward women. I
maintained that without a vehicle for critiquing either the open misogyny, covert sexism
or androcentrist perspectives that were comfortably accepted in authors’ times and
cultures, some of the classics would either continue to be politically offensive to some,
irrelevant to most, or reinforcing of the sexism of their time for many.
I did not think that engaging in a dialectic with a sexist or androcentric text was
mutually exclusive with students’ appreciation of the literature (Bogdan, 1990, 1992,
1997). As far as I was concerned, the suggestion that a sexist culture accounted for an
androcentric author and text was only a step beyond a reader suggesting that an author’s
antagonism toward his wife accounted for his antagonism for Daisy (which, as we shall
see, was acceptable to Charles). Both implied a contamination of pure art. Both of
these approaches admit that literature is impacted by history and culture (Fetterley,
1978, xi). My idea was that the reader should consider both the aesthetics and the
politics of the text for a full appreciation, especially when texts present political
problems. My goal was that the students merge a pre-critical aesthetic response with a
critical approach. This critical stance would, I thought, promote an awareness of as
many as possible of the conditions of the experience (Bogdan, 1992, 1997), including
both an awareness of the author’s cultural and political perspectives as well as the
readers.’ I was convinced that without this fusion of the personal with the political
243
(Bogdan, 1992, 1997; Haroway, 1988: Soter, 1999), contemporary readers would lose
interest in older literature. I was worried that if they didn’t lose interest, they would
accept “the pretense that literature speaks universal truths through forms from which all
the merely personal . . . has been burned away . . .or transformed, through the medium
of art into the representative” (Fetterley, 1978, xi).
So I pushed for the ‘stereophonic vision’ which Bogdan insisted would
“integrate enjoyment and self consciousness of the relationship between the text and the
•reader (Bogdan, 1992. p. 191). But, I still had resistance from students who did not
want their classic literature politicized. Especially Charles.
Writing
Charles remained fascinated with Fitzgerald’s representation of women in his
texts, and although he resisted Fetterley (1978), he continued to explore her question of
why Fitzgerald made Daisy the villain. He explored the question in a paper, drawing
from his knowledge of four or five of Fitzgerald’s works. Allowing for an influence of
authorial politics, if not for readers’ politics, he hypothesized that Fitzgerald’s women
were based on his wife Zelda, and that the scenarios written were often a retelling of the
same story: poor boy falls for rich girl. In the paper, Charles argued that the bitterness
that Fitzgerald felt for his wife Zelda for having destroyed him and his work, “worked
its way into several, if not all of his writings, and in The Great Gatsbv. presented itself
in its most obvious form.” As part of his thesis, he stated that “Fitzgerald was actually
writing of himself when he penned his great statement about “The American Dream. ”
To prove his point, he told the story of the relationship between Scott, the poor
boy and Zelda, the rich girl who outclassed him. Initially, Zelda had turned him down
due to his lack of money and was not to marry him until he ‘proved his worth’ by
writing a successful novel. This Side o f Paradise. Charles makes the point that this
relationship worked its way into The Great Gatsby.
244
This most definitely is the inspiration for th e relationship between Jay Gatsby and Daisy Fay. Like Fitzgerald, Gatsby was serving in the army when he met the woman of his dreams. Daisy, like Zelda, was beautiful, daring, and irresistible. They had a brief romance, but both knew that it could not last. Like Fitzgerald, Gatsby was an outsider with no means to support himself. The fictional relationship ended when Gatsby was sent overseas. When he returned, Daisy had fallen for another man, one with the material wealth that he himself did not have. Determined to win her back, Gatsby began his quest to attain greatness.
Charles continued to prove his point by demonstrating the ways in which
Fitzgerald explored the antagonism for the blond, beautiful, spoiled, rich girl we meet in
Gatsbv as well as in “The Offshore Pirate” and the Tender Is The Night. He also argued
that Fitzgerald found the wealthy lifestyle that he and Zelda lived to be morally empty.
“Everywhere he looked, he saw hypocrisy, lying, and back stabbing,” explained
Charles, who also argued that Fitzgerald’s split personality “manifested itself in the two
main characters of The Great Gatsbv. He said that Scott’s resentment for Zelda, whose
partying and self-destruction was destroying him and his career, “worked its way into
the writing of The Great Gatsbv.”
Daisy, as well as the rest of the women in the book, are treated harshly and represented as shallow and manipulative. Daisy was shown to be the corrupter of Gatsby; she was the reason he became rich, and she was the reason he was killed at the end of th e book.
He concluded his arguments by repeating the comparison between Fitzgerald and
Gatsby and his destruction by Zelda, and Gatsby’s destruction by Daisy. “A man’s
whole life was shaped and burned down to the ground because of Daisy,” he wrote .It
seemed to me that if Charles were adopting the argument that some of Fitzgerald’s
animosity toward Daisy was bom of his own animosity toward Zelda, that his argument
was not too far removed from Fetterley’s (1978) own connections between Fitzgerald’s
culture and his art. But, although he could accept the fact that Fitzgerald’s personal
animosity toward Zelda could be important to the depiction of Daisy, he could not
accept that a negative cultural perspective toward women in Fitzgerald’s time (judged245
against the present political scene) could impact the novel. For him, this somehow
smacked of judging an older novel by today’s standards. “Again,” he explained, “I
don’t put my morals on the novels I read. It is wrong to apply today’s standards to
yesterday’s literature.” He maintained this stance even though he had been the first one
to mention that Fitzgerald’s characters were stereotypes. I could only conclude that he
thought they were sexist stereotypes also for the twenties audience. Otherwise, I
surmised that accusing Fitzgerald of sexism would imply that he was applying current
standards to Fitzgerald’s work.
Social Imagination Activities.
One of my objectives was to have the students consider their own gender issues
as well as those of the characters. To do this, I engaged the students in one dramatic
activity directed toward that goal. In an attempt to get the students to draw comparisons
between gender issues in their world, and the 1920s characters,’ I created a scenario
wherein the students in groups of two, engaged in role-play. One student was directed
to play the role of either Tom, Daisy, Gatsby or Myrtle appearing in the film update of
The Great Gatsby; the other was directed to play an interviewing journalist from New
Relationship Magazine. The New Relationship Magazine’s readership was defined as
being interested in gender equality and in eradicating sexism in relationships in the
media as well as in life. The journalist was attempting to cover a story, which would
explore the actors’ reactions to playing roles, which are considered sexist by today’s
standards. The journalists’ role was to appeal to his/her readership.
Margaret met with those choosing to be ‘journalists’ and identified herself as the
editor in chief of New Relationship. She gave them the assignment and reminded them
that this story was important because there was a growing interest among feminists that
images of dominant males and passive females in film adaptations of classic literature
“could reinforce sexist behaviors in the contemporary culture.” She explained that
246
recently there had been a public outcry from the National Organization for Women that
the glamorization of sexist relationships on the screen was a continuing threat to the
status of women, especially for impressionable teens seeing these movies and assuming
that these dynamics were normal. These activists had pointed out that in film
adaptations of period pieces, such as The Great Gatsby. where a responsibility to the
original text prohibited an ‘update’ in gender portrayals, representations of women and
girls were offensive by today’s standards. Margaret also explained that articles and
letters to the editor had been written to raise awareness about this issue and encourage a
public dialogue on cultural anachronisms involving gender. Women had not boycotted
The Great Gatsby update because they expressed an appreciation for the classic work,
and Fitzgerald’s critique of the immoral and amoral behavior of the characters.
However, they did want to stimulate a discussion about the possible effects of these
images on contemporary viewers because much of the sexism in the 1920s culture, in
which Fitzgerald wrote, went uncritiqued.
Margaret Jackson explained that many men and women believe that ‘life
imitates art,’ and are especially concerned with images of abusing male characters,
submissive and subjugated female characters, frivolous, unproductive women, and
unequal relationships, such as the ones in Gatsby. And, I wanted them to know that
while no one could expect that a classic would be updated to satisfy current demands for
politically correctness. New Relationship readers would be interested in knowing that
the subject was being addressed. Margaret explained to them that one way to address
the issue and begin the public dialogue was to conduct interviews with the actors
playing these parts. The interviews would be designed to elicit actors’ reactions to the
experience of playing men and women in unequal relationships, seventy-five years and
a woman’s movement after Fitzgerald.
247
The journalists were told to get as much information as possible about reactions
to playing characters who are abusers or abused; dominant or submissive; users,
trophies, or manipulators. They were instructed to identify five questions that they
could ask the actors about their perceptions/reactions to their characters that would be
interesting to an audience committed to raising consciousness about the roles of men
and women in relationships.
While Margaret spoke to the ‘journalists’, I took the ‘actors’ aside and explained
to them that the studio was most interested in being politically correct and most
interested in avoiding any bad publicity. I encouraged the ‘actors’ to speak their minds
and to explore the differences between their own lives and those of the characters they
portrayed in the film. I also encouraged them to explore the differences between the
thoughts and reactions they (as human beings playing the parts) had to the actions and
behaviors of these men and women whose gender identities were constructed in an
earlier time. 1 suggested that the public would be interested in making a distinction
between them as actors and them as characters, and that this was particularly important
with characters in a book as well known as The Great Gatsbv. If these people were
going to see the movie, they would want to know that there was a dialogue taking place
about the effects of such images of men, women and relationships on viewers of today.
And, the dialogue might further interest the readers in seeing the movie.
I was convinced that this exercise would force both the journalists’ and the
‘actors’ to think through the differences between standards for relationships in
Fitzgerald’s time vs. those of the present; and that it would address the students’ own
standards in terms of the feminist perspectives promoted by New Relationship
Magazine. I hoped that by acting in role the students would see more clearly the
problems with the unequal relationships represented in the novel, and those real
relationships familiar to them in their own lives. I had hoped to bring about a revelation
248
similar to the one experienced by John Paul Sartre. He stated that “it is on the day that
we can conceive of a different state of affairs that a new light fails on our troubles and
our suffering, and that we decide that these things are unbearable.” (Sartre in Greene,
1955, p. 5).
In my mind, this activity was founded on the idea that developing morally is
equated with an ability to be able to imagine oneself in the place of another (Dewey,
1922; Heathcote, 1986; Gilligan, 1982; Johnson, 1993; Kohlberg, 1976, 1980, 1985;
Noddings. 1984; O ’Neill, 1995). The activity, requiring them to take on the position of
the expert (actor or journalist) was designed to “catch [the students] in a moment of
authenticity of real choice and real concern. In this moment of authenticity, they could
think from within a dilemma rather than just discussing the dilemma; and think from
within the framework of choices rather than talking cooly about the framework of
choices” (Heathcote, 1984, p. 119).
Much to my dismay and disappointment, the activity was almost a complete
failure. The students enjoyed participating, so, in general, it was a pleasurable activity
for them. And, the ‘journalists’ did a good job of asking the questions that would bring
about the ‘actors’ awareness of the tensions involved in playing the parts. However, the
‘actors’ had a very difficult time getting out of the character’ role and into the role of
the actor.’ They found it difficult to deliberate on performing their roles, so 1 was
unable to engage them in the kind of resistance to the sexist stereotypes in The Great
Gatsbv that 1 hoped to bring about. They could speak as ‘actors,’ and discuss their
roles, but they resisted considering any political implications involved with playing
these roles, and any relationship between their lives versus the lives of the men and
women of the twenties. They either resisted on the basis of the fact “they were actors
and not moralists” or because they were not able to exist in the bifurcated state that was
being required to comment on themselves as they played the actor’ roles.
249
I had assumed that by employing what Heathcote referred to as “the mantle of
the expert” (Heathcote, 1984), I could allow students to develop the stance of experts
( ‘journalists' and ‘actors,’) to increase their power, authority and responsibility in
acknowledging how particular feminist audiences would react to their work. According
to Edmiston (1999), when students view the world with an expert perspective, they are
enhanced with ability to deal professionally with a problem. And, O ’Neill (1995) has
pointed out that employing “the mantle of the expert “give[s] students the experience of
becoming part of a group that cooperates, takes responsibility, sets standards for
achievement, and engages in a committed endeavor” (O ’Neill, 1995, p. 170). The
Relationship Magazine activity did not bring about the consideration of the gender
issues that I had hoped it would. I concluded that it failed due to the fact that I was
asking them to deal with themselves simultaneously as actors and as characters, which
might have been too difficult or confusing. Charles had been absent for the activity, so
I do not know how he might have engaged.
Final Project
While some students chose to do their final projects on The Great Gatsbv.
Charles did not. I refer here to the project that Charles did involving Ernest
Hemingway's short story, “Hills Like White Elephants,” because o f its relevance to
Charles’ work with The Great Gatsbv and our argument about Fetterley’s judgment of
the novel by current standards for female readers of our time.
“Hills like White Elephants” is a story about an unmarried couple who, after
discovering the woman’s pregnancy, discusses the possible effects o f abortion on their
relationship. In this story, Hemingway (1987) deals with the typical standpoints held by
men and women and exposes not only gender differences, but a subtle criticism of the
male’s somewhat insensitive position. The man in the story is pushing the woman to
have an abortion. He insists that the procedure is “simple” and “safe” and “all perfectly
250
natural” (p. 212). He has “known lots of people who have done it,” and attempts to
convince the woman that “things will be fine afterward. Just like we were before” (p.
213). The woman, on the other hand, is portrayed as the one worrying that this will ruin
their relationship. She makes subtle suggestions that marriage would be all right with
her, and that she feels rejected by his seeming lack of interest in marrying her. “Doesn’t
it mean anything to you? We could get along?” she says (1987, p. 214).
Charles, very interested in the story, rewrote it as a play and performed it for the
school community with Ellen, a focus group member from his class, who played Jig.
For his final project however, he rewrote the story, adding sensitivity to the male and
practicality to the female, essentially reversing the gender roles for the update.
-"Does it have to be this way. Jig," the boy said-The girl said nothing.-"I mean, th is is serious, really serious. We could have regrets afterward. Weprobably will. We should think about this some more."-The girl sighed. "We already talked about this."-"What if something goes wrong? You could be hurt."-"It's perfectly simple. I know that," said Jig.
This revision of a text went against Charles’ earlier stated opinions about
applying present day morals or politics to older texts. He had argued against people
applying today’s standards to a past situation. “I really don’t think you can logically do
that because what is moral and right now cannot be applied to that other time,” he had
argued. And, now, he was engaged in doing just that.
I pondered the reasons for this sudden desire to “tamper with a piece of cultural
history.” Maybe this story had caused him to experience what Bogdan (1992) calls a
‘misrecognition scene’ between himself and the male protagonist, especially because he
reported a high connection with the girl in the original story and only a moderate
connection with the man. I also mused that perhaps in picking up on Hemingway’s
feminist perspective, he became aware of his and Hemingway’s shared ideological
stance, and assumed that Hemingway would have approved of his rewrite. My more251
cynical self made me wonder if perhaps he had less trouble rewriting sexist
representations when he found the male’s role in the original to be questionable, and
one with which he had trouble relating.
In a follow-up interview, I continued with Harper’s (2000) emphasis on
contradictions, and presented this contradiction to him, along with his resistance to
revisionism and corresponding claim that Fitzgerald uses sexist stereotypes. He
admitted that he had been “caught in a paradox.” He seemed genuinely surprised that
he had contradicted himself, and surprised that he had engaged in an activity to which
he was philosophically opposed. He was particularly surprised that the “Hills Like
White Elephants” update compromised his values because he had enjoyed the process
of rewriting the play so much and had thought that the revision reflected contemporary
reality. I asked him if he thought that his failure to relate with the man in the story
might have influenced his desire to rewrite the piece. He said that he wasn’t sure, but
that that was a possibility, as he had failed to relate with the insensitivity of the male.
I suspected that his acceptance of his own rewrite of a character that he
considered insensitive, might eventually build toward an increased understanding o f
women who might be interested in ‘violating’ literature which is deemed by them to be
sexist, but I don’t know. Whatever the case, I was quite pleased about the effort and
whatever gender awareness of literary representation had been brought into his
awareness through this activity.
Reflections
The students looked generally at the male and female characters in The Great
Gatsbv. and considered whether the representations were realistic for their time and for
today. From their first responses, they believed the representations to be realistic.
252
My introduction of Fetterley’s (1978) ideas about androcentrism to the class
proved to be problematic for most o f the students, including Charles, who resisted a
revisionist literary criticism. Although he could accept the effect of Zelda and their
personal life on Fitzgerald’s work, he could not admit to a cultural influence that could
be critiqued by current standards. Charles’s rewrite of “Hills like White Elephants,”
however, forced him and the class to reconsider a dialectical approach to literature that
could combine an aesthetic and a political approach.
The one admitted feminist in the A M . class, Charles, had an important influence
on that class during the discussions, as he helped the others to make connections
between the stereotypical behavior of men and women in The Great Gatsbv and
corresponding high school girls and boys today. He also argued against great odds for
them to see the unequal status of the men and women in the novel and the inequities
between men and women today.
MARIE (PM .)
Resistance became a word for the fear, dislike, hesitance most people have about turning their entire lives upside down and watching everything they have ever learned disin tegrate into lies. “Empowerment” may be liberating, but it is also a lot of hard work and new responsibility to sort through one’s life and rebuild according to one’s own values and choices. Kathy Kea, in Lather, 1991 p. 142
They resist even when the traditional ways have worked to subordinate them because they have internalized the meanings of the dominant worldview (i.e. men are suited for leadership) making alternative meanings sound outlandish and unrealistic. Henry Giroux, 1981
Marie is an engaging, cheerful, attractive, and popular senior who is praised by
many staff members for her sense o f responsibility, and her commitment to community
service at the school. Her parents were divorced when she was two. As of this year,
she lives with her mother, as she did for the first nine years o f her life. But, between the
253
fifth grade and the end of her junior year, she lived with her father and stepmother, her
sister and her two stepsisters. Her background was instrumental in developing an
admirable independence in Marie, and most of her friends mention this quality and her
strength of will and commitment when asked about her. Marie is musically talented,
having won awards and acclaim for her flute playing. In addition, she is very involved
in the theater, and has consistently participated in theatrical productions during her four
years in high school. Marie says that she is a devoted Christian, and that her religion is
centrally important to her life. She combined her love of theater and desire for religious
fellowship by choosing a Christian Theater group for her senior internship.
Marie is outspoken, has definite ideas about most things, and was a serious
resistor to my agenda, as we have seen and will see in other discussions. On the subject
of gender issues pertaining to masculinity and femininity, she claims that she doesn’t
think they exist anymore. “When I think o f feminine, I think of southern ladies sitting
on the porch in frilly dresses, fanning themselves,” she said. “People aren’t like that
anymore.” She also doesn’t think that the adjectives ‘masculine’ and feminine’ have
negative connotations any more. “It is not a negative thing to say that a man is feminine
or a woman is masculine,” she says, “unless it is overdone. ” She believes that gender
issues are mostly socially constructed. “At the very most basic levels, it is biological,”
she admits. “Women are more emotional.”
Her beliefs about gender are, however, strongly influenced by her conservative
Christian belief system. For example, she lives by the biblical message that says that
women should submit to their husbands, saying, “in a household, when the husband and
wife disagree about something, “it is the husband’s final call.” She bases this belief on
the bible and on her view that in the heat of things, “a man will have a better head on his
shoulders.” She believes that they are more rational. “Personally,” she says, “in the
moment when I have to make a decision, I am likely to go with how I feel, where in the
254
general sense, men are more likely to go with the smart, rational thing.” My statistics
about the numbers of men involved in spousal battering vs. the number of women
involved, didn't have an effect on her apparent belief that anger was not an emotion.
However, it would be a mistake to suggest that Marie condoned men acting like
tyrants or engaging in spousal abuse. In fact, she expressed strong intolerance for any
of the physical abuse in other stories. In particular, where other students attempted to
justify TeaCake’s hitting Janie in Their Eyes Were Watching God, she rejected him and
the relationship because of it. She believes that in healthy relationships, there are not
that many irresolvable disagreements. She also pointed out that “Women submit to
your husbands,” is followed by the clause, “Men love your wives.” She believes that if
a man is hitting his wife, there is something very wrong. “Men should only prevail in
those rare instances where you can’t resolve a disagreement.”
On the subject of feminism, Marie said that she believes that we have
overcompensated with the quotas that businesses and colleges have put into effect.
I appreciate the fight because it enables me to wear what I want, and go to school where I want, and work where I want, but I don't think it is fair that if I am competing for a job where my competitor is a better qualified man . . . or, that I should get it because I am a woman. But, if I am better than the man, then I should have it.
My explanation about ‘leveling the playing field’ sounded like communism to
her, she said. “You can’t go backward” by overcompensating now for what has been
done in the past,” she said. She claimed not to have encountered any evidence of
gender inequalities or limitations in her life. She does not think that the fact that women
are so poorly represented in our government suggests that men and women are not equal
but, rather, that the American people at large believe that men are more capable at this
point of running our country. “That really speaks more to the way that people feel than
any gender issue,” she said. She resisted my theory that women might think they are
255
less capable because they haven’t had many models. She argued that “the simple fact is
that women don’t run as much.’’ And, again, she resisted my idea that women had few
models for even running. She claimed that she wouldn’t want to run because it would
cause too much stress. She thinks other women may feel the same way, and that “we
shouldn’t force them to do what they don’t want to do.” I assured her that forcing
women to run was not my goal, but that helping them to see possibilities was. I was
amazed at how closely her arguments resembled those of the pre-women’s movement
days of the 1950s.
As a student, Marie is hardworking and responsible. She consistently came to
class having read the literature and was always prepared to give her strong opinions.
Her presence in her afternoon class and her open expression of ideas, played a large part
in defining that class and the discussions, particularly as her views contrasted with those
of the other students. We have witnessed her input in “The Gentle Lena ” discussion.
Interestingly, although she claimed to reject feminism, Marie had trouble with
most of the portrayals of the women in the novels and stories we read. Marie thought
many of the female characters were ‘ditzy’ and passive and submissive, with the
exception of Catherine Sloper at the end of Washington Square. Marie also had trouble
with many of the relationships in the novels and stories that we read. She thought that
all of the relationships in Their Eves Were Watching God were terrible, including the
one between TeaCake and Janie, because although “the book made it look all cute and
harmless, he hit her, and that is unacceptable.” Marie also considered Catherine and
Frederic’s relationship in A Farewell to Arms a horrible relationship. She said, “I
wouldn’t want a relationship like that at all. Not at all. The relationship is all about
sex.” Marie had a similar response to Sherwood Anderson’s “The Untold Lie, ” saying
that Nell, Hal’s pregnant girlfriend, and Minnie, Hal’s wife, “should have thought about
how it would turn out before having sex.” She also felt that the sexual activity in The
256
Great Gatsbv was a bit extreme. She says, “one of the reasons that I read the bible so
continuously is that its heroes and its villains have stood the ultimate test of time.”
Written Responses
The written responses given by the students in this class were similar to the
initial responses in the morning class. For the women, they listed descriptors such as,
dependent,' 'fickle,' 'flaky,’ and ‘jobless’ and difficult to relate with. They also
categorized them as beautiful second class citizens who act dumb,’ ‘need financial
support’ and 'sit around looking pretty’ all day. Tlie list of adjectives selected for the
men were: powerful,’ 'financially secure’, ‘deceptive,’ ’‘abusive o f women’,’
bullying.’ and short tempered.’ Just the adjectives alone had students beginning to
question whether these characteristics were realistic for their time, and for now.
The entire class was sensitive to the double standard apparent for men and
women in the book. However, interestingly, the reasons given by the girls were
different from those given by the boys, which lends the same credence to the research
done on differences between male and female response (Bleich, 1986; Flynn, 1986;
Schweickart, 1986). The boys were split in their reasons, citing men as elite, having
more business smarts and being more proper (vs. flirtatious). The majority of the girls
in this class cited the fact that women stayed at home while the men went out to work,
as the main double standard. The boys seemed to focus on what the men had
accomplished, whereas the girls focused on what the women lacked. Sarah said, “men
in the novel are the protectors and providers, while the women are for show.” And, she
thought this was a traditional depiction of women.
All but one of the boys thought the women were independent and assertive.
Sarah, whose issues are more about independence, stated that the women depicted in
this novel could not be assertive or independent, and most of the girls agreed with her.
Their responses indicate that:
257
“Women should look nice and be shown for their beauty"
"Men see women as precious creatures."
“Women are dependent, where men were independent heads of the house."
"Women seemed to be independent but remained under the thumbs of their men."
“Men were the knowledgeable ones,"
"The women were all submissive; they went along with what the men wanted."
"The men were masculine and bullies; they were the strong ones with th e power."
"The men seem to think they can't get anywhere in life unless they have money."
"Men have affairs and everyone looks th e other way."
Although most of the students were amazed by the double standards, Marie
insisted that '‘the book made no suggestions about how men and women should behave.
It merely describes how specific women and men behave for a specific amount of time,”
she said. Like Charles, she resisted the generalization.
By far the most interesting phenomenon, however, was the difference in the
ways in which the boys and the girls reacted to the characters. While Marie and most of
the girls said that they couldn’t relate to any of the characters, most of the boys related
positively to Jay Gatsby. Howard, Maynard, and one other male in the class identified
strongly with Gatsby as a role model. They could imagine themselves in his situation,
felt sympathy for him, and found his relationship with Daisy the easiest of all
relationships to relate with in all of the literature. They seemed to engage more
intensely with the story as a romance while most of the girls did not. One boy stated
that he could relate to Gatsby wanting to be at the center of attention and that his actions
and intentions modeled is own. He also understood that Jay Gatsby “saw some sort of
perfection in Daisy” and he related to that romantic sentiment. He also said that like
Gatsby, he longed “to wear the gold hat and jump as high as she wants you to.”
258
Maynard also saw Gatsby as a romantic figure. He thought that Gatsby “was
good and pure and had true feelings” and said that he “could imagine himself being in a
situation like Gatsby.” Gatsby was realistic for his own and for all time. Howard said,
“Gatsby was a good guy who was the easiest character to relate with.” They all said
they related to his sensitivity and positive combination of masculinity and sensitivity.
I was very interested in the romantic connection that so many of the boys had
made with Gatsby, especially in consideration o f the way that most o f the girls felt
about him and about the unrealistic way in which they felt Daisy and other women were
represented. I hoped that the discussion would elucidate the reason for the different
gender responses, and I wondered if Fitzgerald’s stereotyping and implication of Daisy
at the center of the lost American dream, impeded the girls’ ability to relate with any of
the characters.Introductorv Character Studv Activity
In the afternoon class, before the discussion, we repeated the art activity wherein
the students made the drawings of the Gatsby characters. Marie’s group worked on Nick
(Appendix E). Marie said that all in all, this activity helped her to visualize the
characters more strongly, and therefore, helped her to interpret them and their actions.
She also felt that the activity helped with later discussions and the writing of the paper.
“The drawing of the pictures revealed character traits and ideas previously
unconsidered,” she said. In her case, the drawing also helped the students to see the
changes in Nick that they had not seen earlier. And, their selection of some of Nick’s
lines forced a realization of the difference between the Nick who was mesmerized by
the group, and the Nick who rejected them and the East in the end.
Discussion
As in the morning class, the drawing activity and written responses stimulated a
discussion about the differences in the male and female characteristics. While the boys
259
opened the discussion arguing for Gatsby as the romantic hero, some girls resisted.
Sarah said that she thought that Gatsby was the hardest of all the characters to relate
with because of his obsessive qualities. “He is a freak,” she said, “cause he lusted after
Daisy for all those years, and did everything in the world to get her back. That is
weird.” Her view, as opposed to the boys’ resulted in some interesting arguments. I
also engaged in the argument as I found it difficult to bestow the honor of the novel’s
hero onto Gatsby. I followed Nussbaum’s (1990) suggestion to bring students to an
increasingly sophisticated level of ethical consideration of texts by asking “certain large
scale . . . questions . . . about the role of the hero or heroine, and the nature of the
reader’s identification” (p. 35). To carry this out, I reminded asked the class about how
they felt about a hero who had abandoned his name (and family) and rejected his poor
beginnings in favor of a monied, yet empty lifestyle, just to win the love of a morally
bankrupt woman. I also asked them whether Gatsby’s role as an accomplice to Myrtle’s
hit and run affected his qualifications a hero? In challenging their respect for Gatsby, I
wanted them to investigate the ethics of leaving the scene of the "accident’ to protect his
‘love,’ Daisy, whom he had valued over all life and all others. I was surprised and very
disappointed to find that my arguments did not sway many away from admiring Gatsby
for his purity of love. The boys, in particular, valued him highly for his devotion to
Daisy, which they considered the greatest of all virtues.
Part of the reason why the boys related so strongly with Gatsby was that they
sympathized with him in relation to the women, whom they saw as aggressive and
independent. One boy summed it up by saying that
There are some women who use men for whatever reason. They want to put men to the te s t to see if they would really kiss the ground they walk on.There are some women who have no real feelings for men and they just take these g ifts from the men. I am bothered by the fact that this kind of relationship still exists with women still stomping over men's hearts.
260
Since the boys and girls differed so in their reactions to the representation of the
women, I took this opportunity to engage in a conversation about Fitzgerald’s choices in
terms of gender representation. I specifically asked the students how realistically they
thought Fitzgerald had represented the men and women. I addressed the characteristics
they had listed for the men and women in the novel. I made particular reference to the
fact that it was of prime interest that the characterizations had rung true for the boys and
not for the girls. I suspected that the reason why the boys could relate was because the
male characters were more realistically drawn, and that particularly Gatsby, was drawn
in opposition to Daisy, the villain. One girl didn’t think the females were realistic and
suggested that Fitzgerald might have had difficulty portraying the women realistically.
The students had identified the general characteristics of males and females in
the book but, I thought that it was important to explore Fitzgerald’s portrayals to see if
they applied to all the men and women, or just particular characters. If there were many
common characteristics, implicating all women as flakes, or ditzes, we could conclude
that it was no wonder that the girls couldn’t relate to the women in the novel.
Marie began by strongly resisting the idea that we could possibly make any
generalizations on the basis of so few characters.
There are three women in the story. I can't be offended by the fact that this author portrays three women this way. This doesn't mean that he thinks all women are this way. To me, that means absolutely nothing. He is being an author, and I can't be offended by that.
Richard disagreed, however, arguing that it is possible to see an author’s opinion
on gender through one character’s portrayal. Marie responded by questioning whether
this could be seen as a pattern. “Just because these women are fickle and ditzy, does
that mean all women like that? Does it mean he thinks all women are like that? If
every woman who he ever writes about is like this, maybe, but these are just three.’’
261
Margaret and I considered this to be a great question, and decided to take it up
by engaging in a more intense textual negotiation. We agreed that Richard also had an
important point, but we could understand Marie’s resistance and the danger implicit in
trying to make generalizations based on a few characters without being accountable to
the text. We realized that an attempt to see into an author’s attitudes about women
demanded more than just a list of characteristics that the students could notice from
among the male and female characters in the novel. Firstly, it demanded some
consideration of Fitzgerald's other work, so we gave them some information about
Fitzgerald’s other heroes and heroines to shed some light on his writing style and
characterizations. Secondly, it demanded a close investigation of the of mimetic
function (Phelan, 1986, p. 218) and the synthetic function (an artificial construct,
Phelan, 1986, p. 220) of the characters in Gatsby, and what we and others thought was
Fitzgerald’s purpose in using them to tell the story. We talked to the students about the
fact that to some degree, Fitzgerald’s characters were drawn from his desire to expose a
corrupt society, so that indeed, he was choosing to create some characters who
embodied the materialistic, egotistical qualities as well as traits of the victims of such
behavior. In that way. the book reads like a fairy tale or myth. Lastly, In order to
investigate whether Fitzgerald had represented women unfairly, we were challenged to
look more carefully at the common traits of all of the women, and all of the men, and
the diversity in the characterizations of the men as opposed to the women.
Before getting into that investigation, however, we thought that a brief history of
feminist literary criticism was necessary for these students. Marie’s resistance was an
indicator that she and others lacked some background in the feminist literary tradition
that would help her and the others to understand where we were coming from. Even if
she and others did not agree, we thought it important to at least attempt to provide a
context for the discussion. Therefore, I provided a brief history o f feminist literary
262
criticism, noting the effort of feminists to add female authors to the canon of literature
read in high schools and colleges out of a concern about the lack of focus on women’s
lives, desires or actions.
Following that introduction, we returned to the project at hand and identified
commonalities shared by the female and male characters to address what we could o f
Fitzgerald’s portrayal of women in this novel. We decided to look at the portrayals of
the men and women in the novel, and identify patterns and common characteristics that
the class members thought applied to all or most of the women and men. To begin the
discussion, Margaret Johnson addressed Marie’s specific resistance to our attempt to
determine Fitzgerald’s attitude toward women. Margaret said.
Even though there are only three women in the book. Myrtle, Daisy and Jordan, if we thought that Fitzgerald was depicting them all in a similar way, we might be able to draw conclusions about what he might be saying . .. because, even if there were only three women, it is the three women that he has chosen to depict in this book and it is the only three women he has chosen to depict. So, if you saw some trends that applied to all three, it could be decided that maybe he is thinking this, or maybe he is showing that about women, because in some books you see many different types of women and in some you don't see many types.
We attempted to see which characteristics, if any, applied to all of the women or
the men. Marie started the conversation by saying that
All the women are very unstable. No one is happy. They are all jumping around saying, "Oh, I need this guy. Oh, I need that guy. That is somewhat extreme. Few people are like that. Just like . . . married to someone and having an almost marriage relationship with someone else.Like Myrtle and Tom are married to other people and have an apartment together. That is extreme.
In this class, students were more specific and delved more deeply than the
students had in the A. M. class. Some students said that the men shared some of these
characteristics, so the students were forced to struggle on with the identification of those
characteristics that applied to all the women or all the men, if possible. The students
263
found it challenging to identify the common traits. They struggled and we struggled
with them to attempt to distance ourselves enough from the story to examine these
women and men as cultural anthropologists might so that we would not draw
conclusions based on one character. Eventually, we identified some commonalities.
The students said that aU the women were static characters, who, unlike Nick,
did not change. They also said they were all primarily motivated by money, material
possessions, and/or status. They also said that they were focused predominantly on
beauty and sex, (Wolf, 1991), were engaged in some type of deceptive practices, were
insensitive to the needs of those around them, had little or nothing to do most of the
time, and had little power in the world. The wives (Myrtle and Daisy) were seen as
financially dependent, but Jordan, the one single woman, was a golf pro, albeit a lying,
cheating pro. The other prominent woman was the nurse who did have a job, and the
responsibility for taking care of Daisy’s daughter, which neither o f the two upper class
parents seemed to care or remember to do. A few students pointed out also that
although many women were now working, that many of these characteristics still
defined women.
As far as the men were concerned, the students said that some of the m en’s traits
were similar but not quite as uniform. They noticed that the men had financial
independence, were busy, had some power in the world and were concerned with sex
but not with their looks. Some pointed out that this had not changed. They said that,
like the women, Tom, Nick and Gatsby were involved in deceptive activities, and that
Tom and Gatsby were involved in illicit sexual affairs, but that Nick and George were
not. They also realized through their discussion that unlike any of the women and the
rest of the men, Nick changed over the course of the story from one who was
mesmerized by the lifestyle of the rich and famous, to one who prioritized his values
differently. Lastly, they thought that while money and material possessions and/or
264
status motivated all of the women, it was not a primary concern for Nick, George and
Jay. In addition, most of the class finally agreed that Nick did not share many of the
materialistic tendencies that were shared by Gatsby and Tom. They said that the main
reason was that he developed from one kind of person to another in the story was that he
eventually judged the behaviors of the others against a higher ethical standard. In the
end, their main determination was that while the men and women shared some similar
characteristics, there was a little more variance and diversity in the representation of the
men than there was in the representation of the women. All of the principle women
were suspect. Not all of the principle men were. Tom, for example, was in a class by
himself. None of the other males were as racist or as sexist as he was.
We attempted to determine the reasons why the men and women were depicted
the way they were, and to determine the implications of those representations on the
readers of the twenties and today. Some students thought that to some degree, the men
and women depicted were representative of the real men and women then, especially for
those among the wealthier classes. Others thought that Fitzgerald was exaggerating the
characteristics of the men and the women for effect, so that he could make a point about
the way that these immoral rich people lived. Still others stated that some of the men’s
characteristics, such as male dominance and financial independence, were realistic for
the time when the book was written and also realistic for today. They also thought
specific women’s characteristics were appropriate for the twenties, i.e., women’s
submissiveness, financial dependence, and having the leisure time to lie around the
house. Everyone realized in the end, that some o f the men had redeeming qualities,
whereas none of the women did. Not everyone wanted to make generalized conclusions
based on this discovery. Marie , in particular, did not.
I asked the students how they responded when they read across cultures (Hines,
1997; Jauss, 1982; Rogers, 1997; Soter, 1997) from their time period and
265
socioeconomic group, about women who could lie around without anything to do.
Three or four of the girls expressed difficulty in imagining having nothing to do. One
said she would die if she had to stay in the house all of the time. I suggested that all the
students consider what implications ‘women lying around the house doing nothing’
would have on women’s power in the society. “Who drives this society?” I asked. “Do
the women drive it because they are lying around thinking about all the ways in which
they are going organize it, or contribute to it? Or, is this totally a male-determined
world we are seeing because the women are just lying around and the men are out
working and running business and government? Sarah suggested that the problem
wasn’t that the women were lying around as much as it was that they were considered
insignificant. She said.
I t doesn't have as much to do with the women lying around as much as whether or not the men would pay attention to them if they had gotten up and said anything. I don't think they would. I don't think anyone would have cared.
I thought this was an interesting point which not only spoke to the fact that the
women were not driving the society, but implied that the men would not have
considered their ideas worth while. Maynard agreed with Sarah, saying that they
probably wouldn’t have cared and that “ it was a male-dominated world.” Hillary
echoed Sarah, saying that women didn’t speak because no one talked to them. Marie
and a few others were disturbed by the fact that Daisy, who, as a mother, did have
something to do and something to contribute, but was choosing to hire someone else to
do that work. “She has a child, of course she has something better to do,” said Marie. “I
would say, spend a little more time with your daughter.”
The fact that the there was more diversity among the male characters than there
was among the female characters was something that no one thought was representative
of any time period, then or now. And, this fact confirmed for many of the students that
266
Fitzgerald’s view of women was a distorted one. It seemed that the girls just couldn’t
find enough characteristics among the women to find them either palatable or
believable.Literary Criticism
This agreement led me into exploring some of Fetterley’s (1978) ideas that not
only were the representation of the women unrealistic and potentially damaging, but
that Fitzgerald’s saddling of the failed American dream on women was problematic.
We had engaged in a discussion in the morning class that I was hoping to pick up with
the afternoon class. Therefore, I distributed the readings from The Resisting Reader
(1978) and we first addressed some of the points we had addressed in the morning.
Not dead Gatsby but surviving Daisy is the object of the novel’s hostility. ” (p. 72)
It is hardly irrelevant that the Caraway/Fitzgerald vision of the lost America is so clearly linked to Gatsby s vision of Daisy. Both the sense of wonder and the sense of loss are associated with women, and women are the objects of the novel’s moral indignation just as they are the objects of romanticism (p. 73).
The Great Gatsby is based on the lie of a double standard that makes female characters in our ‘classic’ literature not persons but symbols and makes women’s experience no part of that literature’s concern, (p. 97).While Gatsby pays for his imagination. Daisy pays more. (p. 98)
The disparity between Nick’s judgment of Daisy and his judgment of Gatsby is of prime importance, for behind this disparity is a radical, if common, form of the pervasive cultural double standard. Gatsby s crimes are excused as part of Fitzgerald’s great design, yet Daisy is utterly damned as a careless driver. Gatsby’s investment in Daisy is seen as a tragic error, the fault, however not of himself, but of that bitch America (p. 95).
Margaret explained that in the end, we all like Gatsby and hate Daisy. “She is
the scapegoat,’’ read Margaret. “Gatsby is defined so that we feel sympathy for him. He
is more of a victim of the society. She is the society. The social ills of the twentieth
century rests with women ” (Fetterley, 1978, p. 89).
267
I do not exaggerate or fantasize when I report that the first comment by one of
the boys in the afternoon discussion of Fetterley was that “All the women in The Great
Gatsby are sluts.” This remark, clearly irrelevant to the conversation, confirmed
Sarah’s earlier point and justified her complaint about the prevalence of these slurs and
the easy classifications into which complicated issues can be resolved. It also
confirmed the arguments of theorists (Brown and Gilligan, 1992; Faludi, 1991; Lewis,
1992; Pipher, 1994) which point to a continuation of the double standard among
contemporary teens. Luckily, the rest of the class ignored this student and went on to
attempt to deal more straightforwardly with Fetterley’s comments. It was an interesting
response, all things considered.
There was much evidence of the problem that had existed in the earlier class
with respect to the students’ penchant for reading only on the narrative level. As Sarah
said, “trying to figure out what the author is thinking can be a difficult thing to do.
Some of it has to do with your own personal interpretation, what your values and things
are.” To prove her point, she alluded to Hemingway’s (1987) short story, “Hills like
White Elephants,” saying that “If you wrote “Hills” you could be thinking that the male
protagonist is a really nice guy not to push or pressure his girlfriend. Jig. Or, you could
think that instead of that, he is a jerk for pressuring her so subtly but clearly.”
What I took as her difficulty in considering the tone of the piece to at least
attempt to determine Hemingway’s perspective was a difficulty that was shared by
others in this and the morning class. For this group, time would not permit a helpful
lesson or introduction on narrative theory until the study of A Farewell to Arms.
Therefore, we had to do the best we could to address Fetterley (1978) without benefit of
narrative theory to promote reading as a member of the authorial audience. But, even
without the narrative theory, some students admitted an appreciation of some of the
things Fetterley (1978) had to say. Marie, however, was not one of them. She resisted,
268
saying, “Daisy happens to be a character. It is ridiculous to accuse the author o f being
anti women. She comes out looking like the bad guy because her character makes bad
decisions.” Marie was, as yet, unable to see the hand of the author at work in the
portrayal.
Marie continued on to argue that Daisy wasn’t the villain, and that “Gatsby
wasn’t redeemed as he died in the end.” Some others agreed with her, arguing that it
wasn’t a problem that the women were the villains because “the women were the ones
who did the crazy stuff in the book,” and that “the men didn’t do anything wrong. ” One
student remarked that “ the men were redeemed because they were the innocent ones. ”
Others argued along with Marie that “Daisy was just a character in a book” or that
Daisy should have been the villain because she was “a much worse person than
Gatsby.” 1 was challenged to help them see that the characters were constructs, not real.
Others felt that Fetterley (1978) was “way too radical ” and “ a feminist reaching
out for any answer to defend the fact that a woman was the bad guy.” A few of the girls
thought that it was a welcomed relief to have a woman as the villain for a change. A
number of the girls, however, seemed to think that Fetterley had something to say. “I
think it is partly true,” said one girl. “I agree with her to a certain extent,” said another.
A third girl said, “I believe it partly because it seems to me that Daisy was turning out to
be the bad guy in the end, but really Tom was the evil one. ” A fourth girl said, “I agree
with her idea because the women did do some things that were as bad as the men and
they were the bad guys and the men were not. ”
Howard pointed out that Fetterley (1978) made him begin to think beyond the
story line to an author’s point o f view and even an author’s sexist perspectives. He
attempted to make a study of each of the characters in light of Fetterley’s words. He did
think that Daisy was the villain, and, he did think that Nick was an innocent figure in
269
the novel from the start. Therefore, he had no trouble with Nick’s redemption in the
end. However, he added.
The fact that Gatsby was redeemed, and Tom was not considered the villain that Daisy was, seems to suggest that despite all th e advances by the opposite sex, men with wealth literally got away with murder. I t is a troubling concept but who is to say that it is still not the case in 1999 with O.J. Simpson, for example. The tables turned on everyone and Gatsby ended up the good guy even in spite o f some o f his obsessions and wrongdoings.
I suggested that Gatsby may have emerged as the one who was “worth the whole
damned bunch of them” because Fitzgerald deliberately made him the victim of a
society gone awry, in order to critique that society and comment on its victims as well
as its villains. Some students were intrigued. I was pleased that we had investigated
Fetterley’s (1978) claims, and that some of the students engaged in the mental exercise
of considering her points. A few saw that with perhaps the best of intentions, Fitzgerald
had let Gatsby off the hook as a victim of the corruption, while assigning the role of
chief corruptor to Daisy, the accountable villain. I considered it important for them to
leam of how some women react to the portrayals of women in older literature, and to
consider the effects of those portrayals on past and present readers.
Social Imagination Activities.
Once again, the Journalist/Actor’ activity was almost a complete failure.
Again, the students enjoyed participating, so, as in the morning class, it was a
pleasurable activity for them. As in the morning class, the ‘journalists’ in the afternoon
class also did a good job of asking the questions that would bring about the ‘actors’
awareness of the tensions involved in playing the parts. However, the actors’ again
had a difficult time getting out of the ‘character’ role and into the role of an actor
deliberating on performing his/her role.
For example, one journalist,’ interviewing the actor that played Myrtle, asked,
“Did you have any problems doing scenes when Myrtle allowed herself to be mistreated
270
by Tom?” The student answered, “No, I was just acting.” The same ‘journalist’ asked,
“What is your reaction to the feminist reactions to the film?” And the ‘actor’ replied,
’They need to get a life. Gender in movies is a common theme then and now.”
Another ‘journalist’ received an ‘it was realistic for the time’ answer to his question of
whether in his role as actor he was aware of the horrible representations of gender issues
in The Great Gatsby. As a follow-up question, the ‘journalist’ asked, “Did you object to
any of the issues portrayed in The Great Gatsby? The male ‘actor replied, “Not really,
the issues don’t bother me. I don’t give a dam about issues. I want to be an actor.”
Marie was one of the ‘actors’ who focused on her character’ of Jordan throughout the
interview. She had selected Jordan because Jordan was her favorite o f the female
characters. She was her favorite because “she wasn’t a whore like the rest of them.”
She was unable to reflect on the moral implications of Jordan’s behavior because of the
nebulous nature of Jordan’s character, and the fact that Marie did not see the
questionable nature of her character. My reminders about Jordan’s lying, cheating
behavior met with students’ charges that I was being too hard on Jordan. For Marie, sin
was predominantly defined in sexual terms.
In interviewing the students about the effects of this activity, most o f them said
that they enjoyed the activity but very few claimed that the activity made them either
more aware of the gender issues in The Great Gatsbv or the gender issues in their lives.
Most said that they concentrated on the ‘actors’. Sarah said that she had realized most
of the gender representations on her own and that “the activity didn’t accomplish a
whole lot because it focused on the actors and not the actual characters in the book or
the remake.” Marie said it “made her more aware of the character she was playing
(Jordan) but did not make her more aware of gender issues.” Many agreed that it let
them put themselves in the characters’ shoes (Heathcote, 1984; Johnson, 1993;
Kohlberg, 1980; O’Neill, 1995) but didn’t do much more.
271
Interestingly, after the fact, a few girls did report that the activity did make an
impact. One girl thought that while the activity did not make her more aware, it
reinforced her idea that “women were very limited in the society.” Sarah said that it
made the characters have more meaning like the woman who always seem to need a
man to make them feel secure because without their man, they become no one and lose
their identity.” One boy actually reported that this activity was his favorite, and that it
had caused him to become more aware of the gender representations in the book. He
said that in playing ‘Tom,’ he was required to justify the actions of his own sex, and that
proved challenging but interesting. “Now I feel that women who portray characters
such as Daisy and Myrtle take on more of a responsibility to their own gender. This is
opposed to men portraying Tom or Jay because men don’t care how they are being
represented or portrayed.” He was the only student who had this positive a reaction.
More interestingly, however, although the students did not say at the time or in
interviews that the activity had caused any awareness about gender inequities, a few of
the girls did report that the activity made them think about gender stereotypes in their
own life or with those around them:
I learned that some people see women in a lesser light.
I t made me more aware because I compare relationships now with those then. I learned that women naturally fight stereotypes more than men do.I t made me aware that men are in charge of relationships.
I t made me see that women think they are inferior to men and have trouble taking control of situations because they think that the men can do a better job.
The rest of the students said that the activity did not make them think about
gender stereotypes in their own lives. Marie’s response was the most forceful of this
type.I t did not make me think of that. Let's be realistic, there were only a small handful of characters and to me, it speaks nothing of gender limitations.And, I don't feel that there are limitations on me as an individual.
272
Even with the few success stories, I realized that this activity had failed to bring
about the awareness that I was hoping it would inspire. Some students said that they
thought it was a good idea that might have worked better in a different class with a
different set of students. Others disagreed, saying that it only made them focus on the
acting and not on playing the part, which was what I had wanted them to address.
Writing
The writing of the paper on The Great Gatsbv also did not move Marie toward an
awareness of inequities among the men and women and in their relationships in the
novel. It did, however, serve to change her opinion of Gatsby himself, moving her
closer to the boys. Where originally she had reported that she did not connect with any
characters in the book, she admitted to connecting with Gatsby in an interview
following the writing of the paper. When I asked then if she related to anyone, she said,
“Gatsby.” When I asked why, she replied that
He is really romantic in my mind, I guess. He was a good guy. He wasn't a bimbo like all the other guys or wishy washy like most o f the girls. He was also loving purely. I guess he had sort of a healthy view of things . . . and he wasn't just out to get what he could get. He is not your typical rich guy.He was nice to people. He was considerate. He wasn't stingy or greedy.
Her changed opinion had developed through the writing of her critical paper in
which she argued that Gatsby is the novel’s hero. I asked her why she thought that
Gatsby didn’t move on from what she had thought earlier was his “obsessive” stalking
of Daisy and how she came to change her mind about him. She explained that she did
not judge him harshly as he loved Daisy so much. She, like many boys, focused on the
romantic aspect of the novel.Final Proiects
While Marie did not do her project on The Great Gatsby, having composed the
ode for flute in Stein’s style, many students did address gender-related topics in The
Great Gatsbv for their final projects. Two students created a video production in which
273
they dealt with some of the stereotypes and gender interactions with all of the characters
in the novel. Maynard and Sarah worked up a series o f popular songs that depicted the
stereotypical relationship between Gatsby and Daisy and between Myrtle and Tom.
One student wrote his own song for each of the characters. Also, Alicia and a male
student developed and responded to a battery of psychological tests emphasizing the
stereotypical gender identities of Gatsby and Daisy. They responded to the tests as they
thought Gatsby and Daisy would have responded. Their presentation emphasized
Daisy’s lack of seriousness, inability to concentrate, and her focus on her looks and
femininity at the expense of her character or the development of her brain. Alicia
reported that this activity really brought Daisy’s character to life for them and made
them more aware of double standards and the way she was trapped by her privileging of
’femininity’ over intelligence.
Another student created a Gatsbv comic book, and two girls kept Daisy’s diary
throughout her relationships with Gatsby, Tom, and Gatsby again. Two students
painted pictures in which they attempted to address the gender issues in The Great
Gatsby. One painted Gatsby’s heart; another represented Daisy and her relationships.
And another student created a photographic show that served as a Gatsbv Timeline. In
each of these cases, the students demonstrated and reported that they had seriously
considered and addressed the double standards, stereotypes and androcentric
perspectives that we had addressed. Since the project came at the end of the course, the
students’ responses to the gender issues in Gatsby were informed by all of the following
discussions on all of the subsequent stories.
Reflections
The students in the P.M. class raised some interesting questions about The Great
Gatsby that proved interesting to my project. While they were in general, much more
sensitive to the existence of stereotypes in the literature and the characters’ double
274
standards than those in the A M . class, the boys and girls in this class reacted differently
to the characters and to the double standards. By and large, the boys saw the story as
much more romantic, while the girls saw the stereotypes in the novel. The boys saw the
women in the novel as independent and aggressive, while the girls saw them as 'ditzy'
and weak and trapped. Many boys made strong connections with Gatsby, while most of
the girls made no strong connections with anyone in the novel. And, the boys focused
on the double standards that emphasized the male characters’ accomplishments, while
the girls saw double standards, which were represented by losses. “The men were the
protectors and the providers,” said Sarah. “The women were for show.”
To explore the reasons behind this dichotom y, we investigated the
commonalities in the male and female characters, concluding that there was much more
variance in the depictions of men than in the portrayals of women. None of the women
had redeeming qualities, whereas Nick and Gatsby did. This convinced many about the
reasons why the boys could see the story as more of a romance, and relate with the male
characters. The men were strong and drove the society. Nick and Gatsby were less
materialistic than were Daisy and Myrtle and Jordan, who had nothing to do, and, as the
girls pointed out, would not have been listened to even if they had tried to influence the
men on important matters.
While the earlier class had resisted Fetterley (1978), for the most part Howard,
and Sarah and two other girls in the P.M.group found her argument intriguing, and gave
it some consideration, although most of the students had trouble understanding her
point. Marie resisted Fetterley on two counts: she resisted drawing conclusions on
Fitzgerald’s ideas about women in general on the basis of a few; and she resisted the
politicizing of the literature.
Marie and many others, however, loved the drawing of the Gatsbv characters
which, she said, “revealed character traits and ideas previously unconsidered.” She also
275
benefited by the writing of the paper, which actually resulted in a greater appreciation of
Jay Gatsby, though not an analysis of his moral standards. Individual students reported
high involvement with the projects that they did on Gatsby at the end of the class, and
many found them to increase their awareness of the gender issues in the novel's
relationships. Personally, I learned most from my disappointment at the results of my
“journalist’ activity and realized the value of the activity discarded. Though some liked
it very much, and others learned from it, I realized that a simpler approach would have
had better results.
In spite of the failure o f the social imagination activity, and my difficulty in
engaging the students in a productive ethical investigation of Jay Gatsby as hero, I was
encouraged by the students’ developing sensitivity to gender stereotypes and double
standards in written responses. I was also encouraged by the progress made in the close
investigation of Fitzgerald’s representation o f the male and female characters in the
novel.
276
A FAREWELL TO ARMS Ernest Hemingway
CHALLENGES TO MALE REPRESENTATIONS OF WOMEN
ELLEN AND HOWARD
Those rare women who are shown in fiction as both powerful and in some cases admirable, are such because their power is based, if not on beauty, then at least on sexuality.
Edwards, 1972, p. 226
Choice
This novel was chosen because of Hemingway’s popularity in high school literature classes, and because of this particular novel is the one usually taught in American literature classes.
Synopsis
In the beginning of the novel, Frederic Henry, the protagonist and narrator, is an American serving in the Italian army as an ambulance driver in World War I. At this point in his development, he has a limited view of life and a simplistic and naive approach to war and reality. He is in the Italian army because he speaks Italian, and not out of any belief or cause. As the story progresses, Frederic becomes restless and in search of a consistent set of values to which he can adhere. Struggling with a growing disenchantment yet stubborn adherence to a world of certainty and conventionalism, he attempts to lose himself in alcohol and prostitution, believing that he might find some kind of truth through a multiplicity of sensations.
He meets Catherine Barkely, a nurse in a Milan hospital, when he is injured in a bombing. This relationship transforms him into a more conscious human being, finally aware of the brutal fact that life is horrific and death is final but that love brings the only kind of peace and redemption that is possible in a world “which is inevitably wantonly destructive” (Phelan, 1989, p. 172). Catherine, having lost a fiance in the war, is able to lead Frederic toward a deeper comprehension of the realities of the world and toward a possibility for determining better ways to live. After realizing the corruption of the Italian army, he deserts, finds Catherine, who is now pregnant with his child, and they escape to Switzerland, where they leave the war and the horrors of the world behind. He and she live in the mountains while they await the birth of the child, establishing a gentle and tender union, emphasizing the stark opposition to the war experience and of Frederic’s initial resistance to mature love. Catherine’s baby dies; she also dies in childbirth, providing a logical conclusion to the novel and reinforcing Hemingway’s view of the world as malevolent.
277
Mv reading
As a woman commenting on A Farewell to Arms in terms of romantic love, I am
forced to be in two places at once. On the one hand, I understand that Catherine
Barkley, Hemingway’s (1969/1929) female protagonist and perfect female lover
fantasy, is the kind of female representation that feminists have fought against —the
sweet, blond, beautiful, self sacrificing, self-effacing, self-erasing subservient, who
exists only to serve and service her man and bring him happiness. “I want what you
want,” she says. “There isn’t any me anymore. Just want you w an t” p. 106). An
example of Fetterley’s (1978) ‘sacrificial lamb.’
On the other hand, I am aware that the strength and clarity with which Catherine
meets her world and lives her life brings about a transformation in Frederic. She is
almost singularly responsible for leading him from a naive and unreflective boy in
denial about the nature of war and the fragility of life, into a sensitive, giving, whole
person who faces life and its realities straight on. 1 am also aware of the effect that
Catherine’s love and its peace has had on Frederic through their relationship. As a
female reader, then, I must approach this novel with a bifurcated consciousness, reading
a female protagonist whom I alternately resist and applaud, as she plays her part in an
affair which is the center of an important American novel that I wanted to embrace but
found difficult to abide.
The female reader is forced to observe one of the very few positive love stories
in American literature seriously endangered by the presence of an insipid, clinging
female protagonist who replaces religion with the adoration of her love, and sacrifices
her own desires to those of her beloved.
While I usually expect a gap that I must bridge when reading of another time
and culture, I was seriously affronted by Catherine’s style as a woman and a lover, and
it was a struggle to pull opposing sides of myself together for an endorsement of an
278
otherwise praiseworthy novel. Hopefully, the attempt to unify m yself as a reader,
reading against the grain, will result in my being “stronger at the broken places.”
ELLEN (AJM.)
Ellen is a beautiful girl with bright smiling eyes and an easy laugh that is
contagious. Her friendliness and nonchalance have won her many boyfriends and
girlfriends. She says she has three close friends and many casual relationships.
According to her, they would describe her as “happy most of the time.” Her charisma
and self-confidence have afforded her a leadership role in the school community and
she is admired and respected by both students and staff. The staff members describe her
as a leader, “a good kid who is able to convince others.” The staff also sees her as a
hard worker who sets academic goals for herself and is motivated as a learner. They
also see her as a strong leader in terms of community service. She describes herself as
“not very successful” as a student, but she does see herself as ‘an ok artist.’ When she
is not at school or at her 20 hour per week job, she spends her time seeing friends and
being artistic. She is considering architecture as a career, following in the footsteps of
both of her parents.
She has been enrolled in the suburban school district for the past nine years,
since her parents immigrated to the United States in 1991 when she was six. She
describes her relationship with her parents as ‘form al,’ and attributes her strict
upbringing to their Eastern Orthodox religious beliefs and Middle Eastern culture. She
has one older, married brother.
Ellen was one of the two or three girls in the morning class who were regular
contributors to the discussions. She came to the class with clear ideas about feminism
and gender issues, explaining that she didn’t think that gender stereotypes were an issue
for people in society, did not really think about them, and felt no need to change the
279
status quo in this respect. “There is really no problem,” she says, “and there is no
reason to rebel.” She believes that feminism is a worthy cause, but not one that she
would ever be fighting. “I don’t think I can be a feminist,” she says, explaining that she
doesn’t think women should be because, like Maynard, she believes that “the two
genders are so different that it is impossible to have equality.” But, in spite of the fact
that she thinks equality is impossible between the sexes, she has no worry that she
would ever fall into being treated badly by a male. “I refuse to be controlled,” she
•admits. She does not agree that inequality between the sexes is a moral issue we should
be concerned with unless there is abuse. She believes that men and women get what
they want. She has recently become aware that “there are many high powered
professional women out there,” and is convinced that all is well in the workplace. “I
think it was wonderful to see this and I am reassured,” she says.
Her ultimate goal is to be married. She has positive ideas about the institution,
and would like to commit to someone for life, and she wants to raise her own children.
“I think that is the right way.“ she says. She wants to have a lot of children, and thinks
that she will raise them and return to work after they are raised. “I think I am different
in that way,” she says. She explains that she still has it in her background that the
woman raises the child. She doesn’t think that she could ever put her children into
daycare, and she questions how effectively a man would fare as the primary caregiver.
However, she does realize that she is not speaking for her contemporaries. She also
realizes that she is not speaking for her contemporaries when she says, “women are the
keepers of the morality. ” She does not see men as solely responsible for sex crimes and
rapes. For example, she believes that women have a responsibility not to leave
themselves open to such assaults by drinking too much at parties or with people they do
not know very well. During our discussion, in which I tried to suggest that a crime is a
crime, and that we would not be .as easy on a murderer or a batterer (even if there was
280
verbal provocation), she drew a distinction between sex crimes and other crimes. She
doesn’t think anyone deserves such violation, but she thinks that one has the
responsibility to not leave oneself open to it.
In Ellen’s perfect relationship, she says that she would have her way. “I just
want someone who will understand why I am looking at things they way I am, because I
don’t seem to look at things like anyone else,” she said. She explained that she does not
want to be controlled. She says that control is a big issue for her. She wants it.
I don't want to be controlled myself. I just recently figured out that being in control is much better. I t is so great. Being controlled is horrible. Controlling myself is good. AAe controlling other people, now that is excellent.
Ellen read her favorite book, A Farewell to Arms, three times and even did her
final project on it. The first time she read it, she found it extremely boring. She found it
more interesting on the second reading. By the third reading, she loved it. ’Tt is so
good. It is a love story. It was real.”
Written Responses
Seventy-percent of students in the A.M. class reported that the main characters
were not portrayed realistically for either the time of the novel or contemporary times.
Reasons given were that neither Frederic nor Catherine seemed ‘normal’ or ‘realistic.’
Most reported having difficulty relating with either of the main characters in the novel.
In responding to the connection with the characters, many of the male students focused
on Frederic, and stated their responses to his character. They used words such as
“cool, ” “confusing,” unemotional and “disconnected” to explain their difficulty in
connecting with him. The girls, for the most part, focused on Catherine in written
responses, and expressed their trouble with her character in terms of what they saw as a
sexist portrayal. They used words such as “crazy,” “pathetic,” “submissive,”
281
“dependent,” “self-effacing” and “self-sacrificing” to describe her. Interestingly, these
were words that students had used to describe Fitzgerald’s female characters also.
In spite of the fact that the majority had trouble connecting to either of the two
main characters, half of the students in the A.M. class claimed to like the novel. They
appreciated Hemingway’s focus on the war, and, although they didn’t completely relate
to the characters, found that the story engaged them. Most thought that the story could
take place today, although the girls were particularly aware that Catherine’s character
would have to be brought up to date for a more egalitarian depiction of the relationship.
The initial responses provided an entry into the class discussion.
Discussion
The class began with a reiteration of students’ remarks about Catherine’s
portrayal. However, though many people in this class loudly objected to Catherine’s
submissiveness and loss of self to Frederic, Ellen claimed to like her because of her
strength. In fact, Ellen’s favorite character was Catherine Barkely. She did not find her
weak. She said that she thought she had the kind of subtle control over Frederic that she
would like to have with a husband. She admitted that the first time she read it, she too
thought Catherine was pathetic, but after a number of readings, she began to see
something else. She ended up thinking that Catherine was a very strong woman. She
pointed out that “In this very sweet way, she got him to do what she wanted.” Ellen
said.
She was the coolest thing. I don't remember how she got away with being really sweet, but I think she was such a great lady. She just got him to do what she wanted. She was in control but it didn't look that way to anyone else. And, she may not even have known it. But, she was in control. I really admire her. In a relationship, I think I could fall into something like she did and get in control, but then really fall for the person.
Interestingly, Ellen had one supporter in her morning class. While Candy
related to Catherine because like her, she initially “had a lot of baggage toward guys in
282
general, and toward relationships,” she also realized that Catherine had changed
Frederic into a better man. Therefore, she even saw Hemingway as having a feminist
perspective in this story, as well as in “Hills like White Elephants.” Others disagreed.
Dale, for example, resisted the idea that Hemingway was a conscious feminist either in
this story or in “Hills like White Elephants.” And Charles and most of the girls in the
class saw Catherine as ‘a typical Hemingway heroine,’ too self sacrificing and
submissive.’ Charles said that one way for Catherine to have had a more equal
relationship with Frederic was not to have appeared in a Hemingway piece of literature
in the first place. He had already explained, while studying Fitzgerald that he thought
that some o f the worst gender stereotyping in American literature had been done by
Fitzgerald and Hemingway, although he loves both of them.
While Ellen related with Catherine because she felt she was a person who could
control her emotions and was strong, and only looked like a wimpy little thing, Charles
found Catherine and Frederic’s relationship the hardest o f all the relationships to relate
with. He thought “Catherine was ridiculously selfless to the point where she would give
up anything.” The class was at this impasse about Hemingway’s failure or success at
representing women realistically or ethically, when a professor from the university
visited the class to offer narrative theory and help work through the quandary.
Literarv Criticism
By reading through different passages of the novel with the students, the visiting
university professor helped the students to distinguish between Hemingway and
Frederic by tracing the latter’s growth from the beginning to the end of the novel.
Because we were focusing on relationships, and Hemingway’s representation of
Catherine, he emphasized Catherine’s influence on Frederic’s development and raised
questions, which invited the class to think beyond either simplistic sexist resolutions or
even typically feminist ones. He did not deny Hemingway’s sexism. In fact, he had
283
argued previously that Catherine was “endlessly self- effacing, tirelessly available and
continually sacrificing” human being. But, he did ask the class to look at Catherine as a
character whose submissiveness emanated not from a place of weakness, but from a
place of strength. He suggested that Catherine, after much loss, had prioritized love and
devotion to her lover over all else, in the face of war and a malevolent world. He
suggested that what looked like a sexist portrayal, might be the portrayal of a woman
having reached an evolved state of consciousness that allowed her to transcend
reductive sex role stereotypes.
Charles thought that the professor “was giving Hemingway too much credit” and
explained that he saw Catherine more as a subservient than as a ‘Super woman’ evolved
into ideal womanhood. He argued that her portrayal more likely reflected Hemingway’s
fantasy about how a woman should be. Dale agreed. Ellen, however, agreed with the
professor and resisted the idea that Catherine was weak. She went to the text to explain
that Catherine showed her strength in the beginning when she called a halt to their
mutual game which substituted either fantasy or need for love, and insisted he not lie to
her. She also pointed out that Catherine influenced Frederic more than Frederic
influenced her.
Like the professor and Charles, Ellen also challenged Fetterley’s (1978) idea
that A Farewell to Arms is one more example of a male-authored classic that uses the
deaths of women to tell men’s stories. While Charles argued again that Fetterley’s
(1978) approach applied today’s standards to yesterday’s literature, Ellen argued against
Fetterley’s (1978) position that “the investment of this love story, like so many others,
is not in the life of the beloved but in her death, and in the emotional rewards the hero
gets from that death” (p. 48). Reacting similarly to the way in which Marie had reacted
to Fetterley’s (1978) critique of The Great Gatsbv. Ellen said:
284
I really can't stand the feminist point, I think it is silly. The author is telling a story about a guy. I f he needs something t o . . . another person to describe this guy. then, that is what he is going to do. I think it is insane that Fetterley is saying she is being used. Of course she is being used.This is about Fred. I mean. Renaldi was used to describe Fred, and so was the priest. So. I think it is silly. But. I can understand what she is saying.I can.
When asked why she could understand, she said that
I just think it is insane first o f all that she is throwing th a t out. just because she is trying to find a feminist issue with the book. But. I can understand, yes. she is being used to describe Frederic.
My immediate response to Ellen was to assume that she and many of the
students did not understand Fetterley’s (1978) critiques of Gatsby and A Farewell to
Arms in terms of the feminist tradition of which her work was but an example. They
were unaware of the feminist project begun by women such as Ellmann (1968),
Kblodny (1977), Millett (1969), Rich (1979), and Showaiter (1977) to enlighten men
and women about the limitations of male-authored representations of women in
literature. These early feminists reacted to the realization that “neither those women nor
any women whose acquaintance [they] had made in fiction, had much to do with the life
[they] led or wanted to lead” (Edwards, 1972 p. xxii). They wanted to look back and
engage in a textual revision (Rich, 1979) and re-enter old texts from a critical direction.
They wanted to “wrench the reader from the vantage point he has long occupied, and
force him to look at life and letters from a new coign” (Heilbrun in Fetterley, p. xviii).
Because the students were not familiar with this history, my thought was that
they did not have Fetterley in the proper context. I agreed with Ellen that writers
always used’ both men and women to tell their stories. But, I wanted the students to
know that Fetterley was simply part of a long line of women who rebelled against the
fact that women had, more often than not, been mere facilitators for, or barriers to,
men’s desires in literature. She was also part of a tradition of women who rebelled
285
against the fact that as readers women had been “taught to think as men, to identify with
a male point of view, and to accept as normal and legitimate a male system of values,
one of whose central principles is misogyny” (Fetterley, 1978, p. xx). More than
wanting Ellen to agree with Fetterley or accept her or my version of reality or regime of
truth (Lather, 1991), I wanted her and the other students to reflect on the problem that
these female critics were addressing. So, I helped to put Fetterley into a context, by
giving them some background on the feminist literary tradition of which she was a part.
In addition, I wanted them to consider the danger I saw in the professor’s ideas
for them at this time. While I saw his ideas as an intriguing invitation for a
transcendence of constricting definitions of masculinity and femininity (Butler, 1991;
Moi, 1988), I saw problems there too, for young high school students unfamiliar with
even the basics of feminist thought. On the one hand, I do believe in the limitations of
sex role stereotypes, whether on one side of the argument or the other, and I do think
that the ultimate call is to transcend these limiting roles on both sides. However, that
cannot be an argument used to dismiss real and legitimate evidence of sexism and
androcentrism in literature or in life. The fact that Catherine is strong does not mean
that Hemingway hasn't represented yet another woman whose deference to her man is
annoying to most women readers. And, without enough experience recognizing some
of the androcentrism, I was concerned that his perspective would simply justify
students’ resistance, and cause them to dismiss the ways in which women have been and
continue to be subjugated in and out of literature. I was afraid that this would be one
more reason for most of them to mistrust their own instincts that Catherine was
submissive and not strong, and mistrust the validity of their own misrecognition scenes
(Bogdan, 1992; Brown and Gilligan, 1992). Transcendence would come later, after their
consciousnesses had been raised to see the stereotypes and sexist representations.
286
In attempting to work through Ellen’s resistance to Fetterley (1978) and to
address my own efforts to liberate her and others from the traditional ways, laws,
discourses, narratives and literary representations subordinating them, I came face to
face with Foucault’s (1977) warning of “the violence of a position that sides against
those who are happy in their ignorance, against the effective illusions by which
humanity protects itself” (p. 162). Not only was Ellen happy with her position, but she
was also not at all conscious o f any problem with it. Furthermore, her strength of
personality and character, not to mention her desire for and ability to control, seemed to
ensure that she would not be an easy victim of either an abusive man or o f life in
general. In addition, those friends and family members who share her philosophical,
religious and cultural base backed up her ideas. I asked myself, “Why did I have a
problem if she didn’t? What right did I have to disrupt her paradigm?”
After some examination of my own motives, I concluded that there was some
good reason to disrupt her paradigm. I was troubled by what I saw as a too easy
categorization of women as the ‘keepers of morality,’ which let men off the hook by
means of the myth that men are less responsible for and less capable of sexual control
than are women. I was also concerned by her resistance to laws such as the Family
Leave Act, which opens the door for men and women to care for children and families
simply because in her mind, childrearing is a woman’s job. Finally, I was concerned
about her assumption’ that women should be the sole caretakers of the kids, and about
her acceptance of the continuation of a sexist division of labor because of the inherent
implication that men are not responsible for the domestic realm. This sort o f belief
system is what allows a movie like Step Mom to work in contemporary America.
In addition, I was worried that the existence of some professional women in the
workplace cancelled out any concern about the current wage gap, the glass ceiling, the
absence of women in government, the emphasis on girls’ beauty and weight in our
287
culture, and the staggering statistics on eating disorders, rape, and spousal abuse. I was
also troubled by her equating of feminine strength of character with traditional notions
of feminine wiles, long practiced by subordinates who, like Catherine, manipulated
mates into behaving as they wished “In this very sweet way.” I resisted her desire to
control without seeming to control. I saw it as a revelation that her gender identity is
being constituted by Walkerdine's (1984) “some day my prince will come” storyline
promoting a continuation of a tradition that promotes inequality between the sexes. I
saw it as a revelation that she may only be comfortable with an indirect kind of power
for women at this time, the kind of power that must look like it is not power to be ok,
the kind of power that pretends to be weakness to be acceptable, and is masked by a
sweet facade. I was troubled because this kind masking of power also masks an
underlying need to bolster male egos by ‘playing’ a subservient role when one may or
may not feel or actually be subservient.
As I struggled to construct just the right conversation, provide just the right tale
of personal subordination, or make just the right pedagogical decision to successfully
lead Ellen and others out what seemed to me to be a cave of darkness, and into the light
of consciousness of gender inequality, I was also troubled. I suddenly remembered my
own initial experience with feminism. I remembered my experience resisting what
Harding (1986) has called the “master’s position of formulating a totalizing discourse”
(p. 193), which essentially set out to reproduce the conceptual map of the teacher in the
mind of the student. This substitution of feminist reifications for those of the dominant
culture had struck me then as an example of what Freire (1973) had termed the
“banking concept of education” where authoritarian talk shuts down communication,
even if it is done in the name of liberation (Lather, 1991). When 1 was a student, this
recipe approach to knowledge had effectively demonstrated my ignorance and
dismissed my legitimate ideas and experience as “false consciousnesses.” 1 did not
288
want to repeat this treatment with my own students. I was aware of Acker, Barry and
Essevold’s (1983) warning that “an emancipatory intent is no guarantee of an
emancipatory outcome” (p. 431).
My experience with Ellen heightened the tension that I had experienced at a
lower level all along, as I attempted to balance my desire to value individual
empowerment of students and my goal to work toward the transformation of society. I
wanted to construct classroom relations that would engender fresh confrontation with
values and meaning. I wanted a pedagogical approach that would allow us to analyze
the discourses available to us. I did not want a pedagogy that would become a site for
the working through of more effective transmission strategies “but, for helping us learn
to analyze the discourses available to us, which ones we are invested in, [and] how we
are inscribed by the dominant” (Lather, 1991, p. 143). I struggled with questions such
as “How can I avoid imposing my beliefs but still ‘problematize’ areas of consensus
belief grounded in the habitual thinking of the past”; “How can I foster an exploration
of issues in a setting free of slogans and predetermined answers, and still lead students
toward a consciousness of their situations in the world”; “How can I respect students’
points of view and still lead them to correct the distortion and the invisibility of female
experience in ways relevant to ending women’s unequal social position?” (p. 71- 72).
Specifically, I had a respect for Ellen as a person and as a representative of her culture.
But, I had a corresponding desire to keep her and others from deceiving themselves into
thinking that hiding one’s power is a good thing for women or for men.
To provide some answer to my dilemma, I attempted to draw from Dewey’s
transactionalism, which posits that “the consideration of conflicting claims and views is
not only right but personally and collectively enriching” (Dewey in Rosenblatt, 1978). I
also drew from resistance theorists like Giroux, who argue against dismissing student
resistances as false consciousnesses and who promote an exploration of what the
289
resistances have to teach us about impositionial tendencies. According to resistance
theory, “without conscious and active engagement with the content of young people's
resistance, teaching is bound to reproduce more than it transforms” (Lister, 1986, p. 31).
In an attempt, then, to “maximize a dialogic, dialectically educative encounter
between researcher and researched” (Lather, 1991, p. 70), I engaged Ellen and the
others in a dialogue through which I tried to encourage a reflexivity and critique on both
our parts to investigate not only their responses to Fetterley and me, but also their
responses to the university professor about Catherine. I decided to put my
indoctrinative teaching on hold, and entertain a “Bakhtinian dialogic carnival”
(Scheurich, 1996) and “call forth a loud clamor of polyphonic, open, tumultuous
conversation . . . “ (p. 10). I reminded myself that my goal was to facilitate the
exploration of issues, and not to insist on a regurgitation of my ideas. I also reminded
myself that I was hoping to develop a pedagogy which, as Harper (2000) recommended,
would be suitable “for the interrogation demanded by feminist emancipatory work” (p.
166). I wanted an approach, which would emphasize investigation of and negotiation
with the literature, not indoctrination. To further increase my opportunity for a deeper
probing and reciprocally educative encounter, I followed Lather’s (1991) advice. I
continued our classroom conversations in sequential individual and group interviews
"conducted in the interactive, dialogic manner that entails self disclosure on the part of
the researcher to foster a sense of collaboration” (p. 84). This approach also followed
the recommendations of Cherland (1994), who observed that a pedagogy that had
minimized the occurrences of gendered response was one that involved collaboration.
She argued that because collaborative investigations o f texts require close textual
reading, they provide a forum for multiple readings of texts and an opportunity for
students to think critically about texts.
290
Following this open approach, I also encouraged Ellen in the writing of her
paper, to explore her ideas as they had been informed by the professor and Fetterley.
Writing
Ellen did not change her ideas through the writing of the paper, and, she did not
adopt any o f Fetterley's (1978) ideas. She was, however, able to use the text to
investigate some of the professor’s ideas to support her own ideas about Catherine’s
strength, the ways in which she served as a vehicle for Frederic’s growth, and the deep
love that Frederic came to have for her in the end. In her paper, she showed how
Frederic grew from a man initially resistant to a love commitment, through the denial of
his growing attachment to Catherine, and to an acceptance of his deep love for her. She
used the early discussion that the professor had read to the class to illustrate Catherine’s
strength when she called Frederic on the game they were playing.
After having attempted to recapture her intimacy with her dead lover through
Frederic, and realizing that he was using her to avoid the whorehouse, she called a halt
to their pretense that they were in love.
“This is a rotten game we play isn’t it?”
“What game?”
“Don’t be dull.”
“I’m not, on purpose.”
“You’re a nice boy,” she said. “And you play it as well as you know how, but it’s a rotten game.”
“Do you always know what people think? ”
“Not always but I do with you. You don’t have to pretend you love me.That’s over for the evening.” (Hemingway, 1929, 30-31)
She saw this scene as indicative of Catherine’s strength, ending her fantasy of replacing
her dead fiancé with Frederic. Ellen pointed out in her paper that here in this segment,
Hemingway (1969/1929) has established Catherine as the more powerful one. She also
291
used a later passage to support her point that Catherine led Frederic beyond an inability
to engage intimately, through his denial of his growing attachment to Catherine, beyond
his dreadful night loneliness and fear and to a mature love with Catherine. She quoted
Hemingway (1969/1929):
Often a man wishes to be alone and a girl wishes to be alone too and if they love each other they are jealous o f that in each other, but I can truly say we never felt that. We could feel alone when we were together, alone against the others. It has only happened to me like that once. I have been alone while I was with many girls and that is the way that you can be most lonely. But we were never lonely and never afraid when we were together. I know that the night is not the same as the day: that all things are different, that the things o f the night cannot be explained in the day, because they do not then exist, and the night can be a dreadful time for lonely people once their loneliness has started. But, with Catherine there was almost no difference in the night except that it was an even better time (p. 249).
She also used Catherine’s dying words to support her thesis that Catherine, seemingly
taking her situation in stride, was actually very strong.
H
Social Imagination Final Project
Because Ellen “understands visuals
better than anything verbal or
written,” for her final project, she
continued her exploration of this
novel by creating a road map of A
Farewell to Arms. She chose to
incorporate certain aspects of the
book: People that Frederic met, the
places that he
Figure 52: Ellen’s Road Map
292
traveled to or through, events that made the story, and quotes that retold the story in the
map.
Originally planned as a children’s activity rug, the road map complete with stop
signs, locations, and intersections from the story, symbolized Frederic’s life the people
and places that were a part of it. The main street represented Frederic on his own; the
left side of the map was reserved for Frederic’s army life; the right side was reserved for
Catherine.
By releasing her imagination (Greene, 1995) and converting the book into a
visual, Ellen was able to “break open a dimension inaccessible to other experience . . .
[to] make perceptible, visible, and audible that which is . . . not yet perceived, said, and
heard in everyday life (Marcuse in Greene, p. 72). This visual display allowed her to
become more conscious of the logistical and symbolic divide between the ‘life as
horrific' war backdrop and the idyllic ‘love as retreat’ alternative which Catherine
invited him to choose. The life that she established, based on the values of gentleness,
tenderness and union with another human being emphasized the stark opposition to the
war experience and to Frederic’s initial resistance to mature love. Ellen’s map allowed
her to visually represent the opportunities for peace and love that Catherine’s strength
offered Frederic. The circuit that the roads formed, however, also illustrated Frederic’s
ability, for a while, to move back and forth between these lives. Through the map, she
illustrated Phelan’s (1989) idea that “to move, as Frederic does to life with Catherine, to
life on the front, is to move from a world of tenderness and gentleness to a world of
impersonal violence and destruction’’ (p. 177) and eventually back again to Catherine.
At the end of the class, I had not made a feminist of Ellen. She confessed that
while she became aware of gender issues in my class, her consciousness disappeared as
soon as the class was over. She continued to engage enthusiastically, however, in our
investigations of the literature to come, and offered much to the focus group’s
293
understanding of particular characters and stories, as we shall see later in the chapter.
One final drama activity, however, engaged students in playing a role reversal of
Frederic and Catherine in two significant scenes which students had thought portrayed
Catherine as extraordinarily submissive. I engaged the focus group in this activity to
see if when Frederic spoke Catherine’s lines, students would become more aware of
Hemingway’s questionable portrayal of women and the roles that we have grown
comfortable with them playing
Scene I
Catherine: What’s the matter, darling?
Frederic: I’ve never felt like a whore before.
Catherine: You’re not a whore.
Frederic: I know it darling, but it isn’t nice to feel like one.
Catherine: This was the best hotel we could get in. (Thinking). Oh, hell, do we have to argue now?
Frederic: (the flatness out of his voice) Come over here please. I ’m a good boy again.
Narrator: She looked over at the bed. He was smiling.
Scene 2
Frederic: I will. I’ll say just what you wish and I’ll do what you wish and then you will never want any other boys, will you? I’ll do what you want and say what you wish and then you will never want any other boys, will you? I’ll do what you want and say what you want and then I’ll be a great success, won’t I?
Catherine: Yes.
Frederic: What would you like me to do now that you’re all ready?
Catherine: Come to the bed again.
Frederic: All right. I’ll come
Catherine: Oh darling, darling, darling.
Frederic: You see. I’ll do anything you want.
294
Catherine: You’re so handsome.
Frederic: I’m afraid I’m not very good at it yet.
Catherine: You’re great looking.
Frederic: I want what you want. There isn’t any me anymore. Just what you want.
Catherine: You’re sweet
Frederic: I’m good, aren't’ I? You don't want any other boys, do you?
Catherine: No.
Frederic: You see. I’m good. I do what you want
Catherine: Yes
Frederic: We have such a fine time. I don’t take any interest in anything else anymore. I am so happy married to you.
The students roared laughing at these role reversals, and many of them were very
conscious after they were acted out, that Catherine’s submissive behavior was more
submissive than they thought it was before they had watched and heard a man behaving
in this manner. Ellen's response revealed that she rejected such behavior in a man, but
her remark that “when Catherine was submissive, it worked,” seemed to reveal that she
was still comfortable with Catherine 'pl^yirig the submissive role.
The gender reversal was way too strange. I t was funny, but, in th e book, when Catherine was submissive, it worked much better. I guess I'm just not used to having/hearing a man be so submissive. It's definitely something that I can stand, but it's strange. In secrecy, a man like that wouldn't stand, but a woman could.
Reflections
With Ellen, I was faced with the kind of resistance to my feminist approach that
I found most challenging, and most difficult to address: a resistance based not only in an
ideology of another culture, but a resistance based in a contentment with the status quo.
To complicate matters, her view of women’s place in the world was supported by her
295
ability to see Catherine, not as the weak, deferential female so many readers saw, but as
a strong heroine. The question then, which is raised by Hemingway and Fitzgerald,
about the male’s ability to realistically or appropriately represent the female, becomes a
moot point for Ellen.
Though we presented her class with a background explaining how women had
been essentially relegated to secondary or synthetic roles, which allowed the male story
to be told, she resisted Fetterley’s argument that Catherine was used to demonstrate
Frederic's development. Instead, she adopted the university professor’s idea that what
looked like her weakness, was really her ability to prioritize, and she rejected the
feminist position.
The experience with Ellen was educative for me in that I came face to face with
a troublesome element of a critical theorist approach, and that was to remember the
importance of respecting the student’s position and resistance.
HOWARD (PJVI.)
Whereas Ellen reported that her second and third readings of A Farewell to
Arms convinced her more and more o f Catherine’s strength, rather than the weakness
she had initially seen, Howard claimed that his second reading had just the opposite
effect. It made him see Catherine, not as stronger, but as more and more subservient.
In the beginning, he hadn’t noticed that “she was a ditz’’ because he felt that she dealt
well with her boyfriend’s death, and he was always surprised by how much other
classmates hated her. After his second reading however, he realized how submissive
she really was. “She needed to be a lot more independent to be equal,” he said. “She
needed to respect not just Frederic but herself.” As the study of A Farewell To Arms
went on. he saw her as more and more submissive and pathetic, and he began to make
connections between Catherine and Maria in For Whom The Bell Tolls, which he was
296
reading at the time. For his final project, he constructed a three-way radio conversation
between himself, Gertrude Stein and Ernest Hemingway, wherein they discuss, among
other things, the women’s groups that are protesting Catherine’s subservience and loss
of self to Frederic.
Howard is definitely a young man who is conscious of gender stereotyping in
our culture and the ways in which the media have contributed to the creation of and the
reproduction of those stereotypes. As a young man in our culture, he is sensitive to the
ways in which the male stereotype has been drawn, and, as he says, “it is not something
I want to attain as a goal.’’ He does not, at this point, feel comfortable with the gender
role that he believes the society has constructed for him to play. He says
'AAen' is almost a derogatory term nowadays. I often hear, “Oh, he's just a man," “ or "men suck," or “'men' seem to be egotistical, unfriendly jerks in movies and TV and magazines." The magazine AAaxim says at the top, SEX, MOVIES, SPORTS, BEER, etc. This is all men' are concerned with.
In general, he feels that he is rebellious about the role he feels that he is
conditioned to play. He feels that to change the way men are viewed, he needs to do all
that he can to change it by rebelling against the status quo. He acts the rebellion’ out
by being nice and caring and concerned with people and not being focused on SEX,
BEER, MOVIES, etc. Luckily he finds that a guy not acting like a ‘man’ pleasantly
surprises people. Consequently, he has many female friends. In general, he likes the
way he has turned out, especially when he looks at some ‘men’ and thinks about how he
could have turned out.
Actually, Howard has many friends of both sexes. And, he gets along with
adults as well as with kids his own age. He is extremely well-liked by students, and, he
is respected and liked by the staff who say that he is diligent and smart,’ ‘well
respected’ and mature.’ Others say he has wide interests, and “is able to get along with
all kinds of kids.” He is very successful at school, is active in scouts and camping,
297
enjoys film and reading, and is an extremely talented oboe player. For his senior
internship he worked with the conductor of the metropolitan symphony orchestra.
Howard has lived in the town for twelve years and has attended district schools
since kindergarten. He is Jewish and describes himself as religious, with a belief
system that is typical o f his religion. He lives with his mom, who is a nurse, and his
dad, a professor, and his younger brother who is also a student at the school. Howard,
who describes himself as heterosexual, has a girlfriend, and came and left the class with
positive ideas about feminism and marriage. He would like to have a family of his own
when he is older and settled. He remembers his parents both integrating the cooking
and other household chores with child rearing and a professional work life. In fact,
because of their equal commitment to the family and their careers, there might have
been sacrifices made with respect to careers. There were many opportunities for
advancement that were turned down in order to stay in the town for the sake of the
family. He says that he has inherited leadership qualities and an interest in education,
but he does not know what career he would like to pursue at this point. He will attend
college in the fall of 2000.
While Howard was usually quiet in class, he was very affected by everything
that went on. Often his reactions to the literature and the class discussions were written
and not verbal reactions. He is a very talented writer whose papers were always
carefully constructed with a great deal of thought, effort, and insight. In addition, he
claims to have been affected by much of the philosophy that came through many of the
novels, short stories and essays we read. He is involved in a relationship with a girl
right now and says, “ it was interesting to compare the literary views of relationship and
love and dating and marriage to his own relationship.” He had reached the point that
Hines (1997) and Rogers (1997 had been working toward in their studies in having
adapted some of the ideas that came through the literature to his own life. He takes his
298
books very seriously. He was the student who, in the earlier discussion of Washington
Square was recommending the book to his female friends who seemed to be too
dependent on their boyfriends.
He finds himself and his contemporaries at an interesting place in history with
regard to gender issues, with the challenge to be politically correct having a huge
influence on people attempting to balance masculine and feminine traits. He thinks that
having a balanced personality “means being able to recognize when to use the
traditional masculine characteristics and the traditional feminine characteristics . . . not
being one hundred percent in one or the other direction, but trying to achieve a happy
medium.” He is uncertain about how nurture and nature factor into all of this. He
thinks that hormones do play a part, but that much of it is enculturated because he thinks
that at this point in time, teenagers have done a good job at reaching a happy medium.
He expressed some discouragement that leadership positions are still going to men even
though women's roles and stereotypes have been changed for this generation because of
the women’s movement. People were saying when Elizabeth Dole ran that “maybe we
were ready,’ he said. But we weren’t. “Things are still limited, “ he says. “I mean, look
how long it took to get women on the Supreme Court . . . a long time.” He seems to
have found the model for masculinity, which Martino (1995) had striven to bring about
in his own classroom of boys. To challenge hegemonic positions and dismantle the
patriarchal disposition that construct the world in binary terms, he selected texts that
was critical of the workings of hegemonic positions of masculinity (Martino, 1995).
Like every other student surveyed in these two classes, Howard had not had any
educational experience learning about gender issues in literature or life, or stereotypes
in the media. Even without a formal education, however, Howard has learned to pick
up on the stereotyping that is done in ads and on sitcoms such as “Friends.” He says
that it is subtle, though, and easily missed when you simply see some of these things as
299
part of the plot. For example, in Friends, “you see a plot twist instead of seeing a
representation of a typical or not typical male characteristic. And, he says that he thinks
they use the stereotypical gender qualities to further the plot and develop the characters.
“You don’t really see deep emotional characters on either end, especially in sitcoms,
because those kinds of characters are not funny.”
Howard’s favorite characters of the semester were Gatsby and Nick, He also
liked Janie Crawford in Their Eves Were Watching God, which was his favorite book.
He liked Nick because, while he was a bystander, he was extremely important because
he was the glue. “He connected everything,” he said. “If it were not for Nick, there
wouldn’t have been a story. He attributes this not only to the fact that he was the
narrator, but also to the fact that he brought Gatsby and Daisy together. “His role and
the dynamics of the story was what I found really cool. He was an interesting person in
himself.”
Howard was also fascinated with “The Gentle Lena.” He was the only one in
either of the two classes who shared my view that “the story was a metaphor. ” He
described the writing as a deliberate attempt on Stein’s part to create stereotypes in
order to prevent them. He said that reading A Farewell to Arms after “The Gentle
Lena ” also alerted him to the ultra femininity of Catherine and masculinity of Frederic.
He thinks that Catherine Barkley shared some of the undesirable traits of Catherine
Sloper that made her dependent on men. Janie Crawford was, in his opinion, the only
female character who didn’t have ^Catherine Sloperitis.'
Written Responses
The initial written reactions from girls were focused on Catherine. She was
’’very dippy,” a ditz,’ ’strange and eccentric,’ ‘flaky and distant,’ ‘very unrealistic’ and
messed up in the head.’ Only one girl in the class initially attributed her craziness to
300
her pain resulting from the loss of her lover. Another responded at length to the way
Catherine erased herself in deference to Frederic, saying:
She didn't let her real opinions be known to Fredric, so he didn't really know her real personality, so he couldn't have loved the real Catherine. Catherine herself seemed to lose any dignity she ever had by letting all of her decisions be made by another human being, especially her 'husband.' Whatever he wanted was what she wanted. Instead of the two becoming a couple, she just became Frederic's appendage.
Interestingly, the boys’ initial reactions were very different from the girls.’
Most boys in the class reacted to her as ‘nice and sincere,’ ’interesting,’ and ‘confused,’
and one boy thought she was ”an unrealistic girl who would be very hard to relate to.”
Despite the negative response to the female protagoaist, however, all of the students
liked the novel immensely and found it a welcomed relief from the works of James,
Stein, and even Fitzgerald. At the time of its reading, it was the favorite of all of the
books they had read up until then.Discussion
The discussion erupted with reactions to Catherine. The students were generally
appalled by Catherine’s personality. Marie was the first to speak up, with no prompting
from either Margaret or me. This was the first time in either class that any student had
complained about the subservience and submissiveness of a female character without
any help or any prodding from us. It began a conversation, which illustrated the girls’
struggle to relate to Catherine.
Marie: Why do you pick all of these books where the women are all so strange?
Pot: The reason I picked all the books is because I thought they were the most famous authors of the time between 1900 and 1940, and they all had a relationship at the center of the story.
Marie: Well, like Hemingway has written so many things, and are all the women . . . all o f his books incoherent?
Pot: That is a great question. What does that mean?
301
Marie: None of the women are normal. These are not normal women they are writing about. The men are fairly normal. You actually might find men like this. But the women are extrem e and they are silly and they are all weird.
The other girls then erupted in agreement. Brenda said Catherine was ‘weird,'
and that she started out normal enough but they got really strange. She claimed that in
the beginning, she actually had some views. She knew what the war was about, and she
was “kinda still there.” She claimed that she turned weird after she and Frederic got
together. “She falls. She does whatever he wants. Maybe she is just trying to get away
from reality, but she turns weird.” When I asked her to get more specific, she cited
passages from the text where Catherine repeatedly calls Frederic ‘darling’ and becomes
ditzy and day dreamy. Brenda pointed out that when Catherine first met Frederic she
had a handle on reality, but then after they were together, “she just cares about nothing
except what she and he do together. . . she is willing to block out the rest of the world.”
Pat: Marie, was that what you were talking about when you said the women were weird and not like women now?
Marie: I am saying th at th e women ore just abstract and far-fetched and unbelievable. There are not really people who are like that.
Pat: In what way?
Hillary: Well, when they were in th e hotel and she was upset because he was about to go back to the front. She is upset and he asks her what is wrong and she says 'no, no, no no.' And then she says, 'I'm a good girl now. I'm good now." Like what in the world? And. she keeps doing this dramatic thing and then falls into this willingness to agree with anything he thinks or feels or says or anything.
Pat: Is that what you are seeing too, Kelley?
Kelley: That's exactly what I picked up. That "I'm a good girl" just about drove me crazy Always saying darling' and I'm a good girl now.' She wanted him to love her so much she didn't care if she sounded like a babbling idiot. As long as he was happy, she acted happy.
302
Marie: It's kind of blatant. I mean, from the way that she sounds, I think she is seriously mentally unstable.
Pat: What is this about?
Kelley: I have no idea, but she was just so air headed.
In spite of it all, the students liked the book, and reiterated that sentiment in the
discussion. Richard particularly loved the book because of his interest in the war and
because “it made him want to keep reading.” He liked everything: the characters, the
relationships and the subject matter o f war. Hillary liked the book because it was “easy
to read” as compared with the difficulty that James’ style in Washington Square had
presented for her. She claimed that “When 1 read A Farewell To Arms. 1 was more
connected to the characters because I could understand them better and the writing was
more simple.” Kelley agreed that she could hardly wait to finish the book. Humorously
comparing the novel to Gertrude Stein’s work, she said, “yeah, it is a good book. It
goes fast, and it has a plot and a beginning and an end and it moves on. It is not
continuously the same thing being restated and restated over and over again.”
Discussion/Literarv Criticism
My challenge was to further develop the ability that 1 saw in Howard and the
others, to see the literature’s capacity for negative influence and, at the same time,
maintain an ability to sustain an engaged response. 1 thought that by inviting the
university professor into their class to introduce them to his analysis of Hemingway’s
narrative structure, and to Fetterley’s (1978) criticism of the novel, that 1 might be able
to lead the students in this class toward a more unified appreciation of the novel. 1
hoped that this would fuse their pre-critical engagement, with an awareness of both the
processes and the political implications involved with Hemingway’s production and
their reception of the novel. 1 hoped
303
As was the case in the other class, the professor introduced the students to a
narrative approach to the novel, and focused on Hemingway’s portrayal of Frederic as a
narrator who develops over the course of the work. He argued that he develops from an
insensitive young man to a mature man who is able to come to grips with love, as well
as some of the harsher realities of life. He felt that investigation of the progression of
the novel would, most likely, result in a clearer understanding of Hemingway’s point.
His introduction was followed by a lively discussion, similar to the one in the morning
class, about whether Catherine was submissive, or quietly strong, moving Frederic
along in his bildungsroman.
Following the professor’s class, I shared Fetterley’s (1978) critique on A
Farewell to Arms with the students to stimulate the dialogic negotiation o f the text.
Interestingly, while Ellen had resisted Fetterley’s perspective so strongly in the morning
class, Howard had the opposite reaction. He found Fetterley’s feminist literary criticism
the most educational of the pedagogical approaches used throughout the entire course,
saying that “the discussion of Fetterley’s (1978) criticism gave [him] a new way of
thinking about how women had frequently been portrayed in literature.” Initially, when
studying The Great Gatsbv. though he had seen her point, and had been interested, but
he had not been able to grasp it completely. But, after considering it further during the
study of A Farewell to Arms, he admitted that Fetterley’s essays on Hemingway and
Fitzgerald literally shed a new light on a perspective that he had never thought about
before. It took him a while to get there, he said, because he had always thought about
characters and plot when he read stories and saw characters as real, living beings.
It was the professor’s focus on the authorial point of view and structural
decisions that seemed to pave the way for Howard’s eventual comprehension and final
embrace of Fetterley’s ideas. Until the workshop, he had not focused quite as closely
on an author’s part in the process of creating a novel, and the distinctions between
304
author, narrator and characters. He was still involved in reading primarily for the plot.
He had appreciated Fetterley’s views on The Great Gatsbv. but was convinced of them
after our work on the narrative structure of A Farewell To Arms. After the professor
invited him to work through Hemingway’s character and plot structure, it was made
clear in a new way to Howard that “these characters came from one person’s mind,’ and
that an author had created all of their thoughts/actions. “I guess I was naive to think
otherwise,” he said. “I suppose I always knew on some level, of course, that literature
was written by someone, but I never thought of it that way.”
When he read Fetterley’s (1978) critique on A Farewell to Arms, the transition
from addressing Hemingway’s character development, to seeing the implications of
ideology on that development, was an easy step for Howard to make. He had initially
been hesitant to accept Fetterley’s points during the study of The Great Gatsbv because
at that point, he was still only aware of himself as a part of a narrative audience. And,
even though we had previously introduced Rabinowitz’ (1987) theories, played with
James's artistry in Washington Square, and had discussed Fitzgerald’s project with The
Great Gatsby. he had still not been able to fully see narrators and characters as
constructs. He had also reacted against Fetterley (1978), at first, because looking at a
book the way that she did, represented for him, in some way, the end of his reading
innocence. “Fetterley’s point seems to take some of the imagination and fun out of
reading the books,” he said.
When he was finally able to participate in an authorial reading, and then step
from there into the resisting audience that Fetterley occupied and recommended, he was
able to see Hemingway as a writer, limited by his own and his culture’s understanding
of women. He was also able to see Catherine as a possible result o f that enculturation.
He was also able to bring some of the ‘fun’ back into the study of the literature by
means of the narrative approach. He no longer had to sacrifice a full response to the
305
novel to address its sexism. Before the class with the professor, he felt that a feminist
criticism demanded that he “break the contract designed by an intending author who
invites his or her audience to adopt certain paradigms for understanding reality” (Foley,
1986 in Rabinowitz, 1987, p.23). After help with the narrative approach, it was easier
for him to appreciate a critical perspective. For, as Rabinowitz (1987) pointed out, a
critical reading without an understanding of the authorial audience is often incomplete
(p. 32). It results in the need to either claim Fetterley’s feminine universal truth over a
masculine one, or the need to put ideology on hold for aesthetic enjoyment (Kolodny,
1985). In either event, without narrative theory, Howard would only have been able to
experience what Bogdan (1990, 1992) has called ‘a partial response’ that seeks
separation from not and not eventual reunion with the literary object.
By integrating an authorial reading with the critical feminist one, however,
Howard was no longer able to see Catherine as ‘a real person.’ He could only see her as
Hemingway’s unconscious sexist portrayal of a synthetic character (Phelan, 1989)
whose life and behavior were constructed to provide a learning experience for Frederic
about the ways of the world and the ways of love. Howard was now able to explore the
contradiction between the authorial audience and the critic (Rabinowitz, 1987). He was
able to “make a distinction between what [Hemingway] wanted to see and what he
really did see” (p. 31), and engage in the fun’ of “know [ing] the text as it cannot know
itself’ (Eagleton, in Rabinowitz, 1987, p. 44). By bringing these things together,
Howard was beginning to be able to “close the metaphysical, epistemological,
psychological, and pedagogical gap between critical analysis and literary experience”
(Bogdan, 1992, p. 191). By focusing on the work as an artist’s construct as well as a
story, he avoided a split response to the literature by mediating the political critique and
a direct emotional response with an appreciation of Hemingway’s artistry within a
particular cultural paradigm.
306
Furthermore, his ability to analyze the structure of a work and see it as a cultural
construct, would enable him to distinguish between a writer unconsciously imbedded in
the sexism or androcentrism of his time, and one (James) whose work “demonstrates
that somehow the sexist injustice done “is effectively criticized by the work itself’
(Booth, 1988, p. 390).
In my opinion, Howard was on his way toward being able to resolve the
‘misrecognition scene’ with Catherine by means of an ability to approach the work from
a critical distance that combined direct response with narrative theory and feminist
criticism. In the end, Howard read as a simultaneous member of a narrative audience,
which treats the fictional action as real (Phelan, 1996); he read as a member of an
authorial audience, which treats the text as the author wished (Booth, 1988); and he read
as a member of a critical feminist audience, which treats the text with a consciousness
of any offending ideologies. He was participating with the literature as a piece of art
and as a political force.
Writing
Writing the papers allowed Howard and some other students to articulate the
judgments they made about Hemingway’s representation of Catherine and the other
women in the text. This showed me that my attempt to bring their attention to a
feminist pedagogy was enriched by including writing and composition as a vehicle for
transformative education (Harper, 2000, p .164). The girls’ responses indicated the
change of emphasis from their early responses, which focused on the characters, to
these later ones, which addressed Hemingway’s portrayal of the characters:
What I do not understand is the way Hemingway portrays Catherine. He made Catherine a ditzy girl who was just crazy about a guy from the first time she meets him and he made her sound like a fool.
A Farewell to Arms is a great American novel and I really enjoyed it on many levels. I am not sure why Hemingway chose to view women as he did here?
307
Hemingway’s treatment of women throughout this book is a very sex ist and chauvinistic portrayal of women. He suggests that they will make you sick and are only good for pleasuring a man. When they show any sign of authority, he puts them down as frustrated women who cannot get a man.There is an underlying contempt for women. Soldiers view women as sex objects and resent women who are not presented as love objects. He blows th e head nurse o ff os on old frustrated maiden who denies everyone else their pleasures because she has none.
One of the boys in the class shared some of the girls’ attitudes. He stated that
the “the overall attitude, shown through various scenes and dialogue, included a genuine
hostility toward women. He claimed that the Italian doctors repeatedly treated the
British nurses as sex objects, and that Catherine was presented from the beginning as
'inconsistent' and ‘a little crazy.’ He gave other examples of the hostility. He cited the
soldiers’ hostile joking about the 'price of the meat’ of the whores; the negative, sexist
treatment of women in authority; Frederic’s patronizing attitude toward the night nurse;
Rinaldi’s focus on Catherine’s sexual prowess; and Hemingway’s focus on Frederic’s
pain and not Catherine’s at her own death. Howard’s responses brought his authorial,
narrative and critical feminist readings together for a unified reading of the novel which
included a textual analysis of Hemingway’s craft informed by his consideration of
Fetterley’s claims. He began with an interpretation of Hemingway’s depiction of
Frederic’s growth and development from an emotionally handicapped, insensitive
young man, to a mature one who comes to terms with the awesome realities of war and
death and love.
Howard’s critical paper illustrated the realizations he had made about how the
narrative had been constructed, and used some segments of the novel that the university
professor had worked through to demonstrate Frederic’s transformation at the hands of
Hemingway and his heroine, Catherine. By juxtaposing Frederic’s earlier narrations
and conversations with later ones, Howard made distinctions between Hemingway’s
creation of the earlier Frederic the more evolved Frederic who grieves for Catherine. At
308
the same time, he was able to apply the critical distance he acquired to study
Hemingway's craft to question his portrayal of Catherine and some of the other women
as the other students had done. However, because Howard had been highly attuned to
Hemingway’s development of Frederic, he had been able to distinguish between
Hemingway's treatment of some of the women, and Frederic’s treatment of them at less
developed periods of his life.
In the end, he was also able to apply his critical distancing skills to critique
Hemingway’s portrayals, and to investigate the implications of his structural choices.
Where his initial reaction was that Frederic’s growth was not done at Catherine’s
expense, and that “her death was an accident and that his development resulted in his
loving her, ” in the end he felt differently. He said that he could see that Catherine was
sacrificed for Frederic’s growth and that this had political implications for today’s
readers.
Reflections
While Ellen found Catherine Barkely to be stronger each time she read A
Farewell to Arms. Howard became more and more convinced of the character's
weakness and dependency each time he read the novel. Where Ellen thought Catherine
was a model of personal strength, Howard believed her to be a very unrealistic figment
of Hemingway’s imagination—his ideal, yet unrealistic fantasy lover. The contrasting
arguments were fuel for discussion in both classes. Not having understood that either of
these students was in the process of rereading the novel, I failed to engage them in
Bogdan’s (1997) “self subversive self-reflection” (p. 84). This term is one she borrows
from Felman (1987) to help students understand their responses by reading and re
reading the literature and continually re-reading their own responses to the novel until
they begin to understand the subconscious nature of their engagements and resistances.
Unfortunately, I was unaware that rereadings were going on, and had planned to attempt
309
to use that strategy with “The Untold Lie,” a short story which we would be reading
next. I had thought that attempting to have students reread one of the novels was an
unrealistic expectation. Not knowing they were indeed engaged in rereading, I missed
the opportunity to have them "read their own readings,’ which may have shed a light on
both of their readings.
The girls in Howard’s afternoon class completely agreed with his position. They
spent much time trying to decide why a woman of such competence and conviction,
would be so deferential to Frederic. Most boys in the class found Catherine nice and
sincere, where most o f the girls in the afternoon class called her “flaky,” “weird,”
“ditzy” “strange, ’’eccentric” and “day dreamy,” and said that she was “farfetched and
unbelievable.” “There are not really people like that, ” said Marie.
As different as Ellen and Howard’s responses were to Catherine, their reactions
to Fetterley (1978) were even more diametrically opposed. Where Ellen rejected
Fetterley’s feminism, Howard was inspired by her views. They provided him with a
new way of thinking about how women had frequently been portrayed in literature.
Howard said in the final questionnaire, that the criticisms of Fetterley “were the most
educative of the pedagogies used in the entire class.”
A combination of Fetterley’s (1978) writings and the professor’s theory allowed
him to see the importance of the writer as creator. The combination of narrative theory
and feminist criticism helped Howard, Joe and many o f the girls to focus on
Hemingway’s representation of women in their final papers.
All the students, however, seemed to be able to "see’ the writer’s hand and the
stereotypical portrayals more clearly than they had in earlier discussions.
310
THEIR EYES WERE WATCHING GOD By Zora Neale Hurston:
WOMEN WTHTING WOMEN BRENDA AND HILLARY (PJVI.)
ChoiceI chose this novel because, in the last few years, as a result of attention to
women authors and multicultural literature, it is being used more and more in high school and college American literature classrooms. I also wanted to explore the issues involved with women authors representing men and women in the early twentieth century literature.
SynopsisThe story, which covers forty years of Janie Crawford’s life, is framed by an
evening visit where Janie tells that story to her friend Pheoby Watson. The story covers Janie’s life from her childhood years with her grandmother and through marriages with three men: Logan Killicks, Joe (Jody) Starks, and TeaCake Woods. The first marriage with Logan, the potato farmer, was arranged by Janie’s grandma, who wanted to protect Janie from "getting into trouble’ by marrying her off when she had discovered Janie had come of age. When the love that grandma had promised didn’t come, Janie went off with Jody Starks, who promised her a finer life. She acquired financial security and an enviable position as the mayor’s wife during her twenty-year marriage to Jody in Eaton ville. Florida. She also became the victim of his domination and intimidation in this marriage. When Jody died, Janie met TeaCake and started the relationship that would bring her happiness and the love that she had dreamed about. Janie went with TeaCake to work in the Everglades and to enjoy her first equal relationship. She returned to the home that Jody had left her in Eatonville once TeaCake died, the victim of a rabid dog bite. At the end, Janie is content, her quest for sincere love having been fulfilled by TeaCake.
Mv Reading
As Henry Louis Gates (1998) has pointed out, this boldly feminist novel charted
a woman’s Journey from object to subject as she came to consciousness through her
project of “finding voice, with language as an instrument of inquiry and salvation, of
selfhood and empowerment . . .’’(p. 197). Hurston charts this growth by drawing a stark
contrast between Janie’s marriage to Joe and her marriage to TeaCake. This contrast
confirms Hurston’s belief in the superiority of the equal relationship between Janie and
TeaCake and the kind of reciprocal life they share. In ways similar to James, Hurston
311
contests the concept of seeking of protection/ ‘security’ or ‘respectability’ through
marriage that promoted Janie’s earlier marriages to Logan Killicks and Jody Starks.
As Jody’s wife, Janie was not allowed to participate in the discussions on the
store porch in Eatonville. However, the arguments among the folks working in the
Everglades, where she lived with TeaCake, were like the ones on the store porch “[o]nly
here, she could listen and laugh and even talk some herself if she wanted to” (Hurston,
1998, p. 134). Whereas with Joe, she was ordered to work in the store, expected to cook
dinner for him, and abused when the dinner didn’t live up to his expectations. She was
invited to work with TeaCake because he missed her when they were separated all day.
And, once she started working with him, he began sharing the work of preparing the
dinners. Janie’s relationship with TeaCake was a joint operation and effort. They
shared the income from work; they shared love; and they shared housework.
However, while Richard Wright and other contemporary black writers criticized
this novel for not speaking to the local, particularized politics of its time, I must point
out how this book presents problems for my particular politics today. While Hurston
critiques patriarchal marriage through her creation of this equal relationship with
TeaCake, she has not completely extricated herself from within a patriarchal paradigm.
She allows TeaCake to hit Janie and has Janie accepting that treatment as typical
behavior through which men show ownership of women. Teaching this novel
necessitates an exploration of Hurston’s possible motivations for this behavior, and a
contemporary reader’s possible reaction. A literary relationship this attractive, which
sanctions physical abuse of women to any extent, is dangerous for contemporary
readers. As Booth (1988) has pointed out, “it is dishonest to pretend that all broadly
accepted practices of another time or place are beyond our criticism” (p, 415). While
this attempt by a woman to redefine relationships for men and women does much to
advance equality in marriage, it is still based in traditions that value men as dominant.
312
BRENDA (PM .)
"He was so mean to her. I just think there was a physical attraction. How can you be friends with someone who beats you?" Brenda
Brenda is a sophomore who describes herself as having a lot of friends. She
thinks she is fun, open-minded, and easy to talk to. In her spare time she watches
movies, listens to sixties music, plays softball and talks on the phone. She loves her
school and, according to the staff, works hard to maintain a 3.5 cumulative average.
She has lived in town all her life with her mother and father and older sister, with whom
she has good relationships. Her parents work as professionals in town and are well-
respected members of the community, and her sister is away at college. Brenda is a
Catholic and considers herself religious, although she hopes to be more so in the future.
She describes herself as heterosexual, but as of yet, has not had a steady boyfriend.
With the exception of men being portrayed as ‘the lords of the house’ in the
movies, she sees no gender problems in her world. Actually, she says, “lots of those
female gender roles are things she enjoys.” She does, however, think that it would be
good if we had more women running the government, and she is quick to say “if people
treat her as a second class citizen, she gets very mad.” She also says that although she
sees many people reinforcing sexist stereotypes, she is not afraid to resist them in her
life. She explains that “I will challenge a guy if he is out of line.” She has a positive
attitude about feminists, seeing them as women “who won’t take crap from anyone who
treats them as less than human.” That attitude grew stronger as the class progressed.
She still values traditional marriage, though, and views it as a wonderful thing. She
says, “How great to spend your life with someone you love and have kids and a house
of your own.”
Although she thinks that the staff would describe her as ‘talkative,’ and that her
friends consider her ‘funny,’ Brenda started out in the class as very quiet, letting some
313
of the other girls dominate the conversations. That all changed when we began the
discussion of Stein’s The Gentle Lena. Her violent reaction to what she saw as Stein’s
deplorable’ style brought her out of her shell, where she stayed throughout the rest of
the class. By the time we got to Their Eves Were Watching God, she was leading the
class discussions. It was her favorite book, and she had much to say about it. In the
end, she did her final project on it by keeping Janie Crawford’s diary for the duration of
the marriage to the three men. Like all of the other students in her class, she especially
liked this book because “the characters seemed real.” The protagonists, Janie and
TeaCake, were her favorite couple of all the couples in any of the novels and short
stories. She said theirs was the only relationship that was equal and not characterized
by double standards.
As far as I am concerned, Brenda’s interview with me was the one activity that
served as a turning point for her, confirming Fontana and Frey’s (1994) position that
“the interview is both the tool and the object” (p. 361). By the end of my interview with
her, Brenda had also confirmed Rosenblatt’s (1978) theory that a text is but a
continuous opportunity for readers to conduct new negotiations and make new personal
discoveries on the basis of a transaction between the text and whatever past life
experiences or present personality the reader brings to the reading of the text. The
interview allowed Brenda to take the first steps in an investigation of her own romantic
vulnerabilities through a connection with Janie Crawford. This allowed her to see
herself through the lens of Janie’s decisions, and relationships with two of her husbands.
More importantly, the interview helped her to see a connection between Janie’s
susceptibility to male domination and her own vulnerability to the same, though
seventy-five years had passed between the setting which included Janie and the time in
which she herself lived.
314
Brenda’s discovery began when I asked her a specific question about the entire
corpus of literature read by the class. Basing my question on Rosenblatt’s (1978,
1995/1938) reader response theory, I asked whether she had been able to make any
connections to her own life through the reading of any of the novels and short stories
covered in the class. By asking this question, I was hoping to bring not only Rosenblatt
to bear on the interview but also the political theories of Scholes (1985), who insists that
“we must open the way between the literary or verbal text and the social text in which
we live’’(p. 34). I wanted to know how Brenda’s personal consciousness had been
raised by the study of some of this literature.
Brenda immediately answered that she had connected most with Their Eves
Were Watching God. She attributed her connection with the novel to her easy
connection with Janie Crawford, the main character in the book. Through Janie and her
male love interests Brenda was able to think through her ideas and draw some
conclusions about what kind of standards she was constructing for her own personal
relationships. She also was able to think through the kind of mate that she deemed
inappropriate or appropriate for her. Thus she was bringing her own personal life to bear
on her interpretation of the literature and allowing the literature to inform her own life
(Bleich, 1986; Bogdan, 1992; Hines, 1997; Iser, 1978; Rogers, 1997; Rosenblatt, 1978).
Before long she was expressing opinions about the kind of relationship she would like
to have by comparing herself with Janie, and comparing her imagined future partners
with Janie’s men (Bogdan, 1992; Iser, 1978; Rosenblatt, 1978).
Initially, however, though strongly relating to Janie and loving the book, Brenda
clearly distanced herself from Janie and stressed her immunity to problems like the ones
Janie had with men. She said that she could not envision herself in a marriage with a
man who might abuse or even dominate her. At this point, she was in Flynn’s (1986)
words, dominating the text. Seeing herself as a careful person, who, unlike Janie, would
315
get to know a potential husband well enough before marrying him, she denied that she
would be in relationship with someone like Joe Starks. She resisted being with anyone
who would insist that her place was in the home, or that she should look at behave in a
certain way. Being with anyone who would tell her how to wear her hair, force her to
work in a certain place, or hit her when the dinner wasn’t right, was something she
could not imagine.
Somewhere in the middle of the interview, however, Janie suddenly sat up,
• tensely folded her arms across her chest and said, “I would not want to marry someone
like Jody.” It was as if she had suddenly realized the potential for such a ‘mistake.’
“With Logan,” it was just about what Grandma wanted,” said Brenda. But, with Jody,
.he acted like he was great and then when he got what he wanted, he put her into the
kitchen and told her what to do.” I suspected a realization of her own susceptibility to a
man like Jody. In an effort to help her to make connections with her own life (Hines,
1997; Jauss, 1882; Rogers; 1997; Rosenblatt, 1978; Soter, 1997; Taylor, 1993;
Walkerdine, 1984), I asked her a question; “Do you think it would be hard to marry a
guy like Jody and deal with him today?”
It was clear to me that it would eventually be necessary for Brenda to disrupt her
fantasy that one is in complete control of things in life (especially love). However, I
was keenly aware of the awesome responsibility involved in bursting the bubble of
idealism that supported her idea that if you are careful in your selection of a mate, you
will not end up with a person like Jody. But, I proceeded (albeit carefully) because I do
believe that denial never prevented anyone from escaping eventual pain and suffering.
She continued to repeat that she didn’t want a boss as a romantic partner. And,
when I asked if men like Jody still existed today, she expressed the view that although
the character of Jody was created in the mid 1930s, he had real, present day counterparts
who could serve as threats to her own power and agency in future romantic
316
relationships. “There are a lot of guys out there like that,” she explained. “They didn’t
just exist in the past.”
This awareness led to another, and Brenda expressed her fears about getting
involved in a non-equal relationship. She claimed that as certain as she was about not
wanting a man like this, she was also becoming aware of the complexities involved with
selecting a mate. In addition, she was conscious of the religious and social pressures to
even stay with such a man, in spite of her determination not to be oppressed in an
unequal romantic relationship. “What would prevent me from being deceived by a
suave boyfriend like Jody?” she asked herself and me. She mused that during the early
days of a relationship, when it might be difficult to see how a romantic partner like Jody
could evolve into a bossy chauvinist, she could be lured in. “I know that sometimes you
can love a person but that sometimes love goes bad in the end like Janie and Jody’s
relationship.”
As the interview went on, I posed more and more questions to Brenda about how
she might deal with a man such as Jody. She began to show signs that it was beginning
to dawn on her that the refusal to allow herself to be controlled in a romantic
relationship might fall on her shoulders. “All I can say,” she said, “ is, my marriage
better not be like that, and if I am stupid enough to marry a guy who is controlling and
abusive like that, let me be smart enough to get out of it.”
As we explored the novel’s relationships further, Brenda demonstrated a more
and more sophisticated understanding of her awareness o f the difficulties involved in
bringing about equality in romantic relationships now as well as then. While she did
consider the possibility of breaking up if things got bad enough, she also understood the
implications of break-up on family and children and she talked about that. She echoed
words that Sarah had spoken earlier about the difficulties of breaking up a family. The
fact that Janie stayed with Jody for fourteen years after she stopped loving him because
317
he was her “meal ticket” (Hattenhaurer, 1994, p. 47) brought Brenda to an awareness of
the further economic complications brought on by leaving a husband who is supporting
you. The lines “ [mjaybe Jody ain’t nothin’, but he is something in my mouth”
(Hurston, 1998, p. 118) resulted in Brenda’s realization that divorcing even an abusive
husband is difficult even today unless a wife has an income of her own, a challenge for
mothers when children are small.
In addition, she demonstrated an understanding of the characteristics of her own
personality, which might cause her to compromise rather than stand up for herself to
insist upon the equality she claimed she desired. She expressed her own tendency to
cave in and silence some of her objections for the sake of peace. “It would be hard if
the guy was that strong,” she said, “I could see myself having trouble. Knowing me, I
would probably let some of it go, kind of like Janie did,” she said. She also pointed out
that Janie thought she loved Jody, but in the end TeaCake turned out to be the better
relationship for her. He, in fact, was the one who “come long and made somethin’ outa
[her]” (Hurston, 1998, p. 167). For her, TeaCake was “a bee to a blossom ” (1998, p.
106), the one that brought her close to her dream, the one that allowed Janie to “find the
jewel down inside of herself’ (1998, p. 87). This relationship was no means to an end,
no business proposition and no race after property and titles. “Dis [was] de love game”
(1998, p. 114), as Janie said.
TeaCake was the closest thing to Brenda’s ideal man. But, that also posed a
problem for her. Her own romantic dreams were tainted by the reality that even in this
ideal’ relationship, there was unequal power, as TeaCake had used physical force on
Janie in order to show that he was boss. Initially, Brenda had resisted condemning
TeaCake “because it only happened once,” and because “it showed that he cared,” and
because a few of the students had said “nobody’s perfect.” And, she struggled to accept
it due to the time period in which the novel was set, and because she liked this
318
relationship and didn’t want to resolve her conflict by rejecting it. However, as the
interview went on, Brenda expressed her repulsion toward this anomaly in Janie and
TeaCake’s relationship more and more strongly, and eventually claimed to be unable to
justify the hitting with her admiration for TeaCake and her approval of his relationship
with Janie. “I don’t want to think about the hitting,” she said over and over again. “I
can’t deal with that. I don’t understand it.”
In the end, Brenda was still left with some unresolved conflicts about Jtuiie and
TeaCake’s relationship. But, she was thinking. And, such thought suggested to me that
she would continue to reflect on ways to handle powerful others without becoming
cynical and jaded, or being overpowered. Her journey had been one that had revealed
to her fears about being controlled in relationship that had been lurking beneath the
surface.
HILLARY (PM.)
The other student who dominated the conversation in the afternoon class on
Their Eves Were Watching God was Hillary. Hillary comes from a family of four, all
of whom are totally dedicated to each other’s welfare and the welfare of the family as a
whole. They are Seventh Day Adventists who are devoted to their religion and to its
Christian principles. Hillary is a gentle girl who tries to practice acts of kindness and
respect with those with whom she comes into contact. Staff members and students alike
speak of her caring nature, her sense of responsibility, her strong values and her ability
to hold on to those values while remaining open to others’ ideas. When asked about
her, one by one, the staff remarked on her hard work and her dedication to overcoming
some learning disabilities such as memory problems, reading problems and dyslexia.
“She has a great attitude,” said one staff member. “She is always happy. If you give
her a lemon, she makes lemonade.”
319
Because of her reading disability, Hillary listened to many of the assigned books
on tape. Because she reads slowly and, as she says, is “not a very good reader,” her dad
read some of the other books aloud to Hillary and the family as part of a Friday night
family reading ritual. Right now, her older brother is away at college, so she and her
mom and dad constitute the family. Her father is a respected doctor in the town; her
mother works as a housewife. With time left over after cooking the meals and being
there for Hillary and her brother and her dad, her mom leads bible study groups.
Hillary has great respect for her traditional family. The thing she has noticed
about her parents' marriage is that they tend to work together. “I have never seen my
parents make a decision without each other,” she says, and “I cannot imagine my
mother without my father or my father without my mother.” She thinks it is really
important to gain a partnership like that. Speaking of her mother, she says, “I come
home and she is there. It is nice to have somebody there. I can’t imagine what it is like
for some people coming home and not having anyone there.” Although Hillary wants to
go to college, travel, and have a career, she hopes to put the career off until after her
kids are raised because she thinks she would be missing out on something if she weren’t
there for her kids. Hillary is also a traditionalist when it comes to marriage. She, like
Brenda, plans to be very careful about the man she marries because she plans to be with
him for a lifetime.
Hillary sometimes feels like society is pressuring women to be more out in the
workplace, to stand up for themselves, and “all that independence stuff which is
something that is great but I don’t necessarily agree with it all.” She says, “now it is all
‘go out and be your own person.’ “ She does not want to be independent. She would
like to have children and says “it sure will make it a whole lot easier if you have a child
and you have someone there to help you. ” Hillary does not see herself as a feminist and
has not had any education on women’s issues. “I went to a Christian school,” she said,
320
“And we didn’t talk about any of those things.” When I suggested that women’s issues
were moral concerns, she reminded me that some women’s issues are in direct
opposition to Christian family values, which honor the man’s place at the head of the
family. While she doesn’t support women’s oppression, she is aware that some feminist
ideals compromise some of her religious beliefs.
Throughout the class, while I did not hold back on my opinions or on my efforts
to shed light on contradictions, anomalies and evidences of gender inequalities, I did not
want to directly challenge Hillary’s specific positions as they represented religious and
family beliefs. Margaret Jackson and I attempted to lead her to think her paradigms
through and to reflect on her assumptions, as we did with the rest of the students, each
other and ourselves. However, the kind of willingness to consider others’ ideas that
Hillary showed, was everything I could have asked for in the students. That openness,
added to my desire to refrain from either indoctrinating or showing disrespect for
family, cultural, or religious beliefs, prompted me to attempt to raise questions without
insisting that I had the correct answers for everyone (Bakhtin, 1981). Whether I
succeeded or failed, Hillary considered the various perspectives, and eventually drew
her own conclusions about the gender issues in her life and those involving the fictional
characters. My main objective was to instigate conversations and explorations.
One of her favorite characters from the readings in the class was Catherine from
Washington Square. She connected with Catherine because like Catherine, she was
“really shy” when she was younger. She also said she herself has never dated, and so
she connected with Catherine because no men until Morris showed an interest in her.
She felt sorry for Catherine, and was happy that Morris was finally appreciating her,
until he rejected her. Her connection with Catherine worried her a bit, however.I could see myself getting involved with somebody who was good to me. Icould see myself falling for him if I thought that he was falling for me.
321
Yes, that worries me because I don’t want to get involved with someone who is not truly involved with me.
While she didn’t see James as having taken a feminist position in the story at all, his
story did bring some things to light for her involving gender issues. She realized
through the reading and the discussion of it that there were some double standards in
James’ society.
I f you were a guy and you were unattractive, you could still moke it. And, if you were smart, with a job, you could make it all right by yourself. But if you were a woman and you were unattractive, and you were not exactly the sharpest spoon in the drawer, you would not make it.
What worries her most is that, according to Hillary, this still applies with some guys
today.
Throughout the duration of the class, in response to some of our interviews and
to some of the readings, Hillary came to some realizations which made her more
cognizant of previously unnoticed gender inequities in the literature and in her life. For
example, discussions about the treatment of Catherine Sloper in Washington Square and
about the silencing of the female characters in “The Untold Lie ” raised her
consciousness about the ways in which she believes some of the men on her church
board have treated her because she is a girl. Hesitant to make a fuss, and struggling to
get the words out, she did finally voice her complaint. She began tentatively, but as she
continued on with her story and became more certain of her feelings, her voice became
even stronger:
I am a youth rep on my church board. When I go, I s it there and I listen.When they talk about s tu ff about the youth or s tu ff affecting the youth,I will try to say something and a lot of times people cut me off. They talk down to me. And, that really bothers me because they asked me to be on this board and they are not giving me a chance to express my opinion. And, that bothers me. My brother was on the church board before me, and um,I guess . . . I think that . . .. Billy is more aggressive than I am. And, I think people will listen to him because he is more forceful with his opinion.I am not, so you must really listen to me. I f it is something that I feel
322
really strongly about, I will speak up more strongly. But, if it is somethingI just want to say, they just interrupt me.
Later in the course, she revisited this topic, having drawn the conclusion that it
was not only she who was dismissed by the church board, but that some o f the other
women in the church group were slighted as well. She began to realize that “a lot of the
women on the board don’t talk anymore,” and, she concluded that they might have
stopped contributing after years of being silenced. She also began to realize that there
were some double standards operating there. She saw that at her church functions, that
the men rarely contribute to the potlucks, and that it is predominantly the girls and
women and the younger boys who seem to be helping in the kitchen.
She reported that experiences with some of the literature also resulted in her
realizing some things about gender inequities on the home front. She said that the
discussion of the stereotypes and double standards in The Great Gatsbv raised her
awareness of a division of labor and some double standards operating there as well.
With some reluctance to appear disloyal, Hillary confessed that she realized through
some of the readings and activities in the class, that sometimes her mother reinforces
sexist stereotypes. She also confessed that she “is kind of sad about that.” She referred
then to the fact that her dad and her brother are not expected to work in the kitchen at
home, but she and her mother are expected to work the kitchen detail. She said that she
attributes her mother’s failure to get on after her brother as much as she gets after her to
work in the kitchen, to her own upbringing. She concluded that she thinks that her
brother may be carrying on this reinforcement of sexism with his own girlfriends, which
worries her.
Hillary also made some realizations about the ways in which traditional
lifestyles are reinforced. She pointed out that discussions and focus group
323
improvisations on “The Gentle Lena” awakened Hillary to the subtle yet strong
expectations on her to marry.
Like I really didn't think that there was that pressure on me, but I think there is because that has always been there ever since I was born that you are gonna get married.' And, I have said to my mother, if I don't get married, what would I do, and she would always say, “Oh Hillary, you are gonna get married."
More importantly, she realized that implicit in this conversation with her mother
was an absence of any stated alternatives to marriage, and an absence of as much
importance being placed on any other accomplishments besides marriage. One could
imagine many answers to the question, “What would I do if I don’t get married,”
besides, “You are going to get married.” One such response might have included some
ideas about how life would look for a non-married person. This kind of expectation for
marriage, unfortunately, communicates the idea that “it’s better to have somebody than
nobody” (McRobbie, 1991, p .150), or that it if a girl didn’t get married, she would be
failing in a significant way ( Lewis, 1992).
I had deliberately chosen Stein’s “The Gentle Lena” as a story to be read in this
class, because I wanted to challenge the dominant versions of masculinity, femininity
and traditional romantic narratives. In such narratives, girls more than boys, grow up
being coerced by an ideology which validates girls predominantly for acquiring a
boyfriend, an eventual husband, and bearing children. I selected Stein’s piece because I
thought that the students needed to be able to experience the devastating implications of
enforced marriage demonstrated in “The Gentle Lena.” The story and the ways in
which we investigated it, caused the students to reflect on their own pressures.
In terms of the enforcement of the traditional love, marriage, childrearing and
‘happily ever after’ narratives, Brenda made the same realization as Hillary, saying that
she feels that it is her primary legacy to marry and have kids. “That is what I was put
324
on earth for as far as my parents are concerned.” Ellen also said that, as far as her
family is concerned, “it is my mission to have children. That is the most important
thing.” She is aware, she said, that if she were not going to do that, it would affect her
parents. “They would have something to say about it,” she said. Alicia agreed that the
pressure was also there for her to carry on these traditions.
Interestingly, in a discussion held with the focus group participants, Charles
volunteered that this showed that “even in today’s society it is different for men and
women. He said, “I have felt absolutely no pressure from my parents that someday I am
supposed to get married. It has never even been talked about,” he said. “I don’t know if
they just assume that I am going to, or that they just let me make my own decisions, but
that pressure isn’t there.” He said that the ‘of course you are getting married some day’
message just doesn’t exist in his world. And, Dale agreed that he too has felt no
pressure to marry. Hillary added that her parents have addressed this issue differently
with her brother and she and the others discussed why parents would be more concerned
about girls getting married than boys getting married at this age. They all concluded
that this must be a gender issue, but didn’t know why. I volunteered that it may have
something to do with the fact that ‘success’ for women is still more connected to
‘getting married to a successful man,’ while ‘success’ for men still has to do with
achievement and salar)\ I said that even now, parents might be more concerned with
boys’ future careers than their future wives. I did point out the implications of this was
that women could continue to be evaluated in terms of beauty as long as their success
was measured in this way.
While Hillary, like so many others, enjoyed the conversations that we had in
class, and particularly the exercise drawing the pictures o f the The Great Gatsbv
characters, she didn’t relate to the characters in most of the books. In fact, aside from
Catherine in Washington Square, with whom she reported a moderate connection, she
325
related strongly to only one character: Janie, from Their Eves Were Watching God.
Like Brenda, however, she had some concerns about the multiple marriages and the fact
that even in her marriage to TeaCake, there was spousal abuse. TeaCake’s hitting of
Janie challenged Hillary’s paradigm that good people do not hit their wives, as it had for
Brenda. TeaCake was good . . . and y e t . . . there was TeaCake hitting Janie and forcing
Hillary to question her assumptions.
In early discussions and interviews, Hillary had been able to resist the idea that
battering was a women’s issue. She chose to think of it in isolated terms, as an act
carried out by someone emotionally disturbed. She had been able to put enough
distance between herself and the possibility of being abused, that it didn’t seem to be
something that she, or women in general, needed to become activists about. It didn’t
seem to be something that emanated from the status (or lack thereof) offered women by
the society. “Spousal abuse is always going to be there,” she had said. “You can’t get
rid of all the people in the world who think it is ok to beat their wives. There is always
going to be that. ” However, Hurston’s portrayal the story’s hero hitting his wife, Janie,
brought the problem closer to home for Hillary for two reasons. Firstly, she liked and
related to Janie and TeaCake’s relationship. Secondly, this book seemed to be
attempting to introduce readers to a model of a more equal relationships not offered by
male authored books we had read. This act by TeaCake appeared to be an anomaly in
Hurston’s ideology. Therefore, with Their Eves Were Watching G od, the subject of
spousal abuse became a topic that she and the others took up during discussion of the
book with two visiting professors from the neighboring university.
Social Imagination Activities
Brenda and Hillary focused on Janie’s relationship with TeaCake through some
activities organized by the two professors who had come to do educational drama work
with the class. They helped the students to interpret and process the novel by engaging
326
both classes in some imaginative work and some educational drama. They followed the
philosophies of educational moralists such as Johnson (1993) and Kohlberg (1986) and
educational drama experts such as Edmiston (1999), Heathcote (1984) and O ’Neill
(1995). All of these moral educators stress the fact that the ability for students to ‘put
themselves into the others’ shoes’ is essential to the development of empathy and
ethical reasoning skills.
In the male-dominated morning class, in which the students generally did not
like the novel, the majority ranked it between a minus 8 and a minus 3 grade. There,
Dale and some other students were invited to get inside the text’ by taking on
characters' roles to play out consecutive scenes in Janie and TeaCake’s relationship.
The two visiting professors led the students through the events of Janie and TeaCake’s
relationship, using drama to bring the students to an awareness of all facets and
dynamics of the relationship. They portrayed Janie and TeaCake’s first meeting, their
first fight over the money, and the scene where TeaCake hit Janie. Because the drama
put them in touch with the characters’ feelings, the students reported in surveys (larger
group) and questionnaires (focus group) that this activity stimulated a more intense
connection with the characters’ gender issues, and an increased interest in the book.
Discussion
In Hillary and Brenda’s afternoon class, one professor began the discussion of
Their Eves Were Watching God by having the students look at the first and last
paragraphs of the novel (Rabinowitz, 1987) to identify theme. By asking the eventual
question, “What is Janie willing to do to act on her dreams?” one of the professors
organized them toward a discussion of the book that encouraged them to visualize Janie
at the end of her story in terms of her dreams. To get them started, he read the closing
lines of the novel, a tactic that Rabinowitz (1987) listed as one of the rules of notice for
understanding literature.
327
She pulled in her horizon like a great fish net. Pulled it from around the waist of the world and draped it over her shoulder. So much of life in its message. She called in her soul to come and see (Hurston, 1998/1937,193).
To visualize Janie and eventually design a painting that would serve as a front
cover for the book, the students had to look at Janie’s life in its entirety, in terms of her
home life, her marriages, her joys, sorrows, regrets and transformations. Having done
that, they could choose the colors and the mood for the final painting. Brenda and
Hillary, still conflicted about the issue of TeaCake hitting Janie, got stuck on whether
Janie would have had any regrets about TeaCake, in view of the fact that he had hit her
and she had allowed it. They attempted once again to explore that anomaly, with
particular consideration of the fact that the story was written by a woman. After all of
the work that they had done investigating male writers’ representation of women at my
hands, they were very troubled by the idea that Hurston had marred Janie’s final and
best relationship by allowing him the power to strike her in a jealous rage.
While all o f the students in this and in the other class were troubled by
TeaCake’s violent outburst, Brenda and Hillary seemed to be the most disturbed
because TeaCake was the male character who came closest to their notions about the
ideal mate. They considered the questions: What did this say about their abilities to
make good choices? What did this say about what they could expect from perfectly nice
guys in their lives? What did it say about what society sanctioned? And, what did it
say about Hurston, who was trying to show the development of a woman from a
possession to an equal in her relationship with men? Answers to their own questions
came by way of further questions and a good deal of concern. Regarding Hurston’s
portrayal of TeaCake, we decided that in spite of the author’s dream of a new paradigm
for literary and real relationships, Hurston too, like the male writers of her time, was
imbedded in a culture that could not envision life completely beyond a patriarchal
model. Culturally imbedded ideologies affect both men and women.
328
In her effort to make TeaCake ‘human,’ or to make him recognizable in her
time, Hurston and her female protagonist sanctioned his violence toward Janie. As
Tina from the A M . class concluded, “Janie took it as part of the process of being in a
relationship that to make himself feel better TeaCake would slap her around a little .
She accepted it because he feels bad and has the right to feel this way, so it is all right.’’
My response to this combined activity and discussion was that the classmates’
general condemnation of Jody and TeaCake’s violence toward Janie convinced the
students better than any of my previous arguments of the need to challenge such
misogynistic behavior. At the very least, this group saw the need to call attention to it.
My question was, without such a challenge, how would boys and girls today judge such
behavior in heroes and heroines? In real men and women? Against what standard?
And so we engaged with the professors in a diaogic investigation with the text
and with each other that asked questions that brought the students’ present day
reactions to spousal abuse to the table. We asked whether we thought that in Janie’s
final scene, there should be only contentment, or whether there should be any indication
that she had any regrets about putting up with Jody’s abuse to safeguard security or
TeaCake’s abuse to safeguard love. While the students thought that she would have no
regrets because, as Brenda said, “it was accepted in that time period, ” they were
convinced that they would have plenty of regrets had they personally been silent or
accepting of such behavior. They made that distinction quite clear. Given the chance
to talk to Janie, Hillary said that she would like to ask her why she let it happen. She
would like Janie to enlighten her about it, because she did not understand.
This particular discussion illustrated the level of awareness that most of the
students in this class had reached with regard to the issue of violence against women as
a social concern. In addition, the desire to ask Janie why it happened indicated their
need to investigate this issue further through an imaginative encounter with the text.
329
Following an introduction to a psychoanalytic critique, which I hoped would help
students to rethink romantic relationship fantasies, Hillary and Brenda did collaborate
on creating Janie’s diary in order to continue to investigate this issue.
Literary Criticism
While Walkerdine (1984) did not speak to this specific novel or the issue of
spousal abuse, I realized that Their Eyes Were Watching God focuses on a heroine
whose victim status and fantasy resolution closely parallels the rescued heroines of
Walkerdine's (1984) comic books. Seeing this connection helped me to understand the
origin of the strong appeal that the novel held for the girls in the class, and the deep
disappointment experienced by the girls when the ‘prince’ emerged as flawed.
Their Eves Were Watching God worked in the same way that Walkerdine
(1984) argued the comics worked, like fairy tales, engaging the readers at a level of
wish fulfillment (Freud, 1908) and fantasy (Lacan 1977). Walkerdine (1984) argued
that textual devices, similar to those in fairy tales, had permitted an engagement with
the heroine and the working out and potential resolution of certain conflicts and wishes
already present in their lives.
Like the heroines in the fairy tales and stories, Janie starts out as a “hapless
victim of circumstance, scorned, and badly treated (Walkerdine, 1984, p. 165), with
parents displaced by adoptive ones [in this case the grandmother]. The grandmother
has, like the adoptive parents in the fairy tales, taken possession of the girl in question
(in this case Janie), oppressing her with a forced marriage to an ogre-like suitor. Janie,
the classic fairy tale heroine, suffers Logan Killick (the ogre), and even her marriage to
Jody Starks in relative silence, displaying what Walkerdine (1984) refers to as the fairy
tale virtue of patience. Patiently, Janie engages in obedient helpfulness, accepting her
fate in a selfless manner. Selflessness, then, becomes for Janie, as for the comic/fairy
tale heroines, a virtue.
330
Janie's trials, like the heroines in the comics, served to “prepare for and proffer a
^happy ever after’ situation in which the finding of the prince comes to seem like a
solution to a set of overwhelming desires and problems” (Walkerdine, 1984, p. 163).
Janie, like the hapless comic book heroines, was rewarded for her virtue with a prince.
TeaCake was that reward—that prince. The parallel formula in Their Eves Were
Watching God, then, resolves by means of the familiar ‘happy ever after’ telos “with the
insertion of the girl into the longed for ideal family, the lost dream” (p. 163).
Hurston, although attempting to liberate her female readers from traditional
patriarchal relationships, still used the fairy tale formula to lead the heroine to the prince
(albeit a flawed prince). This begs the question of whether the flawed prince was a
conscious attempt by Hurston to dismantle the traditional “happy ever after” fantasy, or
whether she was so enculturated by society’s tolerance of spousal abuse, that she simply
portrayed TeaCake as an imperfect and believable, albeit loving husband for Janie. I
suspect it was the latter. However, whatever the case, the girls reading the story were
coerced by the someday my prince will come’ storyline and the happy ever after’
fantasy for which they had been so long prepared (Walkerdine, 1984), and for which
this novel had continued to prepare them—until the slap. After the slap, the girls did
not know how to view a “happy ever after” relationship which included husbands
hitting wives.
To deal with the girls’ disillusionment, I drew from Walkerdine and other
psychoanalytic feminists who argue for students to examine and question their
investments in the fantasies and dominant subject positions created in literary texts
(Davies, 1993; Flax, 1990; Harper, 2000; Walkerdine, 1984). To do this, I engaged the
focus group participants in further discussions about the novel’s underlying romantic
ideals, and the contrasting power imbalances existing between Janie and TeaCake.
331
I drew on the girls’ ambivalence, and the contradictions (Harper, 2000) that they
experienced as they struggled to resolve their dilemma about how to extricate
themselves from their own investment in the “happy ever after” fantasy while still
remaining optimistic about the good, but not perfect ending. In leading the discussion, I
invited their ambivalence and ambiguity (Flax, 1990). I believed such discomfort would
lead to a deconstruction or “troubling” Butler, 1999; Lather, 1991) of the fantasies that
contributed to Janie’s tolerance of men’s domination of her as a way of protecting and
maintaining the fantasies, the prince, and the patriarchal power structure.
Brenda and Hillary considered that Janie’s investment in the happy ending might
have accounted in part for her years of silence about Jody’s domination, and her
attempts to accept TeaCake’s slapping of her. They also considered Janie’s financial
dependence as an explanation for her passive acceptance of Jody’s abusive behavior.
Both considerations represented the heightening of their awareness of some of the roots
of unequal relationships, and some of the possible remedies.
Final Proiect/Social Imagination
For the final project, Brenda and Hillary
continued their exploration of Janie’s
relationships by creating the diary that
Janie might have kept throughout her
three marriages. According to them,
keeping the diary had allowed them to
see things they hadn ’t noticed in
theirreadings or in the discussions with
the professors and me. I noticed also
Figure 53: Janie’s Diary
332
that it had the effect of “cracking a previous understanding into a new awareness”
(Heathcote, 1984, p. 122) of Janie’s experience dealing with Jody’s domination and
TeaCake’s hitting. Through the creation of this “alternative fiction” (Walkerdine,
1984, p. 184), the girls engaged in a transactional method of meaning-making with the
text (Rosenblatt, 1995), which resulted in a synthesis of what they knew as
contemporary readers with what the literary text offered (p. 259). By writing the diary,
the girls were able to discover their ambivalence about the relationship between Janie’s
investment in the “someday my prince will come” fantasy (Walkerdine, 1984, p. 162)
and her acceptance of her subjugated role in her marriages. They demonstrated this
ambivalence by alternating back and forth between Janie’s culture and their own
(Hines, 1997; Rogers, 1997), and judging the characters’ actions according to their
own standards, while being careful to keep themselves in Hurston’s narrative. This
allowed them to develop the “stereophonic ” vision as described by Bogdan (1992)
which resulted in a response that would “integrate the enjoyment and self
consciousness of the relationship between text and reader” (p. 191).
Brenda and Hillary’s discovery of this ambivalence about the relationship
between Janie’s investment in the “someday my prince will come ” fantasy and her
acceptance of her subjugated role in her marriages was initially demonstrated by the
juxtaposition of Janie’s ’ initial reflections about Jody’ with her later ones in the
journal. Initially, without having been exposed to any reference to the ‘prince’ in my
discussion of Janie’s romantic fantasies with the students, they showed complicit
understanding of ‘Janie’s’ connection of Jody with a prince. In the journal, they wrote:
He was dressed so proper; I was almost in awe of him. He was so kind to me, making me feel like I was some damsel in distress. He said the sw eetest things to me. He told me I should be treated like a lady, a princess even. (Diary, p. 5)
333
Here the girls demonstrate Janie’s’ view of Jody as the rescuer of herself as the
damsel in distress. They also demonstrate their own complicit understanding o f the
fantasy by implying the existence of a rescuer and one rescued. Their description of
Janie's reflections later in the relationship shows the girls’ understanding of the power
of Janie’s romantic fantasies to sustain what they suggest through irony is a misbegotten
tolerance of spousal abuse. For, after having ‘Janie’ confess in the diary that Jody’
“talks down,” to her, “tells her what to do,” and “has gone from being charming to
insensitive,” they have her take her thoughts back to show her effort to preserve the
dream of the “prince” and “happy ever after” resolution:
No. No. I know that can't be true. Jody is much too wonderful. He is my dream of a perfect man, so I must be crazy to be thinking these thoughts!I love him. I do. I do! God hopes he still loves me! (Diary)
The girls attempted to critique Jody’s behavior and Janie’s easy forgiveness by
merging the strong disapproval of Jody’s behavior that they imagined for Janie, with the
acceptance that Janie actually demonstrated in the novel.
Jody hit me today. He was upset that his dinner didn't taste right. I spent my whole day preparing his dinner, and he hits me because he disapproves.My feeling is, let him cook his own damn dinner. Although I know myself, and I couldn't follow through with that (Diary)
The connection between Janie’s investment in the “someday my prince will
come” fantasy and her acceptance of her subjugated role in the relationship is even
more evident in the relationship between Janie and TeaCake. TeaCake is the real
prince. As I pointed out earlier in this section, the two girls had struggled with the
anomaly of a real ‘prince’ hitting his wife. In their record of Janie’s reflections of
TeaCake’s hitting of Janie, they succeeded in depicting Janie’s bifurcated psyche. They
also demonstrated that they were able to deal with the tension that they imagined Janie
felt as well as the struggle they experienced as they attempted to Justify TeaCake’s
actions against their own moral measuring stick.
334
Today TeaCake hit me. Right across my face. He saw another man talking with me and told me it made him an awful lot of jealous. In his mind, it tells everyone I belong to him. I suppose I should be proud to wear my welts. They are from TeaCake, and I am glad to belong to him. I want th e world to know we're together and I wish no guys to flirt with me. I love Teacake with all my heart but I couldn't hit TeaCake for anything. Even if I was to learn that he had been unfaithful to me, I still couldn't bear to cause him pain. I am disturbed he found it so easy to hurt me, even if it is really so he won't lose face with the guys' or because a man has been flirting with me. I still don't think it's right (Diary)
Later, however, the girls critique Janie’s forgiveness of TeaCake and her
acceptance of a romantic ideology based on a definition of masculinity characterized by
power, authority, and aggression, and a definition of femininity’ characterized by
compliance with subordination. By using irony and hyperbole, and again
demonstrating a textual accountability, they simultaneously show how Janie heals her
bifurcation through a resignation, which is bom of a patriarchal gender order. They
comment’ from their critical perspective on the ludicrous nature of her resignation.
Combining an illustration of Janie’s dependence with a satirical commentary on the
same, they have Janie say:
Well, look at me writing on and on about this nonsense. Of course I should be slapped. I downright deserved it. I belong to TeaCake one hundred percent, and if I talk to another man, I should be punished. I should wear these welts with pride, and be glad I have a loving man to give them to me.Now I will return to the kitchen and make dinner for my husband (Diary).
In the essay accompanying this diary/scrapbook, Brenda explained that in the
diary, she tried to show her opinions through Janie, without changing Janie’s opinions.
She explained that in having Janie “talk herself out of being worried that [TeaCake’s
hitting] was wrong ” and attempt to convince herself that she was “proud to wear the
welts from TeaCake, ” that she was attempting to critique Janie’s acceptance of
TeaCake’s abuse and authoritarianism. She also stated that by saying “TeaCake was
right to slap me” and that I downright deserved it,” she was attempting to be sarcastic to
335
“prove a point.” The point that the Brenda referred to, as I understood it, was that it
was not Janie who should have been feeling guilty, but TeaCake, who was the one who
had hit Janie.
By exaggerating Janie’s response beyond any reaction they could possibly
sanction today, and assigning her a response only acceptable in a sexist society, Brenda
and Hillary moved beyond their ambivalence about Janie and TeaCake’s relationship.
By using sarcasm to critique the effects of romantic fantasies on relationship Brenda
and Hillary not only challenged the fantasies but also the power of texts in shaping of
desire and the production of gendered subjectivities.
Other Projects
A few of the students in both classes chose
Their Eves Were Watching God for their final
projects. One student created a comic book
through which she told the story artistically.
Sarah and Maynard identified popular song
lyrics through which they could express the
nature of the relationships in the novel. They
selected “Christian Woman” by Type O.
Figure 5.4: Comic Book
Negative as a result of class discussions about Janie’s love life. According to them,
“every other character that we have read about who had more than one relationship or
more than one lover, was labeled a slut, hussy or otherwise. Janie’s wasn’t.” With this
song, they explored how this woman was not condemned, and why that was so, and
they tried to explore the reason for this. Other songs selected were “Not My Idea,” by
336
Garbage, which characterized Janie’s relationship with Jody Starks. The song,
according to them, “is about a woman who was belittled by the man she was with and
then stood up for herself to show him that she was strong.” Maynard and Sarah’s ability
to connect Jody and Janie’s relationship with a similar relationship in a contemporary
song succeeded in intensifying their connection with and their understanding of, that
relationship in their own terms. Their last song, “You Complete Me,” by Stabbing
Westward, compared Janie in her relationship with TeaCake, to a woman in the song
who had evolved as a character and found the man she had been looking for. “You’re
the light that I’ve been searching for ‘cause my whole life there’s been something
missing” is the line they found most significant.
D r a w i n g f r o m the
conversation that the afternoon
class had with the professors
about how Janie and the
surroundings should look in
the scene depicted on the last
page o f the novel, Barbara
created an oil painting of Janie
at the end of the novel. I
realized when I saw the
picture that Barbara had
Figure 5 3 : Imagining the Last Page
carried out the choices that the class had eventually made during their long and lively
argument about setting, mood and colors that should be chosen for the visual depiction
of the end of the novel. She converted these choices into a painting. The class had been
337
attempting to design the cover of the next edition of the novel, and she carried out their
wishes by creating a beautiful picture of Janie, as she looks at the end of the novel when
“she pulled in her horizon like a great fish net. Pulled it from around the waist of the
world and draped it over her shoulder . . . [with] so much of life in its message”
(Hurston, 1998, p. 193).
Barbara was able to portray Janie as she “called in her soul to come and see”
(1998, p. 195). She was able to portray Janie’s maturity, her wisdom, her silence and
her ultimate contentment that was evident now that she had come to consciousness
through her project of “finding a voice, with language as an instrument of inquiry and
salvation of selfhood and empowerment. . . ” (Gates in Hurston, 1998, p. 197).
Reflections
Brenda’s connection with the characters in Their Eves Were Watching God
intensified her awareness of the gender issues in the literary relationships, in
relationships she sees in her life, and in those she imagines for herself in the future.
Discussions, activities and interviews also alerted her to her own susceptibility to an
involvement in an unequal relationship, and her own and other girls’ vulnerability, to
spousal abuse.
Hillary, who began the course with extremely traditional ideas about gender
roles, began to question those roles as a result of discussions and activities. During the
course, she became increasingly aware of the enforcement of traditional romantic
narratives by the society, and of the existence and reinforcement of sex role stereotypes
and double standards by church and family members.
My own struggle to develop a feminist consciousness in these girls was
challenged by Hillary as it had been by Ellen and Marie. Her resistance to my agenda
to raise consciousness about gender equity forced me to remember that change does not
come instantaneously, or because I will it. It took a very long time for men and women
338
to construct these gender roles, stereotypes, androcentric perspectives and imbalances of
power, and, it would take a long time to undo the damage. Indoctrination is no
substitute for a gradual paradigm shift, nudged along by a patient coach. I realized that
the exploration of the literature and the consideration o f gender issues as well as the
students’ own contradictions and conflicts were what was important and valuable.
For both girls, Walkerdine’s (1984) literary critical perspective led to an
awareness of how Janie’s investment in romantic fantasies accounted in part for her
years of silence about Jody’s domination, and her attempts to accept TeaCake’s
violence. The introduction to Walkerdine’s (1984) ideas introduced students to the idea
that unless readers have a critical perspective, texts which lure readers to engage with a
forlorn heroine (who is rewarded with a ‘prince’) can produce readers who assume that
their victory will depend on their passivity.
For both of these girls, an involvement in social imagination activities, such as
educational drama and art, intensified their awareness of the gender inequalities in
Janie’s romantic relationships with Jody and TeaCake, and fostered a stronger
awareness of the gender issues in their own lives. These activities caused the girls to
consider the effects of Janie’s decisions on her life, as she looked back on then from the
end o f the novel. The diary they kept on Janie’s life, recording Janie’s responses to her
role in and reaction to the marriages, allowed the girls to imagine themselves walking in
Janie’s shoes (Kohlberg, 1986; Heathcote 1984; Johnson, 1993; O ’Neill 1995;
Edmiston, 1999). W riting in role also encouraged the development of their
stereophonic vision’ (Bogdan, 1992) of Janie’s experience viewed through her eyes
and their own. In addition, this ‘stereophonic vision’ enabled them to consider not only
Janie’s life, but also their own lives in terms of hers.
Their use of irony and hyperbole to critique the traditional gender roles
exhibited in their “favorite relationship ” of all of the ones considered, showed that they
339
had made much progress in developing a critical consciousness to unequal relationships
in literature and life. It showed that they also were aware of the ways in which romantic
fantasies can result in the continued subordination of women in relationships.
Chapter Conclusion
In the three literary investigations in this chapter, students focused on the
representation of males and females and the love relationship, and investigated the ways
■ in which they were caught up in romantic fantasies such as those represented in the
three novels as well as romantic narratives constructed by the society.
The following and final chapter addressing the research data deals specifically
with the last literary work covered in the class, “The Untold Lie,” by Sherwood
Anderson.
340
CHAPTER 6
THE VOICES OF MEN AND WOMEN
People live by stories. They attempt to shape their lives by the available narratives. If the available narratives are limiting, people’s lives are limited.
Richardson, 1997, p. 58
The play’s the thingWherein I’ll catch the conscience of the King
Shakespeare, Hamlet II, ii ,616-17
Introduction
This chapter is dedicated solely to the investigation of Anderson’s short story,
“The Untold Lie, ” from the novel, Winesburg. Ohio. It is the last literary work to be
investigated not because it was the last work to be read, because chronologically,
Hurston’s Their Eves Were Watching God is a later work and was the last work to be
assigned and read in the class. “The Untold Lie ” is placed at the end of the study for
several important reasons. Firstly, it was the last literary work to be investigated by the
focus group, who worked on it in the months after the actual course had ended.
Secondly, the form in which the analysis and interpretation of the work is presented
distinguishes it from the rest of the literary works because it is presented dramatically.
341
Lastly, because of the distinctiveness of the form, the significance of the content, and
the fact that the play combines the words and the perspectives of the students, the
feminists and me, it works as a metaphor for the study, capturing essence of the research
project and the perspectives, struggles, and conflicts of all those involved in the study.
Explanation of the Format
Like the other literary works, Sherwood Anderson's “The Untold Lie” was
investigated in the two classrooms and in personal interviews with the focus group
participants. However, it was also studied in a series of small group discussions and
improvisational workshops conducted with the ten focus group participants.
1 had originally thought that creating a film update for this story would be a
good social imagination strategy for focusing the students’ attention on the governing
textual ideologies and on the relevance of a film adaptation of such a story for
contemporary audiences. So, 1 engaged the focus group participants in an investigation
of the challenges presented by the story for such a project.
During the early part of the discussion, I charged that Anderson’s story about
Ray Pearson and Hal Winters turned on an androcentric perspective and made its point
by means of a androcentric representation of Minnie Pearson and the institution of
marriage. I challenged them to decide if and how they planned to address Anderson’s
portrayal of Minnie as a sharp voiced shrew whose identity as a wife was synonymous
with the harness on the 'soon-to-be-worn out old horse.’ It was my idea that this
representation of women and marriage, if kept in a 1999 update, would contribute to the
reproduction of a tired archetype of ‘woman as ball and chain’ for yet another
generation. I also argued that it would not play well for today’s youth.
There was much resistance especially from Dale who believed that the archetype
of “women as ball and chain” still works today, and that without a negative portrayal of
342
women, Anderson’s point would be weakened. There was also resistance from Charles,
who, as we remember, except when considering “Hills Like White Elephants,” is a
purist when it comes to literature, and speaks in defense o f the author and of universal
meanings, and against mixing politics and literature. For the purpose of engaging the
students in deconstruction of the piece, and to alert them to the androcentrism, I
engaged them in conversations and dialogues geared at challenging the idea that the
story demanded a shrewish wife.
The enthusiasm for the film update waned (mostly because of the time
constraint). However, there was enthusiasm from the girls who enjoyed the idea of
brainstorming a stage adaptation of the story in which silenced female characters could
speak, and nagging shrews could be imagined differently. They engaged in staging
some scenes and in improvising conversations between silent characters to deconstruct
the text for the experimental drama. Time constraints prevented the students from
writing the play. However, I wrote the play that the group was unable to finish.
By organizing their responses (transcribed from discussions, and interviews)
into a one act play, I used writing as an additional method o f inquiry (Richardson, 1994)
and discovery (St. Pierre, 1995) to create “a new form of reflexive and transgressive
verisimilitude” (Denzin, 1994, p. 304). In this dramatic form, “text intrudes upon text
in an enabling disruption” (Butler, 1999, p. 23) and captures the students’ perspectives
and deliberations and my struggles more poignantly.
In addition, by dramatizing the study, I have been able to more clearly identify
students’ positions and the dynamics of the interactions, more critically assess the
effects o f the teaching strategies used, and more economically demonstrate the
experience in which we all participated. More importantly, I have been able to
construct a metaphor not only for the study of “The Untold Lie,” but also for the entire
research project. This dramatic piece illustrates the responses, the textual negotiations,
343
and the dialogic encounters, which characterized the project. It also demonstrates the
transaction in a way that no other method could have done, crystallizing the struggles
with the gender issues in the text that would not have been possible with narration.
Engaging in experimental writing has served as one process of interpreting this
research data. With that in mind, 1 have decided to describe and interpret the data for
this story with the one-act play 1 wrote, instead of describing and interpreting the data as
1 have done with the other literary works. For “The Untold Lie,” 1 have engaged the
entire group in the storytelling process by employing the students as players, and
presenting the interpretation of the in dramatic, rather than narrative form.
1 believe it is the most effective way to present the experience, as it joins the
actual dialogue from the story with the students’ responses, and their interactions with
each other, the text, and me. It also elucidates their responses to a feminist literary
criticism of the story (represented by the WOMAN). Lines attributed to each student are
the lines that that particular student uttered during the discussions. The WOMAN is a
composite of Judith Fetterley and o f me, and her lines are a combination of my thoughts
and Fetterley s quoted words, which represent my perspective. The lines-of the narrator
and the characters from story, are Anderson’s lines.
344
“THE UNTOLD LIE”
Sherwood Anderson
A WORKSHOP DRAMATIZED
By Pat Zumhagen
A radical critique of literature, feminist in impulse, would take the work first of all as a clue to how we live, how we have been living, how we have been led to imagine ourselves, how our language has trapped us as well as liberated us; and how we can begin to see—and therefore live— afresh. Rich, 1979, p. 18
ChoiceBecause Winesburg. Ohio is an often-assigned high school work, I chose to
discuss one story from that book. I chose “The Untold Lie” because I see it as revolving around a subtle, yet clear androcentric perspective.
SynopsisIn this piece, which is one of the short stories in Anderson’s novel, Winesburg.
Ohio, a fifty-year-old Ray Pearson is forced to look back on his own life as a result of the fact that his young friend, Hal Winters, has gotten his girlfriend Nell Gunther pregnant. The situation is reminiscent of Ray’s own history, for he had gotten his now wife, Minnie, in trouble when they were young, and it had changed his life forever for the worse. Ray struggles during the course of the story with how to respond to Hal’s question of whether he should “marry and settle down” and “put himself into the harness to be worn out like an old horse. ”
Ray’s wife is sharp featured and sharp tongued, and he clearly resents her and the life he lives with her. He claims, at one point, that his children are just “accidents of life,” that he didn’t owe Minnie anything, and that Hal doesn’t owe Nell anything either. After a scolding from his wife, he is determined to go back to tell Hal not to marry. But, when he gets there, Hal has already decided that he is going to marry Nell, that he wants to be married, settle down and have children. Ray lost his nerve, and said nothing, but realizes after seeing Hal, that “whatever he had told him would have been a lie.” And, on the way home to Minnie, he has some pleasant memories of “evenings spent with is thin legged children in the tumble down house by the creek,” realizing that his adult life was spent literally in the middle of a conflict between responsibility and freedom.
Mv readingThis Sherwood Anderson story is one of my favorite short stories in American
literature. The bind that Ray Pearson is in is heartbreaking and familiar to many who
have felt the tension involved in the battle between freedom and responsibility, lust and
long term commitment. Anderson dramatically and effectively captures the divided
345
man who has been beaten by his decision to be responsible, but can’t quite take the road
to freedom or recommend it to anyone else in his situation. Unfortunately, to tell his
story, Anderson silences the voices of the women, making the women only a reference
point for a patriarchal limited perspective. Anderson chooses to elicit sympathy for his
main character by depicting Ray’s wife as the scolding, shrewish, ‘ball and chain’
which she has become during the course of their marriage. Because the story is told
from Ray's point of view, the uncritical reader is lured into Ray’s perspective that Hal’s
decision to “do the right thing” will bring him to the same unfortunate end that Ray has
reached. The men are drawn as mirror images of each other, thus implicating not just
Minnie but Nell and other women into the role of ‘ball and chain.’ My objection to the
story is that he depicts a divided man by implicating women as central culprits in
marital discord and his disappointment with the institution. Though I love the story, I
feel a need to reveal a problematic depiction of marriage when reading the story with
young, impressionable readers. A dialogically feminist (Lundberg, 1989) reader is
called upon to cut through the sexist exclusion which is based on a patriarchal ideology.
346
REVISIONISM IN ONE ACT
Challenging dominant versions o f femininity will necessitate developing alternative textual strategies for the classroom, which move beyond simple realistic readings of the ‘world’ of the fiction. Taylor, 1993, p. 141
More studies that center on previously marginalized perspectives need to be performed, both for literary and for sociopolitical reasons
Lundberg, 1989, p. 199
CharactersPlav Within the PlavActor Playing Narrator: A storyteller telling the tale.Actor Playing Ray Pearson: A fifty-year old farm hand.Actor Playing Hal Winters: A twenty-two year old farmhandActor playing Minnie Pearson (Ellen): Ray’s sharp featured, sharp voiced wifeDirector: DaleDramaturge: CharlesStage Manager: HowardNell Gunther: Alicia playing Hal’s girlfriendThe WOMAN: Feminist professor, representing owners o f theatre.Chorus: Alicia, Ellen, Brenda, Hillary, Marie, Maynard, and Sarah.
This is a One Act ‘play within a play’ in six scenes. The time is the present. The entire play takes place in a theatre, where the troupe is rehearsing Dale’s stage adaptation for Sherwood Anderson’s story “The Untold Lie,” from Winesburg. Ohio. Scenes I and III and VI (Dale’s “Untold Lie” play within the play), take place in the field where Ray and Hal work as field hands. Ray’s house in the background. Scene II (play within the play) takes place in Ray’s bam. The bam is on a swivel in the back of the farmhouse and tums for Scene II so that the audience can get a glimpse into Ray’s homelife and private life with his wife, Minnie. Scenes IV and V and interruptions in the other scenes, involve the comments and reactions of those viewing the play rehearsal.
The set is designed for a proscenium stage in a regular theatre where Dale is attempting to rehearse his play. The scenes are played center stage slightly on the diagonal facing down stage left. Dale’s director’s chair is placed down stage left so that he can watch the action. The choms members are members of the troupe are watching this rehearsal from a slightly raised area upstage right, left and center.
347
SCENE ONE
A stage somewhere
The two main characters in the inner play are Ray Pearson and Hal Winters. “Ray is a quiet, serious, rather nervous man with a brown beard and shoulders rounded by too much and too hard labor.” Hal, his fellow employee, is a young man in his early twenties, a bad one,’ with a reputation for drinking, devilment and women scrapes. When the play opens, Ray, a 50-year-old farm hand, is in a sad, distracted mood, and is affected by the beauty of the country.
Stage manager: OK places. We are going to run the play. (To the chorus) You guys can stay and watch, but you have got to be quiet. I am trying to set lights and running time. OK? All set. Dale.
Dale. Ok, let’s hit it.
LIGHTS UP. SCENE ONE:
Hal and Ray are husking corn in the Held on a morning in late October. Ray is staring into space over the fence, dreaming of the beauty of the countryside.
Narrator: Ray and Hal were husking com and occasionally something was said and they laughed. Then came silence. Looking out at the yellows and reds of the fall scene, Ray began to think o f the time, long ago, when he had wandered into the woods to gather nuts, hunt rabbits or just smoke his pipe. His marriage had come about on one of these days of wandering. He had induced a girl to go with him for a walk, and something had happened. He was thinking that afternoon how it had affected his whole life. He had forgotten about Hal when he uttered the words:
Ray: (staring into space) Tricked by Gad, that’s what I was, tricked by life and made a fool of!
WOMAN: enters and makes her way into the audience.
Hal: Well, has it been worth while? What about it, eh? What about marriage and all that? (laughs, and then the laugh dies down and he begins to pace and says, in a worried tone). Has a fellow got to do it? Has he got to be harnessed up and driven through life like a horse? (paces back and forth thinking for a while . . . .(finally) I’ve got Nell Gunther in trouble. I ’m telling you but you keep your mouth shut.
They stare at each other for several beats—really seeing each other.
Hal: Well then, old daddy. Come on. Advise me. I’ve got Nell in trouble. Perhaps you’ve been in the same fix yourself. I know what everyone would say is the right thing to do, but . . . what do you say? Shall I marry and settle down? Shall I put myself into the harness to be worn out like an old horse?
348
The WOJVIAN (comes from out of the audience) and stops the play in the middle of the action:
WOMAN: WAIT A MINUTE. WAIT A MINUTE. WAIT JUST A MINUTE. HOLD IT! HOLD IT! HOLD IT! STOP RIGHT THERE! STOP EVERYTHING! WHAT IS THIS?
Dale (director) jumps up from his director chair and enters. What in the hell? Stage manager enters, (baffled): Ok, lights up.
HOUSE LIGHTS UP.
WOMAN (sarcastically to herself): Harnessed up and driven through life like an old horse? Whose words are these? Who will harness him? Where is the director of this thing? Who’s the writer?
Dale: That would be me . . . on both counts.
WOMAN: Are you kidding? In the year 2000? Where is this Nell Gunther? Nell Gunther! Where are you? I think we need to see the character of Nell Gunther? I think she needs to hear what people are saying about her here. Maybe she needs to speak for herself. Respond. (Questioningly) Harnessed up and driven through life like a horse?
Dale (to stage manager): Who in the hell is this broad?
Stage manager: I haven’t a clue. I saw her walk in a few minutes ago. She has been sitting in the audience. Maybe she’s the rep they’ve sent up from the watchdog group to see the show in rehearsal. They own the building. I told you. They are dedicated to politically correct art or something of the kind. One of the students thinks she also teaches a Women’s Studies course at the university. But, no one knows her name.
Dale (trying to be polite): Excuse me. Mam, but just what in the hell do you think you are doing? There is a play going on here? Who are you and how do you get the nerve to stop my play? Get off the stage! We are trying to run a tech rehearsal.
WOMAN (dramatically): I have been forced out of my seat by this onerous display of misogynist dialogue that somehow equates a married man with a horse that is harnessed up and driven through life. (Sarcastically) And, I guess we know who might be doing the driving? Women once again reduced, subjugated, made the object of moral indignation and the story’s hostility. Women’s subservience reified in the hearts and minds of yet another generation. Do you not see the androcentric perspective undergirding this dialogue? The woman here is turned into a ball and chain responsible for the pain and suffering of MANkind? Do you not see the patriarchal ideology reinscribed in and driving this dialogue? Who wrote this abomination, anyway? Who defined marriage in this odious way?
Dale (now fully exasperated, but trying to remain controlled and using measured speech, to Stage manager): What is she talking about?
Stage manager: I haven’t a clue.
349
Dale (to woman): Mam. Whatever your name is. One of the great short story writers of the twentieth century originally wrote this piece. Sherwood Anderson. And, I have written the stage adaptation. I’m trying to be bloody polite here, but (yells, losing control). You are in the middle of my play here and (regaining control, softly and measured) there is no character named Nell Gunther. You are mistaken. She is not a character. She is merely referred to in the play. Sit down and watch the play and you will see. The men talk about her. This is their story. It is about the men. It’s a poignant story about a man dealing with the two warring sides of himself. Classic. Universal. Nell, unfortunately, does not speak for herself. She does not exist!
WOMAN: Very unfortunately, especially if she is going to be referred to as a harness, (whining) And, well, that’s nothing new, now is it? That story is as old as the hills. But, perhaps it is time she did speak for herself. We are not in Anderson’s time anymore. This is the 21st century. If you are updating, you might consider the life in your upped date.
Dale: Listen, lady. I’ll up ya one.
Stage manager: That’s enough Dale. Just watch. Things are going to resolve.
(WOMAN resigns herself temporarily and goes back to her seat)
Dale (whispers to Howard): Is she staying till the bitter end?
Stage manager: I think so.
Dale: Gy. Ok let’s role. Let’s pretend she’s not here. Scene II
Stage manager: OK everyone. Places for Scene II
Dale: Yikes! What next?
SCENE TWO
The same stage somewhere
Actors rehearsing Scene H of Dale’s adaptation of Anderson’s Story which is set in his barn later the same day. Ray is puttering in the barn. A child’s bitter weeping can be heard in the background.
LIGHTS UP
Narrator: After the talk with Hal, Ray had not returned to the cornfield but had worked in the bam. As the scene opens, he is staring once again into the beauty of the country . . . this time into the failing light.
Enter Minnie: trudging toward the barn, looking annoyed, calling after Ray in a shrill, nagging voice.
Minnie: RAY, RAY. WHERE ARE YOU?
350
Narrator: Ray wanted to do something that he had never done before, shout or scream or hit his wife with his fists or something equally unexpected and terrifying. He looked hard at her back as he followed her out of the bam but she seemed all right. She only wanted him to go into town for groceries and as soon as she had told him what she wanted, she began to scold:
Minnie: (scolding in a shrill voice). You’re always puttering. Now I want you to hustle. There isn’t anything in the house for supper and you’ve got to get to town and back in a hurry.
Ray (putters around the barn, picking things up)
Minnie (scolding): The children will cry and cry. Why are you always puttering?
WOMAN (jumps up and re-enters from audience: That’s it. STOP IT. STOP IT NOW. Aw come on. I can’t take any more. You’ve got to be kidding.
Stage manager: Stop everything. House lights up. Here we go again.
HOUSE LIGHTS UP
Dale rises (exasperated) from his director’s chair
Dale: Now what?
WOMAN (to Dale) This can’t be what she gets to say? And you can't really be having Ray trudging behind her like that in that deferential wimpy way. NOT IN AN UPDATE, ANYWAY. Isn’t this just a bit too easy? A bit of a duty trick on the little woman here? A set up? Right in the middle o f Ray’s mid-life crisis, his existential angst, Minnie gets to play out the wicked witch of the west scene? This guy is whipped. Are you telling me that this is any kind of realistic representation of women or men in marriage? Then? Now? Leave it to a man to write something like this.
Dale following her up to the stage (wiping the sweat from his face).
Dale: Mother of the good Lord, God. Will someone throw this feminazi out of here? (To WOMAN) What do you want now? What in the hell is your problem? This is all she gets to say.
WOMAN: Why is this bitchy scene here the one that Minnie gets to play at this point? Will we be left with only this as an image of the only woman with any lines in the play? How are all of these decisions going on around her and Nell without them having anything to say? They have been essentially left out of their own story. THEY HAVE BEEN SILENCED MARGINALIZED, ERASED. And what’s more, you are setting Minnie up here.
Dale (QUIETLY, in measured cadence, to WOMAN): Madam. This is not Minnie’s story. This is Ray’s story. And, it is not your update, (now hysterical) it is mine! And, I have chosen to be true to the original.
351
WOMAN: Well it doesn’t have to be M innie's story, BUT WHY IS SHEPORTRAYED IN THIS TERRIBLY BITCHY WAY? Even Wayne Booth thinks that the historical defense robs you of your responsibility to living women?
Dale: Who in the hell is Wayne Booth? And, who cares? She is portrayed this way because she is bitchy.
WOMAN: An example of circuitous logic at its worst. This portrayal is a dated, dangerous sexist stereotype. And this ball and chain thing . . . (To Ellen, playing Minnie) Darling, haven't we women put up with this crap long enough? This stuff can’t be being put on in the year 2000, can it? What kind of messages will young people get about women when they see this crap, dear? You should be demanding more. Getting to explain Minnie’s character, maybe . . . in a different tone perhaps. Anyway this won’t work in this society. People don’t think of women as balls and chains and harnesses anymore
(Stage actors freeze as chorus speaks)
Chorus (Hillary, in the audience, to Marie, seated next to her) taken up with what is going on): She's right about Minnie. I mean, it almost makes sense that she is the way she is right now. I mean, she made a mistake and because of it, she ruined any chances she might have had to do other things with her life too. And no wonder she is bitch. I mean, I would be bitchy too if I got involved with a guy and I got pregnant and I had to get married before I got to go to college or whatever. I wonder if Anderson was portraying her as a bitch because she too was disappointed that she had to marry him. Or, did he just think married women were bitches?Minnie (coming out of the freeze): I don’t know if she is bitch, maybe just bitter. (Returns to freeze with others).
Chorus (Hillary): She probably wasn’t like that when she was in the relationship at first. And she got pregnant and then it was a matter of time. It would be hard to go through all of that and still be sweet.
Stage manager (raises his arm to the chorus in upper audience): I am warning you guys up there. You can watch the production, but one more word and you are out of here. This is not a bloody literature class or (looking at the WOMAN) a consciousness raising group. This is a rehearsal of a play! I’m warning you! Keep it down. We are trying to run tech.
Stage actors unfreeze
Dale (to WOMAN): Madam. I am a writer. I know something about archetypes. You are mistaken about this not working today. This archetype still works in our society. The ball and chain archetype for women still works. Everybody gets it. You are the only one having trouble with this.
WOMAN: Are you saying that because this is Ray’s story and this is what is going on in Ray’s head that this exonerates Anderson (and you, I might add) from essentially portraying the woman in marriage like a ball and chain?
Dale: That is the way that Ray is viewing it and he is presenting that viewpoint. This is the way that Anderson was seeing it.
352
WOMAN: My poor dear. I would think you would be bright enough to realize that if the archetype still works, that that is our number one clue that there is something dreadfully wrong with this society. Is it your goal to make sure the archetype continues to work for the next 100 years?
Dale: Where in the hell is the dramaturge. (Yells) Charles, where are you? Can’t you see we are having a crisis here?Enter Charles (Dramaturge).
Stage manager: Take five everyone.
HOUSE LIGHTS UP.
Actors and chorus relax but do not leave their places.
Dramaturge (Charles in a William F. Buckleyesque manner, delivering as a speech): Madam. 1 think that the ball and chain mentality is not limited to guys looking at women as the ball and chain, but I think that society in general sees the state of marriage as a ball and chain, judging that 50% of marriages fail. I think it is not just the guys anymore saying that this marriage is holding me back. Now there are a good many women saying it.
WOMAN (to Charles): Well, easy for you to say, Mr. Dramaturge, when it is not the female character calling her husband a ball and chain. And, I imagine you are very clear about the ways in which husbands can be balls and chains to wives, no?
(To Minnie): Minnie, come over here, my dear.
WOMAN (To Minnie): Come over here Minnie. We have to talk. We have to do something about expanding your role. Perhaps setting up a conversation with Nell here. Something needs to be done here. You are setting a terrible example, don’t you think?
Dale. Nell where? There is no Nell! (Visibly annoyed) I appreciate your connection with this theatre. If you have one, but we have a contract here that I am the director, not you. Now, take a powder, buttinsky. Let’s continue with the play.
Minnie (meekly . . .playing the shy Stanislovsky student): Well, actually, Mr. Dixon, there are some things that I would like to say if I could. I have only these three lines and I really don’t think the audience gets to know my motivation well enough. I think the woman here is right. They think I am a bitch and they don’t think beyond that. But there is more. I may not always have been a bitch. I was a person too.
Dale (jumping up and down, screaming): We do not have to deal with your motivations. MINNNIE SIT DOWN. We get to know you through Ray. This is his story. Not yours. How many times do I have to tell you, you are a secondary character? Now be quiet and deliver the lines as they are written.
353
Minnie (A bit stronger): Well I am going to speak. I don’t like the way they are getting to know me only through Ray and Hal. It might be his story, but it makes me into a stereotype, not a character. And, I think that implicates all women. I do.
Dale (verging on hysteria, to Minnie). No you cannot have any more lines. You are secondary. READ THE SCRIPT. YOU DO NOT SAY ANYTHING MORE. You whine, that’s it. GET OFF THIS STAGE. This story is about the men. The women’s movement has gone beyond equality. Now no one cares about the men! Somebody has to stand up for the men!
(controlled. To the WOMAN) Sit down. Take it easy. The story is about two guys and not their wives. And the two guys probably aren’t in love with the people that they had gotten in trouble, and probably shouldn’t have gotten involved with them. THAT is the ball and chain. That is what this is about. Now promise me that you will watch the rest of the play and not interrupt anymore.
Actors freeze
Chorus: (Marie, wagging her fînger) I think this is yet another instance. I think this is yet another instance of people not taking responsibility for their own actions. Like Minnie and Nell screwed up, they shouldn’t have been messing around.
Chorus: (Brenda): Yeah
Chorus (Hillary): But . . . to spend your whole life with someone you don’t like though . . . Why don’t people think?
Chorus (Brenda): Yeah. But, it’s a mistake though: People shouldn’t be punished for life for a mistake.
Chorus (Marie, completely carried away and standing) I don’t feel sorry for either of them. Nell and Minnie should have thought o f how of how it would turn out before having sex. All four of them. Sex is not a recreational activity. It is not! They think they are invincible. They can have sex and do drugs and drive fast and nothing will ever get me because I am young.
Chorus (Brenda, pulling Marie down): SHHH. You are getting carried away. We are going to get thrown out of here. Didn’t you hear the stage manager?
Actors unfreeze
Dale (to WOMAN on stage) So, obviously you see, being tied to them would put them in to a sort of ball and chain It doesn’t matter that they are women. It is just an obligation that they have that they don’t really want because they got themselves into a bad situation. Do you get it now?
WOMAN (returning to her seat): Do / get it? You are missing the point. They always say it doesn’t matter that they are women. Why doesn’t anyone write the reverse then? Let’s do a reversal then? How would you feel if men were the secondary characters all the time?
Dale. Forget it. Sit down. Ok, let’s get back to it. Let’s role Scene III
354
SCENE m
Same stage somewhere. Rehearsing Scene m . Set in the fîeid (same as Scene I) later on the same day.
SHOW LIGHTS UP
Narrator: Ray’s wife had given him the money for the groceries. He climbed the fence and made his way toward the store. It was just growing dark and the scene that lay before him was lovely. The whole world seemed to Ray to have come alive with something just as he and Hal had suddenly become alive when they stood in the cornfield staring into each other’s eyes. He could not stand it. All of a sudden, he forgot all about being a quiet farm hand and throwing off his tom overcoat began to run across the field. As he ran, he shouted a protest against his life, against all life, against everything that makes life ugly
Ray (Yelling): There was no promise made. I didn’t promise my Minnie anything and Hal hasn’t made any promise to Nell. I know he hasn’t. She went into the woods with him because she wanted to go. What he wanted she wanted. Why should I pay? Why should Hal pay? Why should anyone pay? I don’t want Hal to become old and worn out. I’ll tell him. I won’t let it go on. I’ll catch Hal before he gets to town and I’ll tell him. I must catch Hal and tell him. The children . . . they are the accidents of life. Hal. They are not mine or yours, I had nothing to do with them
WOMAN (whispering to Ellen in audience, nudging her to the stage
Enter Minnie (somewhat annoyed, starting to talk as she walks to the stage): Well, wait a minute. What do you mean you don’t owe me anything? What do you mean our children are the accidents of life? What are you talking about?
Dale (from his chair, flustered): Minnie. READ THE SCRIPT. You don’t get to respond to this. You are not on stage now. (Waving his arms) This is Act III, not II. Get off. Get off!
WOMAN wandering around the audience encouraging the girls to cause an uprising.
Nell gets up and makes her way to the stage, following Minnie.
Nell enters.
Dale (rising and entering): Who in the hell are you?Nell (as played by Alicia): I am Nell.
Dale (having now lost control): What in the hell are you doing here? Oh my God. You are not even a secondary character. You are one and a half. No. You are a noncharacter. You are not in this play. Where did you come from? Who are you? Aaarrrgh.
Enter the WOMAN.
355
WOMAN: W e’ve been talking in the balcony. We think she needs to havesomething to say. She wants to, don’t you Nell. After all, she’s being referred to as a young woman with every chance of tinning into a ball and chain. And Mirmie here seems a bit distraught with the way things are going with her portrayal here as well.
Nell (quietly, sheepishly): Actually, I just think for this audience, I am being misrepresented as someone who will go along with whatever is decided by Hal so that I don’t look like a slut. I don’t get to decide anything. I’m interested in my motivation. At this time in history would I be just waiting to see what Hal would decide?
Actors Freeze
Chorus (Brenda): I think there is a huge significance for Nell not having any lines. It clearly shows she’s not the one who gets to make the decision for her own future. She is basically waiting to hear what will be her life. Is this realistic?
Dale (Now responding to audience): IT WAS REALISTIC!
Chorus (Candy): It is not her decision. If Hal decides ‘yes,’ they will get married, so it really doesn’t seem to be her decision and it doesn’t seem like she has her own life so she has nothing to say. Will that fly today?
Chorus (Brenda): Yeah
Marie (To Brenda): Now who’s going to get us thrown out of here?Actors Unfreeze
Nell (continuing sweetly): And, I think Minnie has been misrepresented too. I mean. I wonder if she and I could have a conversation. I mean, I am pregnant and I have a decision to make here too. And I have worries too. I would like to talk to Minnie, if I could. I mean. Could we create that conversation? 1 think it would help. Hal and Ray are making this decision for me, and I am kinda scared myself and have a few things to ask Minnie. I have some thoughts too.
Dale. WHAT? This cannot work if Ray is not around for a conversation between Minnie and Nell. It will destroy the story. You have got your central story and it is all about Hal’s crisis and Ray’s nostalgia and his moral dilemma. EVERYONE ELSE IS A SECONDARY CHARACTER. Where in the hell is the dramaturge? CHARLES!
Dramaturge (to Minnie and Nell a la William F. Buckley, pencil in hand, delivering line as a monologue): Too often, today, people who update try to put the politically correct spin on it. In The Scarlet Letter. Hawthorne never lets you forget that Hester has committed a grave crime. And, that it is a horrible thing that she did. In the screen update, it almost seemed to make her into a woman’s rights liberation activist. And, it just took away from the original intent because you can’t try to fit today’s views into an old story. We can’t be wondering about the women’s attitudes here
WOMAN: Do today’s readers know this?
356
Nell: Well. I have some things to say, here.
Dale: You have nothing to say. You are nothing. You are no one. (stamps his feet).
Dramaturge (to Nell, continuing on in his monotone): And, this story can be updated without changing anything because it carries a universal theme that transcends cultures and time periods. Like Antigone, you can still look at that and say, “Wow, that still applies today even if it is still written a thousand years ago. Aaid I think the same thing holds true of “The Untold Lie.” You see, you don’t have any lines because not having lines is representative of how you were portrayed in the original short story . . . (at the top of his voice) IN WHICH YOU DID NOT APPEAR.
Nell: Well, if I don’t appear, the audience will confuse me with Minnie. That’s how Anderson planned it. We women are all the same. But, that isn’t fair. This story is about me, and I don’t understand this universal stuff. I am all about the particulars. I am situated. What makes you think anyone else is going to be able to think of people as universals?
Charles (To Dale, giving in): I don’t think we are going to be able to convince them of anything until we allow them an improv here. Let’s go with it. It will take a few minutes, they’ll get over it and we can get back to the play. At this point I don’t see anything else to do.
Dale: What are you talking about? Who ARE these people? I have never heard of anything like this. Let them improvise MY play? This play is about men, not women. It is about how the men feel. This chick seems to think she owns the theatre
Stage manager: I think I did tell you that she might represent the people who do, right?
Dale: UGH Ok. Stage manager. Let’s go. Let’s have lights.(to women): Nell, Minnie. It’s all yours. Improvise it your way then. W e’re all ears and eyes.
SCENE IV
Same stage somewhere
Minnie and Nell are improvising their scene behind the barn (same as Scene II).
STAGE LIGHTS UP
N arrator: I have no idea what I am supposed to say. Do I have a script?
Dale (sarcastically): No one has a script. It’s an improvisation. Go with it!
Narrator: Well. And, ah. And the women in the story, according to the woman, Minnie and Nell, are the victims of the story. It is hard to get a story’s point across without someone being the bad guy, but of course there is the possibility that
357
Anderson got his point across by picking an easy victim. He needed a shrew rather than a well-rounded character
Dale: Glory be to God, man, get on with it!
Narrator: And, so, the women have essentially hijacked the play and here they are. (runs off)
Nell: Minnie. Could I talk to you, please?
Minnie (grabs a rocker from back stage). Sure
Nell (kneeling aside the chair): I am in a situation where I have gotten pregnant by Hal and I don’t know what to do because . . . and I know that you have been in this situation. At least that is the word in the neighborhood. And. I don’t know how to go about this. I am nervous about this. I don’t know if he is gonna stay. I don’t know if I can handle this. And, I don't want to be tied down for the rest of my life. I don’t know what to do.
Actors Freeze
Chorus (Marie yelling): You and Minnie should have thought about how it would turn out before having sex. Nell, Tell her you understand the consequences of your actions. Give it up for adoption if you don’t want it.
Chorus (Sarah, agitated): Yeah, that is an option in 1925. No. Tell her about your own dreams. Tell her what you will lose. What if he acts like a male ball and chain . .. drinking, gambling, and cheating . . . the things that men do when they are balls and chains? Tell them what you will lose.
Chorus (Marie, now forgetting where she is and doing a monologue): Dreams. Dreams (stands up, takes the scene). This is exactly why I will not sleep with a guy until I can have the ring on my finger, and we did the wedding thing because I know that it would get in my way. There are places I want to go and just, what if all of a sudden I found something I am so passionate about and then I can’t do it because I made a bad choice and thought this sounded like a good idea at the moment
Stage manager: Shut up you two.
Actors Unfreeze
Minnie (To Nell): Well, Nell. How can you not be tied down for the rest of your life? What do you mean you don't want to be tied down? Didn’t you get yourself into this situation? I can’t pity you.
Chorus (Marie to Minnie): You go girl!
Nell (Alicia): Well, don’t you have any pity for me in this situation. I didn’t want this to happen.
Minnie (Ellen): Well. I feel bad, but it was your conscious decision and so, you are responsible. You need to handle it.
358
Nell (Alicia): Don’t you feel bad?
Minnie (Ellen): I feel bad but not bad enough.
Nell: Well, it’s that, and. I guess I am afraid of becoming a . . . kind of naggy, bitchy person.
Minnie: I sort of had to mold Ray to what I needed. And, to do that, I had to become a stronger person. You will too.
Nell: And, so are you stronger now, and n o t . . . . ?
Minnie: I think I am definitely stronger. Not only did I get him to stay, but I also control these six children.
Dramaturge (from his seat). I think Minnie is highly manipulative and Ray should just leave her and go away. (To Dale) I told you they would hang themselves.
WOMAN (again leaping out of her seat and coming on stage): Girls, girls, girls, you are playing into their hands. Minnie. This is our one chance. You are blowing it! Minnie, Minnie, Minnie (a la Bob Newhart’s Vinnie Vinnie Vinnie). Remember. Up until now, you have been portrayed as the cause of the men being worn out . . . as the bitch who drives the workhorse.
Minnie. I don’t know if I am a bitch. Maybe just bitter, I am slightly bitter but I am accepting where I am.
Nell (Alicia, out o f character): Minnie. I don’t like the way you are playing this. Let’s switch roles.
Minnie (Ellen, out of character): Switch roles? What are you talking about?
Nell (Alicia out o f character): You are too strong. And, I can do it better. I have some things to say.
Minnie (Ellen, out of character). Well, fine then. Maybe I have some things to say too.
(Minnie and Nell Switch)
Nell (Ellen): So, as I was saying, I hear you are kind of a BITCH, and I am afraid of being that too. Have you always been a naggy person like that? I mean . . . I don’t want to be like you and I wonder . . . will I? It seems like I am destined by the men to turn out just like you.
Minnie (Alicia, much softer): Well, you can’t think this is easy. This farm. These kids. And the way it all started. And, now Ray staring off into space.
Nell: I’ve been wanting to ask you. Did you just want to get married when it all started? Did you have anything to say about it? How did you feel then?
359
Minnie (Alicia): Well I guess I wondered if would Ray would protect my unborn children and me or would he spite me for ruining his dreams? And, I wondered, “Did I ruin his dreams?”I had dreams too.
(Actors Freeze)
Chorus (Hillary, walking to the stage): Yeah. She probably wasn’t bitchy like that when she was in the relationship at first. And she got pregnant and then it was a matter of time. It would be hard to go through all of that and still be sweet. I mean, it almost makes sense that Minnie is the way she is right now. I mean, she made a mistake and because of it, she ruined any chances she might have had to do other things with her life too. You would get mad if you got stuck with a child and a husband all of a sudden and you couldn’t go and do what you wanted to do and you had to be stuck in the house taking care of a child and a husband. You would be upset too.
Chorus (Maynard, coming to stage): Yeah, tell her you are bitter because you had several kids and that is a big responsibility and a huge financial burden. Tell her you are trapped with all of those kids. Tell her the woman is usually the bitch anyway because she is the one who takes care of the kids and she gets very frustrated.
WOMAN (getting agitated): Simmer down, Maynard.
WOMAN: Don’t tell her the woman is usually the bitch. Tell her that women don’t always run the show. They don’t even usually run it!
Maynard: And tell her you are bitter because you are not attractive anymore. She’s bitter because she used to have a nice figure and now her husband isn’t interested in her anymore because she has had six kids and he thinks she is funny looking . . . and that would turn anyone into a bitch
WOMAN: Maynard. That’s enough.
WOMAN: Stage manager. Howard. Could someone move Maynard temporarily to another part of the stage? . Or shut him up. Maynard. This is not where we are trying to go here. That is the beauty myth, Maynard. A classic example. That is not the message we are trying to get across here.
Chorus (Hillary): No, tell her you never felt you got complete and total help from Ray.
Candy (pleading, slowly walking down stage center to Minnie, and delivering her speech down stage center under lights as in a performance): Minnie. Do not tell her to marry him for the sake of the kid. Stop telling her to marry him acting like the bitch that they say you are. Tell her to make sure it is what she wants to do. Tell her to do it because she wants to be there. Tell her you felt like you weren’t really ready for it because you were too young and that you should have waited and made sure that it was what you wanted to do. Tell her if you had done that, you might not be a bitch. Tell her the truth. Tell her you are a bitch not because “women are bitches” and “harnesses” but because you are not happy. You are not happy because he doesn’t live up to what he should be doing and because you both made mistakes when you
360
were too young. Now, he stares into the horizon all the time and doesn’t hold up his end of the bargain. So, you have to nag. Tell her that Ray gets to leave the house all the time and you have to stay at home with the six kids. Tell her that he isn’t happy which makes you not happy and that you are both miserable together with all these kids. Tell her. Please. And, Minnie. Tell her the truth. That you are sick of this ball and chain rap, and that he is something of a ball and chain himself. And tell her about your dreams. Your dreams, Minnie.
Audience applauds. WOMAN hugs Candy. Girls hug each other. Lots of activity.
Dale (finally rising from chair). This is ridiculous. You people can’t even agree on what it is you think should be done here. You’ve had your fifteen minutes o f fame. Back to the secondary character classification. Let’s go on with the play. Let’s role the Scene V.
Stage manager: Places everyone. Final Scene. Stage Lights for Scene V
Chorus (drawing together, each taking a line): No. We do agree on some things. We may not agree on everything but we agree that Minnie may have had dreams, and that Nell may have them. (All) We agree that an update making the simplistic point that a wife is a ball and chain won’t fly today. We have had one too many stories where the man does the right thing and lives out his life as the hero and martyr with the wicked witch of the west. Why can’t it be his responsibility and not hers?
Charles (thinking.. now puts pencil behind his ear and begins usual recitation of lecture style monologue): I think that we must recapture the inherent message in the book. It is important to see what the author had in mind or what he had subconsciously in mind when he wrote this story. When people update, they have to take certain precautions. When you do an update, two things are necessary. You have to stay true to the story' and if you go too far trying to update it, you lose what the author was originally trying to say.
(Company begins to discuss issues)
Howard: Well, if you ask me, the problem with trying to translate the story into a play was flawed from the start. Nowadays, you don’t just have the option of getting married or being irresponsible. You have all these other options. Adoption, abortion. That is why it doesn’t translate well. How do you roll all of those things into it?
Ellen: Yeah, the options make it difficult.
Alicia: But, not really. Those decisions are hard too.
WOMAN: But, how do we update it and still remain true to some essential part of this piece of literature. . . And remain conscious of what older white males did to women in some of these stories without allowing them to continue doing it over and over again in these updates
Dale: Well, we could turn it into a Hemingway story and call it “Hills Like WhiteElephants” That is a little more relevant.
361
Charles: I already did that update. Too late.
(Back to lecture mode) But, I did want to say . . . interestingly, that many times those options you are talking about aren’t even used today. America has the highest rate of teenage pregnancies in the industrialized world. Obviously, “The Untold Lie” could happen and does happen today.
WOMAN (pacing): I think the problem is easily solved, then. The story is about a man in crisis between his responsibility and love for his family, and his need to be free of that responsibility and free to chase his dreams. As old a conflict as time itself. We had three problems here. We’ve solved one. We’ve at least established that the women had dreams too. That is necessary. One other problem is these options. We can either make it a period piece or assume that like our dramaturge says, it will work today. The other problem is this ball and chain bitch archetype. That’s got to go . . .. Why can’t she just be nice but not the one he wanted to be with . . . or maybe the right one at the wrong time. Wouldn’t it work as strongly if she weren’t portrayed as a bitch?
Brenda: Yeah. He still might not be happy. He might just not want to be married to her. Just cuz a person is nice it doesn’t mean you want to be married to them.
Alicia: Yeah, I think it would work. Why would her bitchiness be the only thing making him unhappy there?
Howard: But, there has to be a victim somewhere. I don’t think he could have had Ray in the middle of such a decision without there being a bad guy.
Dale: There has to be something to make him feel badly or look poorly upon marriage or v/hatever. . . the discouraging thing for Hal. The play will not work without that!
Alicia: No, why can’t Ray be unhappy about just not loving Minnie, and about being stuck? Why is it that her bitchiness can be the only thing making him unhappy here? It’s just marriage that he doesn’t want. It doesn’t have to be . . . It’s not that his wife is making marriage bad, it is just the whole situation of being married and having to be there for all the time is bad, and that his dreams have been mined. Having to stay with his kids. This idea is much more interesting than the reason he is unhappy being because his wife is a bitch. His wife could be perfectly fine, and he is still not happy because he is married and he lost out on his dreams.
WOMAN: Yeah, I actually think it is more poignant if she isn’t a bitch. There is nothing worse than being stuck with someone nice that you really don’t want to be with—with a world out there you want to explore.
Brenda: Yeah, I just think it could be about regret . . . I think he regrets not having the chance to do anything when he was younger. But he is still stuck, because he loves his children. Yeah, it’s about regret. Why can’t it be about regret? That would work.
WOMAN: Or, about being in two places at once. I think it would work. Let’s see if the ending works with the idea of Minnie not necessarily being a bitch, but just that Ray is trapped into a situation that he wished he had avoided, and he wants to keep
362
Hal from being miserable if he can. He realizes that it is a trap because there are two sides to it. Cuz, in a way, he does want to do the right thing.
Dale (reluctantly, and compromising): Well, we can’t tell if it will work until we look at Scene V in terms of these ideas to see if it makes sense.
WOMAN: Ok, let’s try it.
Dale: Ok, let’s run V. I can’t believe I am saying this.
Stage manager. Lights for Scene V. Let’s try it.
LIGHTS UP
SCENE V
Same stage somewhere. Actors rehearsing final scene of Dale’s adaptation of Anderson’s “The Untold Lie.”
Set in the cornfield, same as Scene I and III
Narrator: Darkness began to spread over the fields as Ray Pearson ran on and on. His breath came in little sobs. When he came to the fence at the edge of the road and confronted Hal Winters, all dressed up and smoking a pipe as he walked jauntily along, he could not have told what he thought or what he wanted. Ray Pearson lost his nerve and this is really the end of the story of what happened to him. Hal winters jumped a ditch and coming up close to Ray put his hands into his pockets and laughed. He seemed to have lost his own sense of what had happened in the com field and when he put up a strong hand and took hold of the lapel of Ray’s coat, he shook the old man as he might have shaken a dog that misbehaved.
Hal: You came to tell me, eh? Well, never mind. I’m not a coward and I’ve already made up my mind. Nell ain’t no fool. She didn’t ask me to marry her. I want to marry her. I want to settle down and have kids.
Ray: It’s just as well. Whatever I told him would have been a lie.
Stage manager. House lights Up. That’s it!
HOUSE LIGHTS UP
SCENE VI
Same stage somewhere. Stagemanager, WOMAN, Dale dramaturge and the cast reacts to scene V
Stage manager: Ray didn’t have a vision, but, what is the word I am looking for, not a moment not of truth but a moment of fear, when he saw Hal going down his road and I guess he suddenly found himself doubting how he’s lived his life and he hadn’t looked at the good things, you know, so at the end, memories o f pleasant evenings spent with the thin legged children in the tumbled down house by the creek must have
363
come into his mind. So, the end would still work if Minnie hadn’t been a bitch, but had been the nice woman Ray didn’t really want to marry then. I think it would work just as well.
WOMAN: Yeah, he wants to stop him but he understands what Hal is going through . . . the same thing he went through . . . the fight between the responsibility to do the right thing and the need to be free to do what he wants and marry someone someday that he really loves. I think it works. I think it’s actually more poignant if Minnie is portrayed as a nice person. It would make it even sadder and more powerful.
Dale: But does it work dramatically? That is the question I’ve got. There is nothing more boring than a nice person, and nothing more dramatic than the interaction of a bitchy ball and chain and a miserable husband. And, without thinking that Nell is going to turn into a bitch, why would we think Hal was making the wrong decision?
WOMAN: Because it is clear that it v/as just a moment of weakness . . . not someone he loved. And, that point would have to be stressed. And, as I said, she could be just tired, and somewhat unhappy. Not necessarily a bitch.
Chorus: Yeah.
Dale: Ok, then, girls. You win. But, You, woman, whatever your name is . . . you will have to update it. It is not the play I want to write, or direct. I can’t justify altering what Anderson was trying to do. I don’t think it’s right.
Charles: Yes, touché, my boy.
Dale: Now, he comes through.(to WOMAN): Anyway, I would rather spend my time updating “The Gentle Lena ”
or A Farewell to Arms.
WOMAN: Ok, we’ll give it a shot. We’ll see what we can do. All right. Let’s get at it girls and boys. Let’s start brainstorming!
All chorus memhers surround WOMAN. They start brainstorming and what happens is that the kids start talking to each other. It seems they no longer need the WOMAN. She stays, for a while, watching. When they are engaged in the activity so that they lose sight of what she is doing, she gets her hat and hag and slowly walks out of the theatre the way she came in, unnoticed by the others,
LIGHTS DOWNTHE END
Play Analysis
The perspectives taken by each of the cast members in the play, with reference
to each other as well as to THE WOMAN, represent the students’ actual responses to
my discussion topic about the androcentric perspective at the center of the story. In a
364
larger sense, the play stands as a dramatic portrayal of the discussions about “The
Untold Lie” and many of the other stories we read as well. Dale’s resistance as the
director attempting to stay true to the original text was a resistance we saw during our
group and class discussions. Charles’ arguments honoring the authority of the author
and a resistance to revisionist work echo his arguments during discussion of The Great
Gatsbv and “The Untold Lie. ” Ellen, in taking on the role of Minnie, held Nell
accountable, playing her role according to the way she sees her responsibility in life
(Rosenblatt, 1978). Consequently, in engaging with the responsible Minnie, she began
to see the conflict from that perspective (Golden and Guthrie, 1986).
One interesting point was the way Alicia and Ellen switched roles when Alicia
was playing Nell and Ellen was playing Minnie. At one point in the improvisation from
which the scene was created, the same thing happened. Alicia, who was striving to
uncover some sympathy and understanding for Nell, was not getting it from the
intolerant Minnie (as played by Ellen), and attempted to change her character by
suggesting that she play Minnie and Ellen play Nell. When that happened, she was free
to break from the literary character and utter the words she wanted to say: that Minnie’s
job taking care of the kids and the farm was a hard one, and that she had her regrets.
This honesty and softness on the part of Alicia playing Minnie allowed Ellen (as
Nell) to ask questions about how things had been for her at the beginning o f her
marriage, and how she made the decision to marry in the first place. And, it is she who
utters the words “I had dreams too,” the words that succeeded in bringing the
perspective of the marginalized wife into the spotlight. In this way, this activity made a
difference for Ellen.
The comparisons between the play and the discussion of the short story
continue. The tension between the three main male characters on one side and Alicia
and the WOMAN on the other characterized many of the group discussions we had on
365
“The Untold Lie.” Howard, Charles and Dale had agreed on the idea that an update
could not work without the tension of the bitchy wife and the idea that “[tjhere has to be
something to make him look poorly upon marriage” (Dale). They also agreed that
“there has to be a victim somewhere” (Howard) Alicia and The WOMAN, on the other
hand, resisted stories working on a level that incriminated them.
In addition to the lead characters, each of the chorus members (Marie, Hillary,
Brenda, Candy and Maynard and Sarah) played the roles that they often played in class
discussions and in the case study group. And, the particular students involved had an
effect on the action (Beds and Peterson, 1991; Beds and Wells, 1989). Marie clearly
took on the role of the moralizer, and had an effect on the rest of the group. Brenda felt
sorry and tried to act as her own moral barometer; Sarah brought out the ironies o f the
cultural ignorance; and Hillary struggled to understand both sides of the situation.
Maynard continued to insist that wives will be bitchy because they do all the work and
lose their figures. The surprise was Candy, who gave the speech that caused the turning
point in the play, engaging everyone in the attempt to attempt a non-sexist update.
The choice was mine to give Candy the spotlight as she pleaded for Minnie to be
allowed to do what she wanted to do, without anyone forcing her. Candy, who
struggled with the contradictions of being a young girl at this time in history, was able
to write down those words for Nell, if not say them. I chose to have her say them,
loudly and clearly.
I also chose to have the WOMAN articulate my agenda loudly and clearly, with
words I wrote and the ones I borrowed from Judith Fetterley. This also characterized
our discussions on “The Untold Lie,” in which I was very frank about critiquing
Anderson’s depiction of women and marriage and the way he promotes stereotypes of
women and marriage, and silences the female perspective. I clearly felt that Anderson
had told his tale of two unfortunate men at the expense of more than two unfortunate
366
women. Writing and rereading this play, however, also enlightened me to level o f
amusement with which I depicted Fetterley and myself as The WOMAN. While I took
her seriously, I understood that some of the other characters did not understand her, and
found her to be a representation of a too-strident feminism. Perhaps by making her
scenes funny, I was striving to reduce the tension my agenda sometimes caused. On the
other hand, although I foregrounded the women, and clearly championed a feminist
perspective, I depicted the resistors with an understanding, gentle hand and some humor
as well. The result is that I do not feel that I have alienated either side in my struggle to
transform the play and the players. I think the reason for that is that I am endeared to all
of these students, and while I am committed to bringing about gender equality, I am also
committed to them as individuals and to their best interests.
The end of the play leaves them all struggling to find the right way to explode
the storyline that constitutes dominant identities in males and submissive ones in
females, and a gender inequality based on those binaries (Davies, 1992; Harper, 2000;
Martino, 1995; Obbink, 1992; Walkerdine, 1984;). Their struggle, with the cast of
characters joining together to attempt the update, mirrored my struggle as I attempted to
identify some pedagogical approach which would maintain the play’s aesthetic appeal
without engaging in the reproduction of an old formula (Bogdan, 1992,).
Listening to the words of the students, writing the play, and rereading the words,
helped me to realize that the students were, during this time, engaged with me in the
process of attempting to dismantle the subtle ideologies by which we are constructed,
yet most often unconsciously. The were engaged in an enormous task—that of
envisioning a story capable of capturing our divided selves without the ease of a cliche,
or a tired archetype which only serves to continue a system o f gender inequality. We
are still working on the update.
367
POST SCRIPT
Comprehensive Final Responses
At the end of the course, I administered a survey (Appendix B) to the larger
group (including the focus group) in order to determine what, if any, changes had taken
place in their responses to the literature and their perceptions o f the course from the
beginning to the end of the study. In the following discussion, survey questions and
student responses are identified, followed by my analyses of the effects of the course on
the students in terms of the data.
Question 1; What particular activity, discussion, or criticism gave you a more critical perspective about the representation of men and women and relationships in the literature?
Focus Group Social Imagination Discussion Other60% 30% 10%
Larger Group Social Imagination Discussion Other50% 25% 25%
Table 6.1: Teaching Approaches.
Sixty percent of the focus group members and fifty percent of the twenty-three
respondents from the larger group of thirty-five students identified the social
imagination activities as the techniques having the greatest effect on their consciousness
of literary gender issues. The students selected the drama activities in the study of Their
Eves Were Watching God and the drawing activities in the study of The Great Gatsbv
as their favorite social imagination activities, and mentioned self-designed final projects
as activities having a high impact on raising their consciousness to gender. In addition,
every one of the focus group participants identified the improvisational workshops as
having a strong impact.
368
Thirty percent of the focus group participants and over twenty-five percent of
the responding twenty-three students in the larger group identified discussion as the
strategy that had the most dramatic effect on their gender consciousness. This made
discussion the second favorite activity of the larger group as well as the focus group.
The majority identified the discussion of A Farewell to Arms as the one textual
investigation having the greatest impact on their awareness of gender issues in the
literature. Other discussions identified by students were those investigating Washington
Square and The Great Gatsbv. One focus group student, Howard (PJVI.), selected
Fetterley’s (1978) critical writings as the teaching approach having had the greatest
effect on raising his consciousness.
Teacher/Researcher commentarv
Social Imagination Activities
Data analysis supported the students’ perspectives and indicated that social
imagination activities were the most beneficial methods for stimulating awareness of
stereotypes and gender inequities in the larger group and with focus group members.
The data analysis also indicated that social imagination activities heightened students’
gender consciousness in ways that had not been possible through other techniques. The
activities involving students’ artistic, dramatic and creative exploration of the literature
activated their imaginations in ways that helped them to investigate relationships, and
envision possibilities by exploring the gender issues from within the texts.
Specifically, writing in role helped Candy to imagine and create a stronger, less
submissive response for Catherine Sloper (and for herself) and enabled Brenda and
Hillary to deliberate on the contradictions they had seen at the heart of Janie and
TeaCake’s relationship. This enabled them to resolve some of their own issues with the
novel and ‘trouble’ their own relationship ideals. This approach also helped Dale to
369
explore his own contradictions about compulsory heterosexuality by merging Gertrude
Stein's work with Hemingway’s A Farewell To Arms.
Drama activities in the improvisational workshops raised critical awareness in
students. Experimenting with writing and improvising the film update of “The Gentle
Lena” led students to empathize with the characters and explore connections with the
pressures in their own lives that they did not make as a result of other teaching methods.
Also, the role reversal activity for A Farewell to Arms in the final improvisational
workshop revealed students’ previously unacknowledged acceptance o f traditional
gender roles.
Giving voice to Nell in their improvisations of “The Untold Lie ” encouraged the
boys to consider the woman’s point of view, although the author had not. It also
resulted in Ellen’s realization that the women in the story had dreams. In addition, the
students engaged in preliminary improvisations for an update of this work that led to an
identification of the crisis of representation that problematizes the story for
contemporary men and women and undergirds the play I eventually wrote. By
interrogating the text for presences, absences and governing perspectives, and by
imagining alternative storylines and roles for men and women in marriage and
relationship, they initiated a dismantling of the patriarchal narrative, although they still
vocalized some resistance in endeavoring to politicize the literature. A combination of
these improvisations and group discussions on “The Untold Lie, ” brought them to as
great an awareness of a patriarchal governing textual ideology as they were able to
develop in the course/study.
Discussion
My perspective also corroborated students’ responses regarding the
effectiveness of discussion in developing a more critical perspective in the students.
Initial discussions clarified the students’ different positions and invited further
370
discussion and a dialogic textual investigation of the literary works. Students’ exposure
to my ideas and those of other students and the guest professors resulted in the students’
demonstration of an increased sensitivity to the double standards, stereotypes, and
relationship inequities in the literature. This was evident in classroom discussions,
focus group interviews and group discussions where students showed an awareness of
gender inequities unacknowledged in previous written responses. The students were
always brought to more sophisticated levels of analysis and critical consciousness of
gender issues by means of dialogic investigation in discussion as emerged in the
comparison of transcripts of interviews and discussions o f each work with the
corresponding written responses.
In discussions with works read later in the course, the students’ remarks became
more focused on the ways in which the main characters were represented by the authors.
This was particularly evident in discussions of The Great Gatsbv. A Farewell to Arms
and Their Eves Were Watching God. In these discussions, the students’ ability to move
beyond a focus on character traits to a focus on authors’ portrayals of characters
represented the first step in an understanding of how governing textual perspectives can
coerce readers into specific positions. Two of these discussions were conducted by
visiting professors from the City University, lending support to the idea that including
experts from the field of academia can improve the quality of the curriculum and yield
positive results.
Writing and Literarv Criticism
In spite of the fact that social imagination activities and discussion were selected
as having the greatest impact on students’ consciousness of gender inequities in
literature, there were no techniques that went unmentioned when students were asked
about what techniques were influential. However, aside from social imagination
activities and discussion, I specifically found that writing exercises were very effective
371
for particular students. Although none of the focus group participants identified writing
as the activity that had the greatest effect on raising their critical consciousness about
gender issues in literature, most of the focus group participants emphasized the
importance of writing to their process of discovery. Many relied upon creative writing
in final projects to help them to explore gender issues and to expand on the discoveries
made through discussion and social imagination activities.
Critical readings were also helpful for some students’ appreciation of
Washington Square. The Great Gatsbv and A Farewell to Arms. Several students
voiced an appreciation for specific critics, and critical papers reflected the ways in
which their critical perspectives influenced the students’ thinking. In fact, the student
who was, in the end, most capable of identifying governing androcentric ideology in A
Farewell To Arms, was able to do so through reading a combination of narrative theory
and feminist literary criticism.
Question 2: Was there any realization of any previous naivete in terms of ‘seeing’ how gender stereotypes are created by authors, or in noticing either sexist or unequalportrayals of characters, or sexist perspectives in the literature
Focus Group 50%Larger Group 50%
Table 6.2: Realization of Previous Naivete
Nearly half of the responding students in the larger group and half of the focus
group participants claimed to have realized their previous naivete regarding observance
of stereotypes and sexist ideology in literature previous to the class. These students
claimed that the class helped them become more astute about identifying sexism in the
literature.
372
Teacher Commentarv
The students’ reports were corroborated by my data analysis. When comparing
their responses to initial surveys and final surveys, their increasing ability to identify
gender stereotypes and double standards in their written and verbal responses is clearly
demonstrated, as is their heightened awareness of sexist gender representation.
Question 3: What impact has this class had on your book reading/movie viewing in terms of noticing gender issues (stereotypes, double standards, sexist ideology?
Focus Group Had impact on reading 80%
Larger Group Had impact on reading 80%
Table 63: Impact on Reading
Eighty percent of both the larger group and focus group participants claimed that
the course had been instrumental in helping them to be more sensitive to gender
representation in literature and in film. Twenty percent of the respondents from the
larger group even claimed that they had never paid attention to gender issues in books
and movies before the course.
Teacher Commentarv
Students’ reports were corroborated by my data analysis. As the course
progressed, students demonstrated an increasing ability to identify gender stereotypes
and double standards in their written and verbal responses. However, data analysis also
indicated that the course had a limited impact on the students’ identification of
patriarchal ideology.
373
Question 4: What impact has this course had on your day to day life in terms of increased sensitivity to gender inequalities?
Focus Group Impact No impact Was already sensitive60% 20% 20%
Larger Group Impact No impact Was already sensitive50% 40 10%
Table 6.4: Impact on Life
Forty percent of the twenty-three responding students from the larger group and
sixty percent of focus group members reported in the final survey that the course had
made them more conscious of gender issues in their lives. Interestingly, two dissenters
from the focus group claimed to have been conscious of gender issues in their lives
before the course.
Teacher Commentary
My data analysis corroborated the students' reports that the course did have
some impact on their lives. In initial written and oral responses to literature studied
early in the course, the students did not make ready connections between gender issues
in the literature with those in their lives. In these responses to early works, the students
commented frequently about discrepancies between their contemporary gender and
relationship roles and those of the characters. In classroom and in focus group
discussions, they explored the issue of contemporary gender inequalities. As the course
progressed, the students commented less frequently on discrepancies between
contemporary gender and relationship roles and those of the characters. They also
responded in written responses and discussion to later works with a greater capacity to
relate gender inequalities evident in relationship representations with gender inequalities
in contemporary society.
374
In spite of their reports and those data, however, many students continued to
exhibit behaviors demonstrating the fact that consciousness does not always translate
into behavioral change or continued commitment to social equality. In addition,
realizations of gender inequities in life expressed by particular students during the
course were sometimes forgotten or denied by the end of the course.
Question 5: Did you experience any resistance to, the direction taken in the class in terms or its emphasis on gender issues, sexist stereotypes and gender/relationship representation?
FocusGroup
Initial Resistance to Focus
90%
Eventual Resistance to focus
10%
R esistan ce to feminism
70%LargerGroup
Resistance to Focus
90%
Eventual Resistance to Focus
10%
Resistance to Feminism
85%
Figure 6,5. Resistance
Although the class was advertised as one focusing on gender issues in early 20*
century American literature, almost all of the students expressed the idea that they
had initially been surprised at the emphasis on gender but eventually found it enjoyable.
Teacher Commentarv
Any resistance that the students experienced regarding the emphasis on gender
was not apparent to me during the class. While there was no apparent disenchantment
with the direction of the class, however, there was some resistance to feminism.
Like the girls in Harper’s (2000) study, most of the students in the larger group
and seventy percent of the focus group members exhibited a fundamental aversion to
feminism and feminists, as well as their call for change (See Table 65). And, while
80% of the focus group students reported an increased sensitivity to literary stereotypes
375
(Table 63 ) and 60% of focus participants reported an increased awareness to sexism in
their lives, the only student among the ten focus group members who openly adopted a
feminist perspective on gender equality and a negative response to male dominance was
Charles (AM,). In addition, the only student to admit the need for more gender equality
and express a willingness to work for that equality on a personal, relationship and
societal level was Howard (P.M.). The rest of the focus group participants were situated
in various positions on the spectrum. Sarah (P.M.) was not averse to feminists or
feminism, but preferred to challenge sexism as an individual, rather than as part of a
movement. Dale (A.M.) admitted to a continuing societal sexism but vacillated
between being unsure about the need for change and resisting it. Candy (A.M.) was
convinced that there was no way to change the system, and Brenda and Hillary (both
P.M.) were situated between the extremes, able to see the imperfections in the system
but not sure if anything could be done. Marie (P.M.) and Ellen (A.M.) occupied the
most resistant positions, expressing certainty that there was no need for change.
In spite of the continuing resistance (Table 6.5), however, a consideration of the
final surveys (Appendix B) illustrates the students’ heightened awareness of gender
issues and gender construction brought about by the extended focus on sexism and
androcentrism in the literature, and the intensive exploration of sexism in the literature
and in students’ lives. Their final comments illustrate their development from readers
unconscious of gender representation and ideology in literature to readers engaged in
the process of exploring, questioning and considering these issues.
Initial surveys addressing students’ background with gender studies and
literature indicated students’ lack of familiarity with gender issues. The survey,
however, indicated that the students, though still as resistant to feminism as they were in
the beginning, had begun to notice the ways in which men and women have been
represented in older literature. The final responses indicated that the students had begun
376
the process of ‘troubling’ those representations for a richer appreciation of the literature
and the construction of more equal gender relations. In their lives
Individual Focus Group Responses to Survey
In addition to completing the final survey, focus group members completed a
final questionnaire (Appendix E). The reason for the final questionnaire was to
triangulate earlier responses to the literature once the students had read all of the works
and engaged in all of the literary investigations. Responses to final questionnaires were
incorporated into the previous investigations and interpretations of the literary works in
which the focus group participants were highlighted.
At the end of the course, the focus group students also participated in a final
improvisational workshop (Appendix G). The emphasis in this improvisational
workshop was to elicit the students’ imaginative responses to the various works in the
corpus of literature covered in the course. The following synopses indicate a
combination of the final responses and discoveries of the individual focus group
participants drawn from final surveys, questionnaires, and improvisational workshop.
Candy: In the final survey. Candy selected the university professors’ drama
activities for the study o f Their Eves Were Watching God as her favorite activity. She
reported that watching the body language and facial expressions of those who were
playing the roles of the fictional characters gave her a more critical perspective about
how men and women and relationships are portrayed in literature. In the final
questionnaire, she reiterated that Catherine Sloper was still the only character with
whom she had made an extremely strong connection because of the way she had been
treated by the men. In the questionnaire. Candy also claimed that she could avoid being
like the early Catherine Sloper by being independent enough, and watching the
situations that she gets into. “It is always important to have your guard up— to realize
you are better than second place, ” she said. In the final questionnaire, she wrote that
377
James was, after all, the only author who had attempted to challenge sexual stereotyping
and relationship inequalities. She realized this because, she said, in the end, “Catherine
becomes independent and is satisfied with being alone.”
Despite this acknowledgement. Candy's ambivalence about being independent
and ‘feminine’ continued throughout the course and was evident during the final
improvisational workshop conducted with the focus group (Appendix G). When
addressing Nell’s lack of voice in “The Untold Lie,” Candy was able to see that the
silencing of the women was problematic and reflected a silencing that women
sometimes experience in reality. At the same time, during these improvisational
exercises. Candy admitted that she liked the attention that she has received by being a
traditional and ‘feminine’ girl, and expressed a desire for the kind of attention which she
feels she would not get as a male or a less fem inine’ girl. She demonstrated the
conflict between the desire for empowerment and the desire to be sexually desirable
(Lewis 1990) and saw these as mutually exclusive.
She reported in the final survey that the coiurse did have an impact on her life.
Before the course, she said, she had rarely paid any attention to gender issues in
literature or in life. Since the course she has noticed the way people fit into stereotypes
in life and the way that the genders are represented in books and movies. In spite of that,
she does not call herself a feminist. She sees society’s construction of gender a problem
in that it results in stereotypes, but feels no need to change the status quo. “I think it is
great that there are people to fight for and believe in women ” she says, “but you can’t
change anyone, so in some ways it is a waste o f time. ”
Maynard: In Maynard’s final survey, he described the overall effects of the
course by reporting that his favorite characters were Gatsby and Dr. Sloper. He also
reported that the drawing exercise that we conducted in The Great Gatsbv was his
favorite activity and the one that most helped him to explore the characters and their
378
gender representations on a deeper level. He claimed that while the class had no real
impact on his day to day life, that it was good to discuss the issues. Maynard also
confessed that the course had little impact on his book reading or movie viewing in
terms of noticing gender issues because he believed that he was already sensitive and
aware before taking the course. In his final questionnaire, he concluded that men and
women will never be treated alike, that he doesn’t think the relationships between the
sexes will change, and that he thinks there is nothing he can do. His final definition of a
feminist: “a female activist; sometimes a man hater.”
In the final improvisational workshop, Maynard reiterated his preference for
being male, and his belief in male superiority. He did conclude, however, that “men
were usually at fault” for the problems in the literary relationships, being the cheaters
and the violent ones, and he admitted that “this is true in real life as well.”
Dale: According to Dale’s responses in the final survey, writing the screenplay
really forced him to think about Frederic in A Farewell to Arms. In addition, engaging
in the artistic activity associated with The Great Gatsbv helped him to “get into the
characters’ heads and hearts and minds. And, the attempt to update “The Untold Lie”
into a screenplay helped him to understand Minnie and the way she was represented as a
female by Sherwood Anderson. He did point out, however, that he did not enjoy any of
the role-play because it was hard for him to get into the roles and did not feel that role-
play helped him to develop a more critical perspective on the portrayals or on the
characters. However, his improvisational work with “The Gentle Lena” seemed to help
him to understand the comparable social pressures in contemporary society better.
During the final improvisational workshop. Dale admitted the effectiveness of
drama in bringing about awareness of sexism. However, he pointed out that discussion
is still necessary. Aside from writing screenplays, discussion was the activity that he
enjoyed most and the one that helped him most to develop critical perspective.
379
In the final improvisational workshop. Dale also came to some realizations
about gender constructions that he had not seen or expressed previously. A reversal of
Frederic and Catherine’s lines convinced him that “we have stereotypes in our heads
that we don’t know about.” In the activity on “The Untold Lie,” however, he did not
show an ability to distinguish between the author and the character in order to address
the sexism in the silencing o f Nell. During these exercises, like Maynard, he clearly
demonstrated his belief that the body is more important for the female than the male and
that beauty is a necessity for women but not for men.
In the final questionnaire. Dale reported that he is sensitive to gender issues in
fiction and in film, but that he does not like focusing there when he reads or watches a
film. While Dale had stated during the course that society was still pushing people into
traditional gender roles, he ended the course by saying he sees no need to change the
status quo and doesn’t know anyone who is bothered by it. Dale had an initial interest
in the study of gender. However, like Charles, he resisted altering the author’s
perspective in rewrites. He still longs for a feminism that will unite and not divide.
Sarah: In the final questionnaire, Sarah reported that the writing of the update
to “The Gentle Lena ” provided her with insights into “Lena” and the ways and which
society still pressures people into fixed gender roles and relationship patterns.
However, she claimed that the activity that gave her a more critical perspective about
how men and women and relationships are portrayed in literature was the discussion of
The Great Gatsbv. and the drawing of the characters. She also reported that working on
the project, in which she and Maynard selected popular songs which further depicted
the characters and their situations, helped her to relate better to the characters and the
relationship issues they had with their significant others. In the final survey, she
expressed an appreciation for Fetterley and claimed to have been intrigued by her
perspective on Daisy.
380
During the final improvisational workshop, Sarah expressed an appreciation for
social imagination activities. She said “to some extent, [social imagination activities]
gets you into the habit of walking in someone else’s shoes and looking at things from
another angle. You leam to be more aware of the roles people play.”
Sarah claimed in the final survey that the class did not have too much impact on
her life because she had always been aware of gender imbalances. She pointed out,
however, that the course did have an impact on her reading and film viewing. She
became aware of how much impact movies really have on the way girls and boys invent
themselves and their relationships by adopting characteristics of film characters.
Sarah enjoyed the gender focus of the course. She thinks that society’s
construction of gender is a problem and thinks all of societ>' must change. In the final
questionnaire, however, she reiterated that she lives feminism and prefers to deal with
sexist issues personally but has no interest in being part of a feminist cause. She prefers
feminists who do not have to scream to prove themselves.
Charles; Charles reported in his final survey that his preferred way to leam is
through discussion and that he learned much during the course. He also claimed that
one result of the discussions was a heightened awareness of sexism in movies and
fiction. He had always been somewhat aware of sexism in literature and the culture, but
he claimed that by the end of the class, he was more aware. Charles claimed that the
discussions impacted on his day to day life, but that he had already been sensitive to
sexism in the culture. Charles reiterated at this time that gender constructions are a
problem in society and said that he thinks things need to be changed. “We cannot allow
sexist stereotypes in a democratic society,” he said.
In the final improvisational workshop, Charles expressed the realization that
“even in the year 2000, women are not viewed on the same level as men.” He added
that females get less respect than males and expressed the need for women to counter
381
sexist reactions by retaining a sense of self and accomplishment. These exercises also
resulted in his declaration for the need to reduce competition, aggression and violence
in males. Specifically, the activity focusing on the role reversals in A Farewell To
Arms caused his awareness that “in literature men have been pretty much exclusively
dominant, an if submissive, it’s usually to another male. It’s rarely seen where the
female character has control over a situation.”
Though Charles had resisted a revisionist approach to the study of literature, in
his final questionnaire, he demonstrated a realization that although he opposed judging
old literature by contemporary standards, he actually accomplished just that in his own
update of “Hills Like White Elephants.” In this update, he reversed the male and female
perspectives for a contemporary point of view.
Marie: In the final questionnaire, Marie identified Jay Gatsby as her favorite
character “because he loved Daisy so much.” In the survey, she claimed that she
enjoyed the drawing of the Gatsby characters, although discussion was her favorite
approach to learning. She reported in the final survey that the discussion of A Farewell
to Arms gave her a more critical perspective about how men and women are portrayed
in literature than any other activity. “Both the men and the women were grossly
stereotyped,” she said. “I didn’t take notice of the author’s portrayal of the relationship
until the class discussion.” She reported in the final survey that she found that she had
benefited more from discussions than from any of the different pedagogical approaches.
While Marie continued to resist judging the literature by current standards, and
while she continued to see the characters in terms of their sexuality and sexual
decisions, she did become more conscious of sexist stereotypes during the course of the
study. During the final improvisational workshop, she countered Anderson’s
stereotypes of women in marriage with an awareness of ways in which men also can rob
women of their dreams in marriage. However, she continued to exhibit a penchant for
382
gender stereotyping. She also continued to argue even in the final survey, however, that
the class had little impact on her reading and movie viewing in terms of noticing gender
issues. She claimed at this time that gender issues were not applicable to her.
Howard: Howard’s favorite characters were Gatsby and Nick in The Great
Gatsbv. and he reported in the final survey that Fetterley’s criticisms had the most
significant impact of all the activities and approaches. Fetterley, he said, gave him a
new perspective on how women are portrayed in literature. Before being exposed to her
essays, and some of the narrative criticism, he hadn’t seen the importance of the writer
as creator as vividly. He added that his ability to see things as Fetterley did has enabled
him to “notice Fetterley -style stereotypes in other stories.”
To the question of whether the course had any impact on his day to day life, he
said that it “definitely impacted my relationship and I adopted some new perspectives. ”
In the final questionnaire, Howard reported that stereotypes are problematic and that he
does feel the need to change things. Howard thinks a feminist is “someone strongly in
favor of women’s rights” He is for it, but sometimes is bothered by extremists who
make a point of telling everyone how they feel.
Brenda: In the final survey, Brenda reiterated her love of Their Eves Were
Watching God and reiterated that Janie was her favorite character in the final
questionnaire. Brenda identified discussion, feminist criticism and writing as the
activities that most helped her critique power structures. But the Gatsbv drawing was
the activity she liked most. “It made me think in detail about the characters,” she said.
The final improyisational workshop indicated Brenda’s awareness that gender is,
to some degree, socially constructed with respect to manners, dress, and the use of the
man’s last name in marriage. During these activities, she also noticed that nearly all of
the literary relationships were male-dominated, and she made a connection between the
fictional relationships and those existing in contemporary society. During the
383
improvisational workshop, she added social imagination activities to her list of helpful
teaching approaches, expressing the opinion that
Social imagination activities are a good way to learn more about the story.You really have to think o f what is going through the characters' minds during key times in the story. Body movement, eye contact shows a lot.This sort o f thing does make me think because you have to think of everything, what t hey show in their eyes, face, body, gestures, etc. I t really makes you think and understand what th e author was trying to get across and how you interpret it.
She was also highly affected by the interview, which led her to some personal
realizations about gender, and by keeping the diary in her final project, an activity
succeeded in reducing her ambivalence about TeaCake's slapping o f Janie.
In the final improvisational workshop Brenda was also able to articulate the
unspoken dreams that the women in “The Untold Lie” lost. In addition, Brenda’s
response to the activity focusing on Nell’s lines in “The Untold Lie ” showed that his
activity was effective in bringing about a realization that
there is a huge significance in Nell not having lines. I t clearly shows she’s not the one to moke the decision for her own future. She is basically waiting to see what will be her life.
However, while she was aware of Nell’s predicament, there was no expression of a
realization about authorial androcentrism or the connection between Nell’s situation and
comparable situations for women in society'.
Initially, Brenda had said that she had been somewhat naive before taking the
class and had not noticed the sexism in some of the male author’s works. In the final
survey, however, she claimed to be better able to understand more subtle sexism in
movies and books. She also claimed that the class had had an impact on her day to day
life in that it made her more aware of feminist actions and sexist individuals, although
she does not find society’s gender constructions a problem for her. She claimed to have
enjoyed the class and reported no resistance to the heavy concentration on gender
384
issues. In fact, she claimed to feel positively about feminists, whom she described as
women who won’t take crap from anyone. “It’s girl power,” she said. “I like it.”
Hillary: In the final questionnaire, Hillary identified her favorite characters as
Janie Crawford and Catherine Sloper. She was also very taken with Their Eves Were
Watching God. Hillary reported in the final survey that discussion was her favorite
approach to learning, citing that Their Eves Were Watching God and Washington
Square were her favorite discussions. There were some contradictions. Hillary reported
a remarkable series of realizations during the course about women’s opinions (including
her own) having been minimized by members of her church committee, and about the
way her mother had promoted gender stereotyping at home. However, in the final
survey, while she reported that the course had impacted her responses to movies and
books and on her day to day life, she stated that she did not see any problem with
society’s construction of gender, and saw no reason to change the status quo.
Ellen: To the question in the final survey of what activity prompted a more
critical perspective about how men and women and relationships are portrayed in
literature, Ellen responded that playing the roles of the characters in the focus group
workshop of “The Untold Lie” really impacted her the most. The dramatic activity
conducted by the professors on Their Eves Were Watching God ran a close second, as
she had engaged enthusiastically in that role play, mostly directing the activities of the
others in the class who played the roles of the characters. She also was enlightened to
social pressures through the improvisational workshop on “The Gentle Lena.”
During the final improvisational workshop, Ellen held to her ideas that “it works
much better for women to be submissive than for men to be submissive.” Here she
continued to support the duality of male dominance and female submissive behavior. In
addition, the exercise requiring lines for Nell in “The Untold Lie ” caused Ellen to
consider the dreams of the women in the story for the first time (see Revisionism in One
385
Act, Chapter Six). Although the lines she gave to Nell in this exercise reflect some of
her traditional views, they also indicate a consideration of the implications of Nell’s
silence about her own dreams. In the survey, she reported that while she is able to
identify sexism in literature and in life, the awareness of gender inequality was short
lived and didn’t impact her life, because she thinks in opposite ways to feminists.
Post Script
In a subsequent paper written by Ellen for another literature class, she
investigated the representation of women in three works by Hemingway: A Farewell To
Arms: For Whom The Bell Tolls, and “Hills Like White Elephants. ” In this paper, she
developed a thesis that demonstrated her belief that “in all three pieces, the women
behaved in the same way, as they possessed a very passive, needy and selfless attitude.”
She argued in this paper that these women were “the same generic women that
Hemingway used for all of his stories.” She pointed out that in “Hills Like White
Elephants ” Jig’s needy and passive nature was evident in her remarks, “Then I’ll do it.
Because I don’t care about me” (Hemingway, 1969, p. 213). Here Ellen argued, that
“Jig was only going to hurt herself by doing what the American told her to do for his
convenience.” She continued on to say that Jig suppressed her thoughts for his sake,
willing to do anything for love and happiness.
In this paper, she also posited that Marie, in For Whom the Bell Tolls “was very
submissive and did whatever she was told, whether it be a command from Pilar, or from
Robert. From the beginning it seemed like Maria was a servant and content with that
status.” According to Ellen, “she was always looking for reassurance, or acceptance
from Robert in the same manner that Jig did, . . . and was always selfless in the same
way that Jig was.” Ellen also wrote that Marie wanted to please Robert even when it
meant hurting herself. In the final part of the paper, she pointed out that in A Farewell
To Arms. “Catherine followed the noticeable trend of being a doormat. ” She argued
386
that Catherine “was completely submissive and let Frederic lead her to wherever he
wanted her.” She went on to cite passages which supported this line of thinking, and
concluded by identifying the common phrases used by all three women as they
seemingly begged for reassurance from their men:
Jig: “And you’ll love me?” (Hemingway, 1987, p. 213);
Catherine: “You did say you loved me, didn’t you?”
Maria: “No, thou wilt not love me” (Hemingway, 1940, p. 81).Ellen pointed out that these three women were all modeled from ageneric woman that Hemingway created initially to fit into all the stories.
In this paper, Ellen adopted a different position as a reading subject from the
reading subject who had argued for Catherine’s strength in the first paper and in earlier
discussions and interviews. In attempting to account for the transformation, I considered
that arguments, critiques, teaching approaches, or simply the passage of time might have
accounted for her change of heart. I also considered the possibility that reading three of
Hemingway’s works together had convinced her, as it had Charles before her, of
Hemingway’s stereotypical portrayals of women. Finally I considered the possibility
that it was easier for her to try out a new feminist perspective with another teacher, one
not focusing on gender issues. When asked, Ellen claimed to have been merely
experimenting with a new thesis to fulfill a course requirement for a written analysis of
A Farewell To Arms. She stated that a transformation had not occurred.
It was clear, however, that Ellen had indeed examined a feminist perspective of
A Farewell To Arms for this paper, and that she shared that paper with me. It was also
clear that she had considered and was able to present a clear and logical argument that
ran counter to the one that she had previously accepted, even though she claimed that it
was only an exercise and one that did not reflect her sentiments. In the end, she still
professed to believe in Catherine’s strength. However, she had made her point well.
387
CHAPTER?
REFLECTIONS, FINDINGS, RELEVANCE OF THE STUDY
Questions, it seems, contain enormous power, for the questions we ask of texts and the standards we bring to literature help determine both how we construct and how we are constructed by a text: whose voices we hear, which details we attend to, which perspectives we take as our own. Ultimately, our questions inform and are informed by political issues, and the matter of reconstructing the canon is therefore much larger than simply learning to ‘assimilate some long-forgotten works or authors into existing categories’ Lauter 1985, p. 37
Introduction
In conducting this study, I have been acutely aware of my location on a
continuum, where I am placed between the feminist women and men who have and will
continue to engage in educational research designed to bring about an emancipatory
pedagogy for high school literature students. Those who have come before me have
shared findings and recommendations that have paved the way for my attempt to engage
in a collaborative effort with high school boys and girls to imagine a space for literary
study, conducive to the development of heightened gender consciousness in readers. It
is a space that is both critical and hopeful; a space where liberated readers deconstruct
disempowering textual representations of men and women and dismantle patriarchal
ideologies in order to bring about more inclusive literary experiences with classic texts,
and reconstruct a dream of a more just, more egalitarian society.
As I attempt to create such a space, I stand on the shoulders of others. From
cultural feminists who have preceded me, such as Hines (1997) and Scholes (1995), I
388
inherited a desire to encourage high school literature students to link the reading of texts
to the reading of selves, society, and the world for a more egalitarian society. To
accomplish this, I followed Cherland's (1992) advice to strive for pedagogy that would
minimize gendered responses by engaging male and female students in a collaborative
creation of knowledge and question language practices as practices of social regulation.
I also followed recommendations based on Harper’s (2000) findings, to emphasize
textual negotiation and the interrogation o f the complexities, ambiguities and
contradictions “that exist in the investments and identity formations in adolescents
lives” (p. 163).
I followed in the footsteps of Bogdan (1990; 1992; 1997) in my search for an
approach to the study of classic literature that would hopefully result in students’ ability
to fuse aesthetic and political responses for a combined literary appreciation and
critique. 1 also followed Lewis’ (1990, 1992) advice to proceed with caution and with
an understanding that young people’s strong investment in ‘heteronormativity’
(Britzman, 1994) works against change if not acknowledged.
Aware of the need to extend the boys and girls beyond a hegemonic masculine
literacy, I drew from Davies (1992) to “make visible the constitutive force of discourse .
. . and to create fissures in the absoluteness of apparent naturalness of dominant
masculinity” and femininity (p. 13). Drawing also from poststructuralist psychoanalytic
theorists such as Davies (1992), Harper (2000), Martino (1995) and, Walkerdine (1984),
I attempted to maintain a dual focus. I attempted to focus (1) on the deconstructive work
I could do to undo the bonds of already existing, discursively constructed worlds, and
(2) on the imaginative construction of worlds other than the ones we inhabit (1992, p.
13). I attempted to keep this dual focus in mind throughout the study.
389
Overview o f the Study
Over the course of one year. I conducted my research on the responses of thirty-
five high school boys and girls to the gender issues in selected early twentieth century
classic American Literature. The study included an emphasis on a focus group of ten
representatives from this larger group. The selected literature included seven works:
four by celebrated male authors whose novels and short stories are regularly taught in
the literature classroom, and three by women writers. The authors are: Henry James,
Sherwood Anderson, Ernest Hemingway, F. Scott Fitzgerald, Emma Goldman,
Gertrude Stein, and Zora Neale Hurston. In addition, the students read Hemingway’s
short story, “Hills like White Elephants,’’ which was addressed in detail by one focus
group participant.
Besides recording initial and developing responses of all thirty-five students to
the gender issues in early twentieth century American literature, I also focused on the
effects of the instructional approaches and strategies on the students’ responses. In
addition, I attempted to determine the methods most effective at raising students’
awareness of sexist representations and androcentric perspectives in the literature. I
also focused on my own experience while engaged in the project and identified the
challenges and discoveries that I encountered as the teacher attempting to heighten
students’ critical consciousness of the gender issues in literature. Therefore, my study
combines the interpretive, critical feminist, and self-reflexive approaches that I called
the Reflective Feminist Interpretivist stance. This stance accommodated my objectives
in framing all aspects of the study: the generating of the research questions, the data
collection, the instructional approaches and the analysis and interpretation of the data.
Throughout the study, I attempted to identify approaches and strategies for the
study of the works that would provide students with the appropriate tools for reading
and appreciating the American classics. I was hoping to prevent them from either
390
dismissing the works as irrelevant for their time, or succumbing, without resistance, to
coercive textual powers that threaten to position them in patriarchal masculine and
feminine ways. The study essentially investigates how students respond to several
authors’ representations of males and females, their romantic relationships, and
governing gender-related ideologies in selected 20“' century literature. Again, the
research questions guiding the study were:
• Would students report or exhibit an increased awareness of sexist gender and relationship representations or androcentric perspectives in the literature during the course?
• What teaching approaches and strategies would be reported or determined to have had the largest impact on students’ consciousness of literary gender issues: discussion (and dialogic investigation), critical writing, critical readings, social imagination activities or projects)
• What, if any, changes in gender consciousness would be reported or demonstrated to have occurred in their own lives as a result of the study
• What challenges would be involved for the teacher conducting the class/study ?
• What discoveries would be made that would benefit the literary educational community?
Findings
Findings Regarding Increased Awareness
Did students report or exhibit an increased awareness of sexist gender and relationship representations or androcentric perspectives in the literature during the course?
The students claimed that that the course had been instrumental in helping them
to be more sensitive to gender representation in literature and in film. Their reports were
corroborated by my data analysis. As the course progressed, they demonstrated an
increasing ability to identify gender stereotypes and double standards and gender
inequities in their written and verbal responses.
Although the students became increasingly more adept at identifying sexist
representations and relationship inequities over the course of the study, their ability to
391
identify governing patriarchal ideologies in the literature did not increase to the same
degree as did their ability to spot stereotypes in characters, detect double standards in
literary relationships, or identify other gender inequities in literature. The lack of ability
to identify authorial perspective and theme in the literature affected the students’ ability
to focus on governing textual ideology.
Findings Regarding Effects of Teaching Approaches/Strategies
What teaching approaches and strategies were reported or determined to have had the largest impact on students’ consciousness of literary gender issues: discussion (and dialogic investigation), critical writing, critical readings, social imagination activities or projects)
Specifically, social imagination activities (including role-play, improvisation,
creative writing, and educational art and drama) had the greatest effect on students’
consciousness of literary gender issues. In addition, many larger group and focus group
participants specifically identified discussion as the teaching method that also had a
dramatic effect on their gender consciousness. My data supported the students’
perspectives that social imagination activities and discussion were the most beneficial
methods for stimulating awareness of stereotypes and gender inequities in the larger
group and with focus group participants.
However, the fact that other specific teaching approaches such as writing,
literary criticism and the design of individual projects were successful in raising the
students’ consciousness of gender issues in the literature, indicated the value of a
comprehensive approach to such a study, especially for classrooms comprised of a
diverse group of students.
Findings Regarding Impact on Students’ Lives
What, if any, changes in gender consciousness were reported or demonstrated to have occurred in their own lives as a result of the study
Primarily through discussion and social imagination activities, students made
gradual realizations that there were similar pressures and ideologies governing the
392
characters’ lives and their own. As a result of classroom literature investigations and
focus group discussions, students were able to explore the issue of contemporary gender
inequalities in contemporary life.
Although forty-three percent of the larger group and sixty percent of the focus
group reported that the course had make them more conscious of gender issues in their
lives, some of the students’ attitudes and behaviors illustrated a continuing ambivalence
about feminism and the conventional roles of males and females in society.
Findings Determined From Reflections on Mv Experience
What challenges were experienced and what discoveries were made by the teacher and researcher as a result of the study that could benefit the literary educational community?
Challenges
Challenges presented by the study involved communication and experiential
gaps stemming from the students’ age and life experience; the students’ limited critical
reading ability, and their resistance to feminism.
Age and Life Experience
The age and experience of the students presented a challenge to my research. It
was sometimes difficult to discuss the implications o f a patriarchal system on career
choices, economics, relationships, marriage, and childrearing with the students who did
not come to the discussion with experience in these areas.
Communication
A related challenge was the need to identify ways to communicate concepts so
that that students would understand my points. Often, in posing questions to the
students or in making connections to gender inequities, I was painfully aware that the
students’ lack of life experience and educational opportunities prevented them from
completely understanding my references or questions.
393
Reading Ability
I was also challenged by the difficulty o f communicating concepts such as
‘androcentric perspective’ and ‘coercive textual power’ with students whose critical
reading ability was limited. The challenge of leading students to an awareness of the
politics and ideologies framing the stories and coercing the readers was magnified
because of the students' limited ability to identify authorial intent and theme in
literature. It was difficult for me to engage them in a consideration of textual
assumptions, perspectives, and governing ideologies because they had little experience
seeing the authorial or cultural contracts reinforcing the patriarchal perspectives. An
inability to differentiate between an author’s perspective and a character’s or to identify
implied authorial or cultural constructs in the literature made it difficult for many of the
students to see beyond the plot to examine either the ideologies or the patriarchal myths
driving the storylines. They struggled, and I struggled with them, providing narrative
theory to help to lead them to recognize the subtle ironies that often signaled the author
or the narrator’s perspective in contrast to a character’s perspective or beliefs.
Difficulties with Washington Square, and “The Gentle Lena,” in which the authors are
critiquing the society, were traced to this problem
Satisfaction With Patriarchal Societv
My greatest challenge, however, was that I found it difficult to come to terms
with my students’ reported and apparent satisfaction with the status quo with regard to
gender relations. Responses given by participants from the larger group and the focus
group to the literary characters, to my questions, to me, and to their classmates
suggested that a hierarchical system of gender binaries is still alive and well, and safely
in place in their world. For the most part, the students acquiesced to the notion that
male characters and males in society were dominant in relationships. In addition, they
admitted to sex role stereotyping at work, in the government, at school, and in the home,
394
and they judged characters and each other by a system of double standards relating to
work and sexuality.
Resistance to Feminism
Though the students’ awareness of gender issues and inequities was heightened
as a result of this course, my research also confirmed Harper’s (2000) study which
found that contemporary adolescents are resistant to ideology that threatens their
investment in heterosexual relationships and changes to the status quo.
It was challenging to find that today’s adolescent boys and girls would see their
own critique of patriarchal thinking and gender inequality as an indication of a threat to
their masculinity or femininity. It was also challenging to find that in spite of some of
the students’ epiphanies about the existence of sexism in their lives, that they still
remained comfortable enough at the end of the course to report that they did not see the
need for change to the status quo regarding gender relations. I was disheartened
primarily because I equate the status quo with continued gender inequality, harmful to
both boys and girls.
It was most challenging to find that in spite of statistics and research findings on
wife battering, rape, eating disorders, sexual harassment and gender inequity in schools
and in the workplace, no steps had been taken by any previous teachers to educate these
students about gender issues and sex discrimination. Students had been exposed to little
information about women’s history and no education dealing with gender representation
in film, advertising or literature. In addition, no formal analysis of the patriarchal
models for gender and relationship in literature and in life had been initiated.
Attempting to have an influence on students during the course of two semesters was
challenging when they had not been previously introduced to the realities of gender
discrimination and gender inequality. Consequently, I found that although the students
had been able to explore the gender issues in the literature and in their lives during the
395
course, that the series of investigations had not changed their basic attitudes on
feminism expressed in the initial surveys.
Discoveries
In addition to the challenges, there were some discoveries made through the
study, some of which shed light on some of the challenges.
Student Ambivalence and Contradictions
Student resistance is a symptom of the fact that adolescents coming of age at the
turn of the twenty-first century are located at a crossroads in terms of their views on
gender equality and their expectations for masculine and feminine behavior and
identity. This location played itself out in the students’ ambivalence about ideas related
to the roles they play and are expected to play as young men and young women in
relationships. It also played itself out in contradictory literary analyses.
For example, all of the larger group participants expressed an appreciation for
the freedoms that separate them from the traditional femininities and masculinities
represented in the literature, and argued consistently that there was no sexism in today’s
society. However, their responses and stated attitudes reflected a different reality, a
reality that was particularly evident in the dramatic rendering of their responses to
Goldman’s “Love and Marriage.” In the discussions of that story, they mocked
Goldman’s challenges to the limitations for women in marriage and fought her ideas
with attacks and insults focusing on beauty and sexuality. They also fought to preserve
a patriarchal view of relationships based on male/female binaries and Goldman’s
attempt to enlighten women about their subjugated status in relationship.
The contradictions were also evident in the study of Washington Square. While
some students pointed out during the study of this novella that “men do not think they
are better than women anymore,” and that “women aren’t judged according to a
standard of beauty anymore, many repeatedly contradicted that stance by insisting that
396
Catherine comply with conventional standards of womanhood. They stressed the
importance of beauty for the women and girls in their lives, though not the men and
boys. Additionally, they perpetuated sexist stereotypes in discussions of the literature.
Contradictions were evident in individual students who though they admitted to
realizations of gender inequities throughout the course, reported in the end that there
was no need to change the status quo.
Several students attempted to explain such contradictions by emphasizing that
representatives of their generation are caught between two paradigms, and that as
contemporary adolescents, they are aware of the prejudices against women, and at the
same time, they are trapped within a mindset that engages them in sexist behavior.
They emphasized the difficulty that young people have in knowing what they can do
about the problem. My data analysis corroborated their reports and further suggested
that the generation is also trapped in a mindset that accepts and promotes the myth that
there is no sexism in today’s society.
Appreciation of the Literature
One of my concerns as I began this study was that the students would have
difficulty relating to the characters reflective of a patriarchal society. In fact, my study
emanated not only from a desire to heighten students awareness of gender inequality in
literature and life, but also from a desire to preserve the classic literature by developing
a pedagogy that would foster literary appreciation as well as a gender-based critique. I
discovered that the process of exploration of the literature through my chosen teaching
approaches did engage the students and enhance their appreciation for the literature.
While I did not make feminists of the students, in most cases they stated and
demonstrated that they had more appreciation for the literature after our investigations
than they had immediately following the readings. I found that the process of discovery
using the various teaching methods made the literature more interesting for them.
397
Impact of Gender
The most remarkable finding in terms of gender was the fact that it was two of
the boys who were the strongest feminists. And, these two boys were more concerned
about the unequal treatment of women than were the girls. While there was one girl in
the study who was also a proponent of feminist ideals, she was hesitant to be identified
as a feminist.
Although these two boys were the declared feminists in the class, the findings
did not suggest a sharp gender divide. With regard to resistance, I found that in most
cases, boys and girls were equally resistant to feminism, although the responses differed
in the two classes. The larger group of boys in the A.M. class were generally more
vocal about their resistance than the group of quieter girls in that class, although the
girls voiced most of the resistance in the PM . class. Students (A.M. and PM .) who
were most willing to openly align themselves with a feminist perspective, or express
sympathy about the status of women, or express negative opinions about the dominant
position of men, or express a commitment to work for gender equality and change, were
male. In fact, the students (A.M. and P.M.) who were able to make an initial
comparison between the oppressive treatment of literary women with the treatment of
women in contemporary times, were also the boys (A.M. and P.M.). None of the girls
in either the A M . or P.M. class made those connections initially. However, girls in the
P.M. class were more likely than the boys in either class to notice stereotypical
representations of female characters in the literature.
There were differences in the ways that boys and girls saw some characters,
however. In the discussion of The Great Gatsbv and A Farewell To Arms, girls were
more skeptical about Daisy and Catherine than were the boys. Boys connected with Jay
Gatsby more readily than did the girls, and sympathized with his romantic losses. In
discussions of A Farewell to Arms boys in both classes initially thought Catherine was
398
“nice” and “gentle,” while the girls found her to be overly submissive. I determined
that the boys’ failure to see Catherine’s deferential behavior was indicative of the way
in which women are constructed in our society.
Impact of the Communitv
With respect to the influence o f the community, some responses differed on the
basis of classroom dynamics. The boys in the P.M. class saw Daisy as particularly
powerful and insensitive, while all the others in both classes found her to be
alternatively controlling and subjugated. The predominantly female P.M. class related
strongly with Janie and Their Eves Were Watching G od, while the predominantly male
A M . class disliked the novel, and made no connection with any of the characters.
Students were influenced by the individuals in their respective classrooms and
by the students in the focus group. For example, when a few students in the focus group
or a given classroom saw -a strong connection between sexism in the literature and in
their lives and presented their ideas to the others, other students’ considered those ideas.
This occurred in both classrooms and in the focus group. Specifically, girls in the P.M.
class an impact on the boys in the P.M. class who, after initially arguing for Catherine
Barkley’s strength, were eventually convinced of her submissive behavior.
Implications of the Study
My research shows that boys and girls in high school literature classes seem be
equally open (or not) to a feminist perspective, with boys often being more conscious of
the ways in which women have been subjugated than are girls.
My research also shows that while engaging students into an exploration of
gender issues in literature does not necessarily make feminists of the students, it does
result in raising their level of awareness to the gender inequities in literature and in life.
399
My study, therefore, indicates that teachers can draw from my research the value of
emphasizing gender issues in the study of literature in order to help students challenge
the limiting definitions of masculinity and femininity that threaten to restrict them.
My study also indicates that English teachers can draw from my research the
value of emphasizing critical reading skills to help students identify authorial and
cultural constructs, theme and tone in literature. Without this ability, various political
and cultural perspectives in literature can coerce students, including sexist ones, as is
evident in my data.
In addition, my study indicates that teachers can draw from my research the
value of the idea that time is the significant factor in exploring literature. When
students have the time to revisit responses (Bogdan, 1997), they have more success at
increasing their awareness of literary gender issues. Because focus group participants
took part in extended dialogic investigations with me (in interviews) and with others (in
group discussions and improvisational workshops), they were able to engage in deeper
reflection on their initial written and verbal responses and contradictions than were the
larger group members. They were also able to explore gender issues in literature and in
society more intensively and more extensively than were the larger group participants.
This supports Bogdan’s (1997) idea that reconsideration of responses helps bring
students to a deeper understanding of their engagements and resistances with texts.
My study also indicates that literature teachers can draw from my research the
value of educational art, drama and creative writing for engaging students’ imaginations
in the critique of gender and other social inequities for the ultimate envisioning of a
more ethical world in which gender equality is emphasized. While most teachers
engage students in discussion and in writing exercises, social imagination activities such
as art and drama are often underused in the high school classroom.
400
Finally, my study indicates the value of a teacher’s writing as a method of
inquiry, and the importance of that to the clarification of students’ understanding.
Limitations of the Study
The fact that this study was conducted with students in a mostly white, middle to
upper middle class suburban community limits its generalizability. I am not certain that
students' attitudes are representative of most adolescents. Furthermore, the unique
atmosphere of the Werthlin School, dedicated to openness, student choice, student
empowerment, collaboration, and the multi-age classroom environment, sets it apart
from larger, more formal, and more conventional educational institutions. In addition,
the freedom that I had to select my texts may not be a luxury afforded to teachers in
many school districts across the country. Lastly, the freedom offered Werthlin students,
and the familiarity they enjoy with teachers, may have resulted in an openness of
conversation that would be difficult to duplicate in more formal school settings.
Another limitation derives from the fact that I conducted research and collected
data in my own classroom. It was clear to the students and their parents that the
students’ completion of the required work and not the adoption of the teacher’s position
determined grades. However, the possibility exists (although it is an extremely slight
one, given the individualism of the Werthlin students) that the students might have
made a valiant effort to dismantle patriarchal nairatives for the duration o f the course
for the teacher’s benefit, rather than for their own. There is always the possibility that
students will be influenced by teachers and not necessarily transformed by them.
However, the final surveys and questionnaires did reinforce the idea that students
expressed themselves honestly without concern for pleasing the teacher.
I do believe that these limitations of the study were ameliorated, however,
because of my attempt to counter the subjectivity involved with playing the dual part of
401
the teacher and the researcher with reflection. By adding a reflective component to the
interpretive and critical aspects of the study, I was able to challenge myself and question
the potential subjectivity of my conclusions. The strong emphasis on my own
experience in designing, conducting and responding to the research was meant to record
my experiences for teachers interested in employing such a pedagogical approach.
A final limitation of this study is the fact that the findings are determined on the
basis of a short period of time. The effects of the work done may not yield results
immediately, as paradigm shifts do not occur during the course of a school year. The
seeds planted in this class may reap results in years to come when these students have
gained the experience of age and have transcended the social pressures o f adolescence.
Need for Further Research
I join Davies, (1992); Harper, (2000); Martino, (1995) and Walkerdine, (1984)
in expressing the need for a continued research and experimentation with instruction to
determine ways to make the constitutive force of discourse visible to the students. New
ways should be sought to help to engage readers in an examination o f how language
coerces the reader. Also, new ways should also be determined to further engage
students in reflection on the contradictions evident in their attitudes about gender
relations in the literature and in the society, and the investments which result in an
aversion to a feminist perspective. This would include an analysis of the benefits for
readers who respond to patriarchal texts in traditional ways, as well as the liabilities that
exist for those engaging in a feminist critique of such texts. Such an analysis may
demonstrate to students the reasons for their resistance.
I believe also that there is a need for continued research on “self-subversive self
reflection” (Bogdan, 1997) to determine whether continued re-readings of the literature
and reflection on literature and literary responses would heighten students' critical
402
awareness of their unconscious resistances and attractions to the texts. Conducting
research in smaller classes and using shorter literary works would allow for second and
third readings, and the time to engage students in writing and re-writing responses as
well as engaging in in-depth discussions. The opportunity would help students to
uncover the unconscious forces impacting their resistance to and engagement with the
literature.
There is also a continued need for research to be conducted to determine the best
ways to improve high school students’ ability to identify narrative constructs and
authorial perspective in literature. Without this ability, it is difficult to introduce
criticisms that address governing textual ideologies or metanarratives.
There is also a need for continued research to determine the optimal
combination of teaching approaches and strategies. One student’s success as a result o f
the combination of narrative theory and feminist criticism has convinced me of the
value of combining some approaches and strategies. In addition, research is needed to
investigate the results of juxtaposing male and female-authored literature and classic
and contemporary literature to see if that combination would result in helping to raise
gender consciousness.
By giving voice to the silenced characters in improvisational dialogues, my
students took the first steps toward awareness of the important part that ideology plays
in the construction of the story and the reader. Future research may identify additional
steps that could be taken to further engage students in a consideration of textual
positioning. Continued research is also needed in order to identify the relationship
between consciousness of gender inequality in literature and in life, and the
commitment to social action and an ethical way of life.
403
Conclusion
Envisioning myself on this continuum has helped me to see my involvement as
one in process. Seeing myself as part of a process has allowed me to better accept the
students’ resistances as a necessary reaction of adolescent boys and girls to such a
fundamental paradigm shift. It has also helped me to see the challenges, contradictions,
failures, and lack of closure identified with this research project as necessary by
products of an ongoing struggle to bring about social change involving gender equality.
Finally, it has allowed me to see any small victories or epiphanies as progressive strides
in the continuing commitment to the transformation of reading practices and lives.
I began my investigation with the students by attempting to raise their critical
consciousness of gender inequities in the literature and in their lives. In spite of the fact
that there was a resistance to what students saw as a feminist perspective, and to societal
change, the findings regarding the effects of my literary and strategic choices on the
students responses are not completely without promise. Students’ evaluations of the
teaching approaches and methods indicate resistance, but also a great deal of progress,
as we were able to identify and investigate the contradictions in their convictions.
Considering the fact that this course was the students’ first conscious
experience with gender-related education or a gender-conscious approach to literature,
the findings strongly suggest that pedagogical strategies and choices can make a
difference, and that further efforts will continue to produce positive results. The fact
that the students are experiencing contradictions suggests an increased opportunity for
growth (Kohlberg, 1980; Heathcote, 1984; Johnson, 1997).
One can only resist what threatens to usurp one’s notion of reality, one’s notion of an ordered universe. Resistance, then, is not necessarily a nonresponse; rather, it suggests dissonance which in turn, signals a recognition whether conscious or not, that new knowledge has upset one’s equilibrium. We can use resistance I have shown, to foster deeper investigation than would be possible when what we teach is met with acceptance (Soter, private conversation, July 2,2001).
404
APPENDIX A
Background Survey
Personal Background
IWhat do you understand by the meaning of the words “gender” or “sex?”
2. What experience have you had with any gender-related education?
3 .What does the word ‘feminist’ mean to you?
4. Do you think feminine and masculine behaviors biologically determined/socially constructed?
5. List some ‘feminine’ and ‘masculine’ traits. Have labels of ‘’’feminine” or “masculine” behavior been limiting or troubling for you?
Literary Background
1 . Have you had any experience reading a book written far enough in the past so that you have experienced a cultural gap of any kind when attempting to relate to the characters or to the story?
2. Have you ever had any experience with any book, story, or play where you have experienced a specific inability to relate to the characters, relationships, or situations due to old-fashioned gender or relationship representations?
3. Have you ever been aware, while reading, that you are being drawn into the narrative, even though you have resisted the story on some personal, cultural, or ethical grounds? Be as specific as you can be.
405
APPENDIX B
Final Survey
(1) What particular activity, discussion or criticism (of what book or story) gave you a more critical perspective about the representation of men and women and relationship in literature?
(2) Was there any realization of your previous naivete in terms of seeing how gender stereotypes are created by authors, or read by an audience? Was there any realization of previous failure to notice either sexist or unequal portrayals o f characters, or sexist overall perspectives in the literature?
Yes No Explain
(3) What impact has this class had on your life?
(4) What impact has this class had on your book reading/movie viewing in terms of noticing gender issues (stereotypes, double standards, and sexist ideology)?
(5) Did you experience any resistance to, or struggle with, the direction taken in the class in terms of its emphasis on gender issues, sexist stereotypes and gender/relationship representation?
406
APPENDIX C
Questions for Initial Written Responses
(1) In terms of gender representation, are men/women and the love relationships portrayed realistically? Could this story take place today?
(2) Did you relate to any characters/central relationships?
(3) Did you have trouble relating to any of the main characters or central romantic relationships? What were the issues that made identifying with characters or story difficult?
(4) Did you find that your difficulty to connect with characters or relationships (due to cultural gender disparities) affected your appreciation of the text?
(5) What do you think the author’s point is in this story?
407
APPENDIX D
Background Questionnaire (Focus Group)
Are your parents married? Yes No If so, how long have parents been married?How many siblings do you have? Names, agesHow would you describe your relationship with your parents?How would you describe your relationship with your siblings?
What is your religious affiliation?Would you describe yourself as religious? Yes No Are your beliefs typical of your religion? Yes No
What do your parents do for a living?Mom:Dad:
How long have you lived in this town?What schools have you attended?
Are you happy living here? Yes No Reasonably happy Do you like to read? Yes No Do you read a lot? Yes No What kinds of books do you like to read?
What is your favorite book(s)?How would you describe your success in school? General level o f contentment. Grade point average etc.
Are you a person with lots of friends or a few close ones?How would you describe your relationship with the staff? Other adults?What two qualities do you think the staff would list describing you?12What are two qualities that you think your friends would list in a description of you?12Do you have a boyfriend, girlfriend right now? Yes NoWould you describe as heterosexual, homosexual, bisexual, or not sure?Does this sexual preference represent any problem/difficulty for you?If you are heterosexual, do you think that a realization that you were gay or lesbian would be difficult for you? Yes, No Explain.
408
What are your hobbies, talents, co-curricuIar activities?Do you have a job? Yes No Hours per week___________What is it?_____________ Do you like it? Yes NoWhat kid of entertainment do you like? Films, theater, type of music etc.?”
Would you describe yourself as someone who thinks current gender constructions are a problem in this society for people or the society? Yes, or no? Why?Do you think they are a problem in various media?Do you feel any need to work to change the status quo in that respect? Yes No Why? Have your ideas changed on that subject as a result of the class?
Do you feel comfortable with the male or female gender role that you think society has constructed for you (conditioned you to play) Yes No Explain Do you feel at all rebellious about that role? Yes No Explain If so, in what way do you act that rebellion out?What effect does this rebellion have on others? Yourself?
What does the word 'feminist' mean to you?How would you describe your attitudes about feminism coming into this class?Has that attitude changed?Did you come to this literature with positive or negative ideas about marriage?Positive Negative Explain on back
Is there anything that you would like to say about yourself that you think is an important identifier or something you think is important about yourself that you haven’t had much of a chance to say? Use other side.
409
APPENDIX E
Final Questionnaire (Focus Group)
Here is the lineup of women and men in classic literature we have met:
1 James’ Washington Square
2 Fitzgerald’s The Great Gatsbv
3 Hemingway’s A Farewell To Arms
4 Hemingway’s “Hills Like White E.’
5 Anderson’s “The Untold Lie’’
6 Stein’s “The Gentle Lena
7 Hurston’s Their Eves_________
Catherine -Maurice
a. Daisy-Torn; b. Daisy-Gatsby
c. Nick-Jordan; d. Tom- Myrtle
Catherine-Frederic
Jig and the man
Ray and Minnie Pearson
Lena and Herman
Janie- a; Jody b Janie-Teacake
Indicate the degree to which you relate/connect with the character
Catherine Sloper negligible low moderate high extremely high
Daisy negligible low moderate high extremely high
Myrtle negligible low moderate high extremely high
Catherine B negligible low moderate high extremely high
Jig negligible low moderate high extremely high
Minnie Pearson negligible low moderate high extremely high
Nell Gunther negligible low moderate high extremely high
Lena negligible low moderate high extremely high
Janie negligible low moderate high extremely high
410
Dr. Sloper: negligible low moderate high extremely high
Maurice negligible low moderate high extremely high
Tom negligible low moderate high extremely high
Gatsby negligible low moderate high extremely high
Nick negligible low moderate high extremely high
George Wilson negligible low moderate high extremely high
Herman negligible low moderate high extremely high
Man in “Hills” negligible low moderate high extremely high
Frederic negligible low moderate high extremely high
Ray Pearson negligible low moderate high extremely high
Hal Winters negligible low moderate high extremely high
Logan negligible low moderate high extremely high
Jody negligible low moderate high extremely high
Teacake negligible low moderate high extremely high
Of the ones you selected ‘high’ or ‘extremely high’, in what ways do you relate?
Names Ways you relate
Of the ones you rated high or extremely high, who are the ones whose romantic situations you think you could imagine yourself getting into on the basis of your similarity with the character?
What attracts the female protagonist to the man or men with whom she is involved; what attracts the male protagonist to the female?
1 Catherine-Maurice (Washington Square!
2 Daisy-Tom (The Great Gatsbv) Tom-Daisy
Maurice-Catherine
3. Myrtle-Tom Tom-Myrtle
4 Daisy-Gatsby Gatsby-Daisy
411
5 Catherine-Frederic (FTA)Frederic-Catherine
6 Janie-Jody (Their Eves Were Watching God~)Jody-Janie
yJanie-TeacakeTeacake-JanieDo you think that your era colors your feelings about the characters? Yes No Why, how? Who has the power in the story? over whom? How do they get that power?1 Catherine/Maurice
2 Daisy/Tom
■ 3 Daisy/Gatsby
4. Tom-Myrtle
5. Nick-Jordan
6. Catherine-Frederic
7. Hills Like White Elephants man. woman
8 Janie-Jody
9 Janie-Teacake
In which cases does the power balance change as the story progresses?
In which case(s) are the authors making a critique of what they see as unequal power relations in the story? How do they do it?
In which cases do you critique the power structure in the story? Why?
Do you find it difficult to do this without help from others to see it? yes no
W hat, if any, are the double standards for behavior (behavior /beauty/power or otherwise) and/or expectation for men and women you see in the novels?
1 Catherine/Maurice
2 Tom/Daisy
3 Tom-Myrtle
4 Catherine/Frederic
5. Hills Like White
6. Janie/Jody
412
7 Janie/Teacake
In which case(s), if any, are the authors making a critique of the double standards in the novel?
Do you agree with those critiques, if you see any? Why? In what cases?
Are these critiques related to gender of author? yes, no. Which?
Circle the word which best describes the following men:
Dr. Sloper dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Maurice dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Tom dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Gatsby dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Nick dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Frederic dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Ray dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Hal dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Herman dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Jody dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Teacake dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
In general, do these common portrayals reflect general male characteristics that are realistic for men today? Yes No
Do any authors mean to critique these kinds of men?Which?
If so, do you agree with these critques?Why?
Circle the word that best describes the following women: assertive, independent, controlling or dependent and followers, leaders
Catherine S dependent cooperative leader assertive... independent ...controlling
Daisy dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Myrtle dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
413
Catherine B dependent cooperative leader assertive . independent controlling
Minnie dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Lena dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
Janie dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
girl/Hills dependent cooperative leader assertive independent controlling
If so. are these general characteristics realistic for descriptions of women today? Yes, No, Why?
Do any authors mean to critique their types of women? Who? If so, do you agree with these critiques? Why?
If you resist the portrayals in general, what is the basis of your resistance?
How were your ideas about marriage affected by “The Gentle Lena?”What were your ideas?
Did Stein’s and Hurston’s novels have any affect on how you looked retrospectively on any of the other men or women or their portrayals in men’s works? How? Which ones?
What, if any, sexist perspectives do you think are being reinforced by?
Hemingway A Farewell To Arms Hemingway (“Hills”)Fitzgerald (The Great Gatsby)Sherwood Anderson (“Untold Lie”)James (Washington Square!Hurston (Their Evesl Stein (“TTie Gentle Lena”)
Do you do anything that you are aware of to resist sexist stereotypes as you read them in literature? What?
Do you do anything to resist them in your own life? If so, what?
Do you do anything to reinforce sexist stereotypes in your life? What?
Do you see others reinforcing sexist stereotypes or inequality in relationship today?
Do you think inequality between the sexes is a moral issue we all should be concerned with? Like racism etc. Why, why not?
Boys, how will you avoid turning out like Jody in Their Eves Were Watching God or Tom in The Great Gatsby?
Girls, how will you avoid turning out like Myrtle in The Great Gatsbv. Catherine Sloper in Washington Square, or Janie with Jody in Their Eves Were Watching God?
414
APPENDIX F
Interview Questions for Focus Group Members
Background1. D oes your mother work?2. Did she stay at home with you when you were small?3. What part did your mom/dad play in your child rearing?4 . What career are you considering?5. Do you think you will have children?6. Have you ever thought about who will take care o f kids?7. D oes this decision represent a conflict in terms o f balancing work with childcare?
Definitions1. What are some characteristics you would deem to be masculine?2. What are some characteristics you would deem to be feminine?3. What percentage o f these is biologically determined?4 . Which are personally troubling or limiting for you?5. What is your idea o f how the ideal relationship should work?
Literature1. W ho is your favorite fictional character so far?2. W ho do you relate to most/least?3. What is the history o f your education regarding gender stereotypes in literature/life?4 . When you watch an ad, or read a book, are you sensitive to gender stereotypes?5. D o you like thinking about gender stereotypes, looking for them?6. When we discuss it in class, do you make any connections to your own life?7. In literature, who suffers more from sexist stereotypes, men or women?• When you read older literature, and you meet characters created in pre-women's movement times, do
you make an attempt to fill in the cultural gaps by 'updating' the men and women with more contemporary characteristics in order to relate better?
9 , Do you believe that literature reflects culture?10. Do you believe that you bring your culture to the reading o f a book?
Specific Literature1, Talk about Ernest Hemingway in terms o f the w ays in which he represented gender and relationship in "Hills like White Elephants and A Farewell to Arms.
Could Catherine be portrayed today the way she was in A Farewell to Arms? W ould people find her anachronistic today?2. H ow does the central perspective about the sexes differ in those two works? Do you think that Hemingway is writing as a feminist in "Hills like White Elephants?”
415
3. Do you think that there are any other books that com e from that perspective, or ones we read that don’t com e from that perspective?4 . D o you think that Henry James took a fem inist perspective in portraying the way women were treated in a negative way?5. Do you believe that literature reflects culture realistically? Do you believe that you bring your culture to the reading o f a book, the interpretation o f the characters?6 . So . should w e only read more current novels?7 . How do you. as a reader today, respond to and identify with the relationship between Daisy and Tom in view o f economic/cultural factors determining the male dominance in the relationship?8. What would be needed to bring about a more egalitarian relationship here?9. How did you initially relate to Catherine Barkley, in A Farewell to Arms? Did your ideas change?10. How did you respond to Jim Phelan’s point that Catherine’s portrayal was beyond sexism because she transcended her sexist role and realized that the only way to live was to love and be loved and to not waste a lot o f time. Just g ive yourself?11. Do you think that Catherine Sloper and Daisy Buchanan make choices or are they made for them?12. What would Catherine Sloper and Myrtle W ilson and Daisy Buchanan and even Lena and Minnie and Nell from “The Untold Lie" have to do to be the ones taking control o f their lives?13 Talk about Sherwood Anderson’s ideas about the roles o f men and o f women in marriage.14. Did that awareness affect your appreciation for the story?15. Are there any other stories you can think o f where the point o f the story is made at the expense o f men or women as a gendered group? Have you read One Flew over The Cuckoo’s Nest by Ken Kesey? Talk to me about the roles o f men and women in that book in terms o f theme.16. What did you think about the fact that TeaCake hits Janie in Their Eves Were Watching God? Is this a social issue, reflecting gender issues in society, or a personal one?17. Give me a line for (Catherine Sloper. Lena, Herman, Daisy. Minnie and N ell. Janie) that you think they would have spoken if they could have but were unable to speak in the book— a line that really characterizes them.18. What advice would you give (chosen characters) from a twentieth century point o f view?
Literature and Life1. When we discussed gender portrayal in literature in the class in terms o f characters .’do you make any connections to your life? H ow did you do that?2. D o you do anything that you are aware o f to reinforce sexist stereotypes?3. D o you think sexism or gender stereotyping are moral issues we all should be concerned with?4 . What do you think is needed to bring about a more egalitarian male female society?5JDo you think there is social pressure concerned with talking about gender and relationship stereotypes in class?
Reactions to Pedagogies2 . Did any conversations or activities affect the way you think about gender and gender construction?
Are you more attentive to the ways authors construct characters?
How did you react to the follow ing exercises?1. Katherine Sloper’s letter to her dad2. Drawing the pictures o f the characters in Gatsby3. Interview by journalist o f Equal Relationship M agazine to actors playing sexist parts in The Great Gatsbv.4 . Why do you think kids didn’t engage with the questions the journalists asked in that exercise?6 . How did you respond to the role play discussion w e had with Nell Gunther and with Minnie Pearson (“The Untold Lie”) about their being pregnant and losing their dreams and their freedom?7 . How did you react to drama activities for tire study o f Their Eves Were Watching God?
416
8. H ow do you react to Judith Fetterley’s points about The Great Gatsbv? A Farewell to Arms?9X)id any o f these activities change your perspective on gender representation in literature, or make you more conscious o f gender issues in literature or in life?
Male Authored v. Female Authored Literature1. After having read Emma Goldman’s work and that o f Gertrude Stein and also Zora N eale Hurston, did their ideas and literary perspectives change any o f your reactions to the male-authored books? How do you account for Hurston's having TeaCake hit Janie in a book that people have called one with a ‘fem inist perspective?’2. What if ‘ The Untold Lie" had been written from the viewpoint o f the women? H ow would that work? W ould it work? What would be lost?Changes Over the Course o f the Class.1. Are you more attentive to the way you construct characters when you read? Like in “The Untold Lie,” did you notice initially that women were sort o f left out, at best, or depicted badly at worst.2 . thinking about the women: Catherine Sloper Daisy, Myrtle, Catherine Barkley, Jig, and Lena M innie, N ell, Janie3. Did you change your mind about any o f them from beginning to end?4. If you could give them advice, what would it be?5. If they had a line to say that they didn’t say in the book but that you thought they wanted or you wanted them to say, what would they be?6 . Have you changed your ways o f thinking, reading since the class?
7. How would you have liked it to be different?
8. Do you think anything would have worked better to get to the issues o f the differences between present day and idea o f relationship in early 20th century?
Advice for the Teacher1. D o you have any recommendations that would insure that students will continue relating with this older American literature?2. Do you think that the study o f this literature requires any intervention for kids to think about gender?3. What should kids in the future think about in relation to this literature so that they can continue to read the literature?4. Do you think that you have becom e more sensitive to the w ays in which men and women and relationships are represented in literature since the class began?5. Do you think there is pressure concerned with talking about gender issues in classes with boys (girls)?6. How did the experiences doing your projects help you to relate with the gender issues in your particular literary choice?7. If you have been affected by the issues brought up in this class, what do you intend to do about it in your life?
417
APPENDIX G
Final Improvisational Workshop
1) 15 minutes max. Take two to three minutes to close your eyes, imagine that you have the . opportunity to be a member of the opposite sex. If you were a girl instead of a boy, or viceversa, how would your life be different? Jot down your reactions to being the opposite sex in terms of whatever things come to mind: your feelings, reactions. Parents' reactions, friends’ reactions, different ways you would look, act, dress, behave, think about romance, career, sports, power, family etc.
2) 5 minutes. Act out a scene reversing roles in A Farewell to Arms (See Chapter Four, Section on A Farewell to Arms for script. Write your responses to Frederic.
3) 20 minutes. Four students participate in an extemporaneous reader’s theatre. Students play the parts of Minnie, Hal and Ray, and read the following lines. Nell is silent throughout the reading, with her back to the audience. When all three have spoken, Nell is invited to speak. When it is her turn, what does she say? Write either Nell’s words or her reaction to her silence.
Script:Minnie: “You’re always puttering. Now I want you to hustle. There isn’t anything in the house for supper and you’ve got to get to town and back in a hurry. The children will cry and cry.
Hal: "Shall I marry and settle down? Shall I put myself into the harness to be worn out like an old horse? Has it been worth while? What about it, eh? What about marriage and all that? Shall I do it or shall I tell Nell to go to the devil?"
Ray: Has he got to be harnessed up and driven through life like a horse? There was no promise made. I didn’t promise my Minnie anything and Hal hasn’t made any promise to Nell. Why should I pay? Why should Hal pay? Why should anyone pay? I don’t want Hal to become old and worn out. I’ll tell him. I won’t let it go on.
Nell:
4) 10 minutes. If "The Untold Lie” was written by a woman about the woman’s fears of being trapped in marriage, and Nell was in Hal’s shoes trying to decide whether to marry or not, what would her concerns be? If you created a stereotype for the male (as opposed to nagging like Minnie did), what characteristics or foibles would you assign to the husband that would frighten the woman from marriage? Write.
418
APPENDIX H
Early Social Imagination Activities
I Girls:
Write a letter to this female character in which you introduce yourself.
Boys:
Write a letter to a male character in which you introduce yourself
2. Explain to the character the ways in which you are similar
3. Explain the ways in which you are different from her.
4 .Explain to the character the ways in which it is easy/difficult for you to relate to the character because of/in spite of the cultural differences.
5.Pose two questions that you would like to ask the protagonist about her life and how it seems different. Or, give any advice you would like to give to the character.
6. Tell the protagonist two things about your life that seem better to you.
419
APPENDIX I
Advanced Social Imagination Activity
Suggestions for Updates for “The Gentle Lena”
(1) Reconstruct this story to be set in the year 2000, making whatever changes and decisions in actresses, actors, set, costume ideas, circumstances, situation you deem necessary to draw and appeal to a contemporary audience. Try not to change the plot or characters or essential story any more than you have to. Strive to keep the plot and characters and situation as close to the original as you can without sacrificing the box office.
(2) Improvise the group for the class as well as you can, assigning appropriate roles to other members of the group.
(3) Explain why you made the changes you made and what that has to say about the suitability of the original for today’s audiences.
(4) Discuss the implications of these changes.
Follow-up Activity:
For a long-range activity, each group writes a screenplay for the particular scene designed, selects the actors, scene, costumes etc. and videotapes the scene. The written and videotaped versions are passed in.
420
APPENDIX J
Suggestions for Final Project
Choose one of the following suggestions or design vour own project. Remember that allproiects must address gender issues in addition to whatever other issues you want toaddress.
1. Write a screenplay and videotape the updated version of one section of eitherThe Great Gatsby, Washington Square, A FarewellTo Arms, Their Eyes Were Watching God Or The Gentle Lena, The Untold Lie or Hills Like White Elephants.
2. Produce a Charlie Rose style TV interview (one half-hour) between yourself and two novel authors or the male or female characters in two novels.
3. Write an extended scene for the stage between Catherine (WS), Daisy, Catherine (AFTA) and Janie wherein they have monologues and dialogues about their relationships with the men in their lives.
4. Write an extended scene for the stage between Dr. Sloper, Tom, Frederic and Jody wherein they have monologues and dialogues about their relationships with the men in their lives.
5. Put together a photography exhibit for The Great Gatsbv 1920s.
6. Create and produce a poetry reading for three fictitious poets and where the poetry explores the issues raised in any of the literature we have studied in the class. You write the poetry. You could have it read by others for the presentation.
7. Create a timeline on the web wherein you bring in create or import literary, historical musical, cultural background for the literature between 1900 and 1937.
8. Create a web page on literary women of the period between 1900 and 1940. Include historical and fictional characters and historical situations.
9. Write a song (music and lyrics) for one of the characters or a duet for two of the characters in one of the literary works.
10. Compose an aria or quartet for two characters or the men or the women in all the novels. Explain your choices in typewritten paper.
421
11. Design costumes and make one for a character in any of the books. This would be accompanied by an explanation of the character’s costume(s).
12. Design a media kit for the opening of the movie version of any of the literature we have studied, complete with design for book cover and posters, even TV storyboard for ad.
13.An artistic rendering of some aspect of a novel or short story or depiction of conflict. This work would be accompanied by a short paper describing your choices.
14. Cartooning. Make a version of characters from all of the stories or rework one part of a novel or whole short story. Or, even create a scenario between different characters from different books and cartoon that story.
15. Make a diary belonging to one of the characters over a period of time. Or, write letters and make a book of them like Griffin and Sabine.
16.Make a magazine edition on the literature of the of the first quarter of the 20th century in America.
17. Create a radio show of your design in which you interview various people such as authors, characters or experts on the literary period studied.
18. Video yourself doing a stand-up comedy routine in which all of your intelligent humor is drawn from the literature, the authors and the culture that we have studied about the literary period between 1900 and 1940.
19. Create a documentary for TV in which you take a literary/cultural stroll through the period between 1900 and 1937. Youd could do the same thing with a website or magazine, using interesting layouts to introduce authors, little stmies, authentic reviews, and descriptions of the life and culture of the time
20. Make up something we haven’t thought of yet and run it by us.
422
References
AAUW. (1992) How Schools Shortchange Girls: The AAUW report. Washington, DC: The AAUW Educational Foundation.
AAUW (1999). Gender gaps: Where schools still Fail our children. New York: Marlowe and Co.
Acker, J., Barry K. & Essevold, J. (1983). Objectivity and truth: Problems in doing feminist research. Women's Studies International Forum. 6: 423-435.
Adams, H. (1986). Introduction to Hans Robert Jauss. In H. Adams & L. Searle, Critical theory since 1965. (pp. 163-4). Tallahassee, FL: Florida State University Press.
Anderson, S. (1985). “The Untold Lie.” In J. Ferres W inesburs. Ohio: Text and criticism (pp. 202-209). New York: Penguin Books.
Applebee, A.N., Langer, J. and Mullis, I.V. (1989) A Study of Book-Length Works Taught in High School English Courses. Albany: Center For the Learning and Teaching of Literature, State University of New York School o f Education.
Applebee, A.N. (1993). Literature in the secondary school: Studies of curriculum and instruction in the United States. Urbana: National Council of Teachers of English.
Bahktin, M. (1981). The dialogic imagination: Four essays. Trans. C. Emerson and M. Holquist. Austin: University of Texas Press.
Beach, R. (1993). A teacher’s introduction to reader-response theories. Urbana, IL: National Council of Teachers of English.
Beach, R. (1997). Students’ resistance to engagement with multicultural literature. In T. Rogers & A.O. Soter. (Eds.), Reading across cultures: Teaching literature in a diverse society (pp. 69-94). New York: Teachers College Press.
Beach, R. and Freedman, K. (1992). Responding as a cultural act: Adolescents’ responses to magazine ads and short stories. In J. Many & C. Cox (Eds.), Reader Stance and Literary Understanding (pp. 162-190). Norwood, NJ: Ablex.
Beach, R. & Hynds, S. (1988). Research on the learning and teaching of literature: Selected bibliography. Albany, NY: Center for the Learning of and Teaching of Literature.
423
Beach & Hynds, (1991). Research on response to literature. In Pearson, D. The Handbook of reading research, volume 2. New York: Longman.
Belenky, M.F., Clinchy, B.M., Goldberger, N.R., and Tarule, J.M. (1986). Women’s wavs of knowing: The development of self, voice and mind. New York: Basic Books.
Belsey, C. (1988). Critical Practice. London: Routledge.
Black, J. & Siefert, C. (1985). The psychological study o f story in understanding. In C. Cooper (Ed.), Research response to literature and the teaching of literature (pp. 190-211). Norfolk, NJ: Ablex.
Blackmur, R. (1962). Introduction. In R. Blackmur (Ed.), Washington Square / The Europeans (pp. 5-12). New York: Dell Publishing.
Bleich, D. (1986). Gender interests in reading and language. In E. Flynn and P. Schweickart (Eds.), Gender and reading: Essavs on readers, texts, and contexts. Baltimore, MD: The Johns Hopkins University Press.
Bogdan, D. (1990). In and out of love with literature. In D. Bogdan and S. Straw, Bevond communication. Portsmouth, NH: Boyton/Cook.
Bogdan, D. (1992). Re-educating the imagination: Toward a poetics, politics and pedagogv of literarv engagement. Portsmouth, NH: Boynton/Cook.
Bogdan, D., Dark, H., and Robertson, J. (1997). Sweet surrender and trespassing desires in reading: Jane Campion’s The Piano and the struggle for responsible pedagogy. Changing English . 4 (1) 81-103.
Bogdan, D. (1999). Personal email communication.
Booth, W. (1961). The rhetoric of fiction Chicago: University of Chicago Press.
Booth, W. (1988). The companv we keep: An ethics of fiction. Berkeley, CA: University of California Press.
Britzman, D. (1995). Beyond innocent readings: Educational ethnography as a crisis of representation. In C. Pink and G. Noblit (Eds.) Continuity and contradiction: the futures of the sociology of education. Cresskill, NJ: Hampton Press.
Brown, L.M. & Gilligan, C. (1992). Meeting at the crossroads: W omen’s psychology and girls’ development. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press.
Buckingham, D. (1993). Boys’ talk: Television and the policing of masculinity. In D. Buckingham (Ed.L Reading audiences: Young people and the media (p. 89-115). New York: Manchester University Press.
/govBureau of Justice Statistics on Crime and Justice in the U.S. www/ojp/us/doj
424
Butler, J. (1999). Gender trouble: Feminism and the subversion of identity. New York: Routledge.
Cherland, M R. (1992). Gendered readings: Cultural restraints upon response to literature. The New Advocate 5: (3) 187-198.
Cherland, M. R. (1994) Private practices: girls reading fiction and constructing identity. Bristol, PA: Taylor & Francis.
Cherland, M U., & Edelsky, C. (1993). Girls and reading: The Desire for agency and the horror of helplessness in fictional encounters. In L.K. Christian-Smith (Ed.), Essavs on fiction, femininity and schooling. London: The Palmer Press.
Christian-Smith, L. (1990). Becoming a woman through romance. New York: Routledge
Christian-Smith. (1993). Constituting and Reconstituting Desire: Fiction, Fantasy and Femininity. In L. Christian Smith (Ed.), Texts o f Desire (pp. 1-8). Washington, D C.: The Palmer Press.
Cixous , H. (1980) The laugh of the medusa. In New French Feminism: An anthology (pp.245-264). E. Marks and I. De Courtivron (Eds.), New York: Schoken Books.
Coles, R. (1989). The call o f stories: Teaching and the moral imagination. Boston: Houghton Mifflin Company.
Collins, A., Brown, J.S., & Holum (1991). Cognitive apprenticeship: Making thinking visible. American Educator. Winter, 6-11, 38.
Consiglio. A. (1999). Gender identity and narrative truth: An autobiographical approach to bias. English Journal. 88: (3). 71-77.
Coward, R. (1984). Female desire. London: Paladin.
Davies, (93). Beyond dualism and toward multiple subjectivities, in L. Christian-Smith (Ed.l. Texts of desire: Essavs on fiction, femininitv and schooling. Washington, DC: The Palmer Press.
Davies, B. Banks, C. (1992). The gender trap: A feminist poststructuralist analysis of primary school children’s talk about gender. Journal of Curriculum Studies. 24:(1)1-25.
Day, S. (1994). Gender, schema and reading. Reading Psvchologv. 15(2). 91-107.
Denzin, Norman K. (1989). The Research Act. Englewood Cliffs, New Jersey: Prentice Hall.
Denzin, Norman K., and Lincoln, Yvonna S. (1994). Introduction: Entering the Field of Qualitative Research. In N. Denzin and Y. Lincoln (Eds.), Handbook of Qualitative Research. London: Sage.
425
Denzin, Norman. (1994) The art and politics of interpretation. In N. Denzin and Y. Lincoln. Handbook of Qualitative Research (Eds.) London: Sage, 1994.
Derrida, J. (1974). O f Grammatologv (G. Spivak (Trans.). Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press.
Derrida, J. W riting and Difference. (1979). A. Bates (trans.) Chicago: University of Chicago Press.
Dewey, John, (1988) Human nature and conduct (1922) In The middle works Of John Dewev. 1899-1924. (Ed.), J.A. Boydston. Carbondale, IL: Southern Illinois University Press.
Eagleton, M. (1986). Feminist literarv theorv: A reader. New York: Blackwell Publishers.
Eagleton, M. (1996). Working with feminist criticism. Cambridge, MA: Blackwell Publishers.
Edmiston, B. (1998). Imagining to leam: Inquirv. ethics, and integration through drama. Portsmouth, NH: Heinemann.
Edmiston. B. (1999) Class handouts.
Edwards, L. (1972). Love energy and Middlemarch. Massachusetts Review. 13: 223-38.
Eeds, M. and Peterson, R. (1991). Teacher as curator: Learning to talk about literature. The Reading Teacher 45: 2 118-26.
Eeds, M. and Wells, D. (1989). Grand conversations: An exploration of meaning construction in literature study groups. Research in the Teaching of English. 23: (1)4- 29.
Ellmann, M. (1968). Thinking about women. New York: Harcourt Brace Janovich.
Ellsworth, E. (1989). Why doesn’t this feel empowering? Working through the repressive myths of critical pedagogy,” Harvard Educational Review. 59:3 297-325.
Enciso, P.E. (1994). Engagement. In A C. Purves. (Ed.), Encvclopedia of English studies and language arts. New York: Scholastic, Inc.
Erikson, Frederick. (1986). Qualitative methods in research on teaching. In M.Wittrock (Ed.). Handbook of Research on Teaching. New York: Macmillan.
Evans, K. Alverman, D. and Anders, P. Literature discussion groups: An examination of gender roles. Reading Research and Instruction. 32:2 107-122.
Faludi, S. (1991). Backlash: The undeclared war against American women. New York: Crown Publishing Group.
426
Fetterley, J. (1978). The resisting reader: A feminist approach to American fiction. Bloomington, IN: Indiana University Press.
Fiedler, Leslie. (1998’). Love and death in the American novel. Normal, IL: Dalkey Archive.
Fish, S. (1980). Is there a text in this class? The authoritv of interpretive communities. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press.
Fish, S. (1980). Literature in the reader: Affective stylistics. In J. Tompkins (Ed.), Reader-Response Criticism: From formalism to post-structuralism. Baltimore: The Johns Hopkins University Press.
Fitzgerald. F. Scott. (1995). The great gatsby. New York: Scribner Paperback Fiction.
Flax, J. (1990). Postmodern and gender relations in feminist theory. In L. Nicholson (Ed.), Feminism/Postmodernism (39-62). New York: Routledge.
Flax, J. (1993). Disputed Subjects: Essays on psvchoanalvsis. politics and philosophv. New York: Routledge.
Flynn, E. (1986). Gender and reading. In E. Flynn and P. Schweickart (Eds.), Gender and reading: Essavs on readers, texts, and contexts. Baltimore, MD: The Johns Hopkins University Press.
Fontana, Andrew and Frey, James. “Interviewing: The Art of Science,” Handbook of Qualitative Research. Eds. Norman Denzin and Yvonna Lincoln. London: Sage, 1994.
Foucault, M. (1976) The historv of sexualitv. Volume 1: An introduction. New York, Vintage Books.
Foucault, M. (1977). The political function of the intellectual. Radical Philosophv. 17: 12-14.
Foucault, M. (1980). Pov/er/knowledge: Selected interviews and other writings. 1972-1977. C, Gordon (Trans.) Sussex, UK: Harvester Press.
Foucault, M. (1986). The discourse on language. In H. Adams & L. Searle, Critical theorv since 1965 (pp. 148-162). Tallahassee, FL: Florida State University Press
Freire, P. (1990/1973). Pedagogv of the oppressed. New York: Continuum Publishing.
Freud, S. (1908). Family romances. In Standard Edition of the complete works of psvchological works of Sigmund Freud, vol. IX. London: Hogarth and the Institute of Psychoanalysis.
Frye, N. (1963). The educated imagination. Toronto: CBC Enterprises.
427
Gates, H. (1998). Afterward in Hurston. Their eves were watching god. New York: Harper Collins.
Gilbert, P. and Taylor, S. (1991). Fashioning the feminine: Girls, popular culture and schooling. Sydney: Alien and Unwin.
Gilbert, S. & Gubar. S. 11984'). The Madwoman in the attic: The woman writer and the nineteenth century imagination. New Haven: Yale University Press.
Gilligan, C. (1982). In a different voice: Psvchological theorv and wom en's development. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University^ Press.
Gilligan, C. (1989). Making connections: The relational worlds of adolescent girls at Emma Willard School. Cambridge: Harvard University Press.
Giroux, H. (1981). Ideology, schooling and the process of schooling. Philadelphia: Temple University Press.
Giroux, H. (1988). Schooling and the struggle for public life: Critical pedagogv in the modem age. Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press.
Giroux, H. (1991) Postmodernism, feminism, and cultural politics: Redrawing educational boundaries. Albany: State University Press.
Giroux, H., McLaren, P. (1989). Critical pedagogv. the state, and cultural struggle. Albany, State University Press.
Glesne, C. and Peshkin, A. Becoming Qualitative Researchers: An Introduction. White Plains, NY: 1992.
Golden, J. and Guthrie, J. (1986). Convergence and divergence in read response to literature. Reading Research Ouarterlv. 21 ,408^21 .
Goetz, J. & LeCompte, M. (1984). Ethnographv and qualitative design in educational research. New York: Academic Press.
Golden, J. and Guthrie, J. (1986). Convergence and divergence in read response to literature. Reading Research Ouarterlv. 21,408-421.
Goldman, E. (1969). Love and marriage. In Anarchism, and other essavs (p. 227-239). Port Washington, NY: Kennikat Press.
Gore, J. (1992). The struggle for pedagogies: Critical feminist pedagogies and regimes of truth. New York: Routledge.
Greene, M. (1995). Releasing the imagination: Essavs on education, the arts, and social change. San Francisco: Jossey-Bass.
Grumet, M. (2000). Feminism and education. In B. Moon, M. Ben-Perez, and S. Brown (Eds.). Routledge international companion to education, (pp. 426-441). London:Routledge.
428
Cuba, E. and Lincoln, Y. (1981). Effective evaluation San Francisco : Jossey- Bass Publishers.
Cuba. E. & Lincoln, Y. (1994). Competing paradigms in qualitative research. In N Denzin and Y. Lincoln (Eds.), Handbook of qualitative research. London: Sage.
Haroway, D. (1988). Situated knowledges: The science question in feminism and the privilege of partial perspective. Feminist Studies. 14: (3) 575-590.
Harper, V. (2000). Wild words-dangerous desires: High school girls and feminist avant-garde writing. New York: Peter Lang.
Hattenhauer, Daryll. (1994). The death of Janie Crawford: Tragedy and the American dream in Their eves were watching god. Melus. 19(1), 45-56.
Heathcote, D. (1984). The authentic teacher and the future. In L. Johnson and C. O ’Neill (Eds.), Collected writings on education and drama: Dorothy H eathcote. Evanston, IL: Northwestern University Press.
Heathcote, D. and Bolton,G. (1995). Drama for learning: Dorothy Heathcote s mantle of the expert approach to education. Portsmouth, N.H.: Heinemann, 1995.
Hemingway, E. (1969). A farewell to arms. New York: Charles Scribner Sons.
Hemingway, E. (1987) Hills like white elephants. In The complete short stories of Ernest Hemingwav: The finca vigia edition, (pp. 211-14). New York: Simon and Schuster Inc.
Henriques, J, Holloway, W, Unwin, C, Venn, C. and Walkerdine, V. (1984). Changing the subiect: Psvchologv. social regulation and subjectivitv. London: Methuen.
Hines, M. What’s theory got to do, got to do with it? English Education. (1995). 27:4.241-252.
Hines, M. (1997). Multiplicity and difference in literary inquiry: Toward a conceptual framework for reader-centered cultural criticism. In T. Rogers & A. Soter (Eds.), Reading across cultures: Teaching literature in a diverse societv. New York: Teachers College Press.
hooks, b. (1990). Black looks: race and representation. Boston: South End Press.
Horst, L. (1996). Bitches, witches and eunuchs: Sex role failure and caricature. In J.C. Pratt (Ed.), One flew over the cuckoo’s nest: Text and criticism (pp. 464-71). New York: Penguin Books.
Hurston, Z. N. (1998). Their eves were watching god. New York: Perennial Classics.
Iser, W. (1994). The reading process: The phenomenological approach. In J. Tompkins (Ed.), Reader-response criticism : From formalism to post
structuralism. Baltimore: The Johns Hopkins University Press.
429
Iser, W. (1978). The act of reading. London: Routledge.
James, H. (1959). Washington square. New York: Dell Publishing Co.
James-Brown, F. (1995) The Black Male Crisis in the Classroom. Unpublished dissertation. Columbus: Ohio State University.
Jasinski, J. (1996). Contexts, genres and imagination: An examination of the interplay between a teacher's writer instruction and her students' writing behaviors and beliefs in an urban elementary classroom . Unpublished Dissertation. Ohio State University, Columbus.
Jauss, H.R. (1986) Literary history as a challenge to literary theory. In H. Adams, L. Searle (Eds.). Critical Theorv Since 1965. Tallahassee, FL: Florida State
• University Press.
Jauss, H. R. (1982). Aesthetic experience and literarv hermeneutics. Minneapolis, MN: University of Minnesota Press.
Johnson, M. (1993). Moral imagination: Implications of cognitive science for ethics. Chicago: University of Chicago Press.
Kenway J, and Modra, H. (1992). Feminist pedagogy and emancipatory possibilities in feminisms and critical pedagogy in C. Luke and J. Gore (Eds.), Feminism and critical pedagogy (pp. 138-166). New York, Routledge.
Kesey, K. (1962) One flew over the cuckoo’s nest. New York: Viking Press.
Kohlberg, L. (1976). The cognitive-developmental approach to moral education. In D. Purpel & K. Ryan. (Eds.), Moral education. Berkeley, CA: McCutcheon Publishing Corporation.
Kohlberg, L. (1980). Stages o f moral development as a basis for moral education. In B. Munsey. Moral development, moral education and Kohlberg. Birmingham, AL: Religious Education Press.
Kohlberg. (1985). The just community approach to moral education in theory and practice. In M. Berkowitz & F. Oser, Moral education: Theory and application. Hilldale, NJ: Lawrence Erlbaum Associates.
Kolodny, A. (1985a). A map for misreading. In E. Showalter (Ed.), Feminist criticism: Essavs on women, literature and theorv. New York: Pantheon.
Kolodny, A. (1985b). Dancing through the minefield. In E. Showalter (Ed.), Feminist criticism: Essavs on women, literature and theorv. New York: Pantheon.
Lacan, J. (1977). Ecrits: A selection. A, Sheridan (Trans.). New York: WW. Norton and Company.
Langer, J. and Applebee, N. (1987). How writing shapes thinking: A study of teaching and learning. Urbana, IL: National Council of Teacher of English.
430
Lather, P. (1986). Issues o f Validity in Openly Ideological Research: Between a Rock and a Hard Place. Interchange. 17.4.
Lather, P, f 1991L Getting smart: Feminist research and pedagogy from with/in the postmodern. London: Routledge.
Lather, P. (1993). Fertile obsession: Validity after poststructuralism. Sociological Ouarterlv. 34 (4). 673-693.
Lather, P. (1994). Critical Inquiry in Qualitative Research: Feminist and Poststructural Perspectives: Science After Truth, Exploring Collaborative Research in Primary Care. Ed. Ben Crabtree et al. Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage.
Lauter, P. (1985). Race and Gender in the shaping of the American literary canon: A case study from the twenties. In Feminist criticism and social change: Sex, class and race in literature and culture. J. Newton and D. Rosenfelt (Eds.). New York: Methuen.
Lave, J. and Wenger, E. ('19911. Situated Learning: Legitimate Peripheral Participation. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press.
LeCompte and Preissle (1993). Ethnography and qualitative design in education al research. New York: Academic Press.
Lewis, M. (1990). Interrupting patriarchy: Politics, resistance and transformation in the feminist classroom. Harvard Educational Review. 60:4 467-88.
Lewis, M. (1992). Women of the Academy: Strategy, struggle, survival. In C. Luke and J. Gore (Eds.), Feminism and critical pedagogy . New York: Routledge.
Lincoln, Y. and Guba, E. (1985). Naturalistic inquirv. Beverly Hills,CA: Sage Publications.
Lincoln, Y and Guba, E. (1989). Fourth generation evaluation. Newbury Park, California: Sage Publications.
Lincoln. Y. and Guba, E. (1994). Competing Paradigms in qualitative research, in N, Denzin and Y. Lincoln (Eds.), Handbook of Qualitative Research (pp. 105-117). London: Sage.
Lister, M. and Dewdney, A. (1988). Youth, culture and photography. Basingstoke: Macmillan Education.
Luke, C. and Gore, J. (1992). Feminisms and critical pedagogy. New York: Routledge.
Lundberg, P. L. (1989). Gendered reading communities: the feminization of reader response criticism and a dialogics of reading. Unpublished doctoral dissertation. Loyola University.
Lusted, D, (1986). Why pedagogy? Screen 27 (5) 2-14.
431
Marcus, G. (1994). What comes (just) after “post”? In N. Denzin & Y. Lincoln rEds.L Handbook of Qualitative Research (pp. 563-574). Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage.
Marshall, C. and Rossman, G. (1995). Designing qualitative research Second Edition. Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage.
Marshall, J., Smagorinsky, P., & Smith, M. (1995). The language of interpretation: Patterns of discourse in discussion of literature. Urbana, IL: National Council of Teachers of English.
Martino, W. (1995) Deconstructing masculinity in the English classroom: A site for reconstituting gender subjectivity. Gender and Education. 7: (2) 205-20.
McRobbie, A. 09911. Feminism and vouth culture. Cambridge, MA: Hyman.
Mellencamp, J. C. (1982). Jack and Diane. On American Fool. New York: Mercury Records.
Merriam, S. (1998). Oualitative research and case study applications in education. San Francisco: Jossey-Bass Publishers
Miller, A. (1982). The crucible. New York: Penguin Books.
Miller, James. E. Jr. (1975). Fitzgerald’s Gatsbv: The world as ash heap. In Warren French (Ed.), The twenties: Fiction, poetry, drama. Deland, FL: Everett/ Edwards Inc.
Millett, K. (19691. Sexual politics. New York: Ballantine.
Miner, M. (1986). Guaranteed to please: Twentieth-century American women’s bestsellers. In E. Flynn and P. Schweickart (Eds.), Gender and reading: Essavs on readers, texts, and contexts. Baltimore, MD: The Johns Hopkins University Press.
Moi. T. (1985). Sexual/textual politics: Feminist literarv theorv. New York: Methuen.
Newton, A. Z. (1995). Narrative ethics. Cambridge, MA: Harvard UniversityPress.
Noddings, N. (19841. Caring. Berkeley: University of California Press.
Nussbaum, M. (1990). Love's knowledge: Essavs on philosophv and literature. New York: Oxford University Press.
Nussbaum, M. (1999). The professor of parody: The hip defeatism of Judith Butler. The New Republic. 220: (8) 37-45.
Obbink, L. (1992). Feminist Theory in the Classroom: Choices questions, voices. English Journal. 1: (7) 38-43.
O ’Donnell-Allen, C., Smagorinsky, P. (1999). Revising Ophelia: Rethinking questions of gender and power in school. English Journal. 88: (3) 35-42.
432
O'Neill, C. (1995). Drama worlds: A framework for process drama. Portsmouth, NH: Heinemann.
Pace, B.C. & Townsend, J. (1999). Gender roles: Listening to classroom talk about literary characters. English Journal. 45: (3) 43-49.
Patton. Michael. (1990). Purposeful sampling. In Qualitative evaluation and research methods. Second edition, Newbury Park, CA: Sage.
Peterson, R., and Eeds, M. (1990). Grand conversations: Literature groups in action. New York: Scholastic.
Phelan, J. (1996). Voice, distance, temporal perspective, and the dynamics of A Farewell To Arms. Narrative as rhetoric: Technique, audiences, ethics, ideologv (pp. 59-84). Columbus, OH: Ohio State University Press.
Phelan, J. (1989). Reading people reading plots: Character, progression and the interpretation of narrative. Chicago: University of Chicago Press.
Pipher, M. (1994). Reviving Ophelia: Saving the selves of adolescent girls. New York: G P. Putnam’s Sons.
Pitchart, J. and Anderson, R. (1977). Taking different perspectives on a story. Journal of Educational Psvchologv. 18. 309-15.
Pitt, A. (1994). Oualifving resistance: Some comments on methodological dilemmas. Draft.
Pollack, W. (1998). Real bo vs: Rescuing our sons from the mvths of bovhood. New York: Random House.
Rad way, J. (1984). Reading the romance: Women, patriarchy and popular literature. Chapel Hill, NC: The University of North Carolina Press.
Purves, A., Rogers, T., Soter, A.O. (1995) How Porcupines Make Love III. White Plains, NY: Longman.
Rabinowitz, P. (1987). Before reading: Narrative conventions and the politics of interpretation. Ithaca: Cornell University Press.
Rabinowitz, P. (1989). Whirl without end: Audience oriented criticism. In G.D. Atkins and L. Morrow (Ed.). Contemporarv literarv theorv. Amherst, MA: University of Massachusetts Press.
Rajchman, J. (1985). Michel Foucault: The Freedom of Philosophv. New York: Columbia University Press.
Rich, A. (1979). When we dead awaken: Writing a re-vision. On Lies. Secrets and Silence: Selected lYose: 1966-1978. New York: Norton.
433
Rich, A. (1980). Compulsory heterosexuality and lesbian existence. In C. Simpson and E. Person (Eds.). Women, sex and sexuality (pp. 652-691). Chicago: University of Chicago Press.
Richardson, L. (1994). Writing: a method o f inquiry. In N. Denzin and Y. Lincoln (Eds.), Handbook of Qualitative Research (pp. 516-529). Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage, 1994.
Richardson, L. (1997). Fields of plav: Constructing an academic life . New Brunswick, NJ: Rutgers University Press.
Ricker-Wilson, C. (1999). Busting textual bodices: Gender, reading, and the popular romance. English Journal. 88: (3) 71-77.
Rogers, T. (1997). No imagined peaceful place: A story of community, texts and cultural conversations in one urban high school English classroom. In T. Rogers & A. Soter (Eds.), Reading across cultures: Teaching literature in a diverse societv. New York: Teachers College Press.
Rogoff, B. (1995). Observing socio-cultural activity on three planes: Participatory appropriation, guided participation, and apprenticeship. In J Wertsch et al. (Eds.), Sociocultural studies of mind. New York: Cambridge University Press.
Rosenblatt, L (1978). The reader, the text, the poem: The transactional theorv of the literary work. Carbondale, IL: Southern Illinois University Press.
Rosenblatt, L. (1995). Literature as exploration. 5th ed. New York: Modem Language Association.
Sadker, M. & Sadker, D. (1994). Failing at fairness: How our schools cheat girls. New York: Simon & Schuster.
Said, E. (1975). Beginnings: Intention and Method. New York: Basic Books.
St. Pierre, E. (1995). Arts of existence: The construction of subjectivitv in older white southern women. Unpublished Doctoral Dissertation. Ohio State University, Columbus.
Saussure, F. (1986).From course in general linguistics. In H. Adams & L. Searle, Critical theorv since 1965 fpp. 646-561. Tallahassee, FL: Florida State University Press.
Saussure, F. (1987). In C. Weedon (Ed.). Feminist practice and poststructuralist theory. Cambridge, MA: Basil Blackwell.
Schaull, R. (1990). Introduction. In P. Freire. Pedagogv of the oppressed. New York: Continuum Publishing.
Scheurich, James. (1992). A postmodernist view on research interviewing. Paper presented at the Bergamo Conference on Curriculum Theorizing. SEE
Scheurich, J. (1996) “The Masks of Validity: a deconstructive investigation,” Qualitative Studies in Education. 9: f l l 1-12.
434
Schaull, R. (1990). Introduction. In P. Freire. Pedagogy of the oppressed. New York: Continuum Publishing.
Scholes, R. (1985). Textual power: Literarv theorv and the teaching of English. New Haven: Yale University Press.
Schweickart, P. (1986). Reading ourselves: Toward a feminist theory of reading. In E. Flynn and P. Schweickart (Eds.), Gender and reading: Essavs on readers, texts. and contexts (pp. 31-62). Baltimore: The Johns Hopkins University Press.
Selden, R. (1989). Practicing theorv and reading literature: An introduction. Lexington, KY: University of Kentucky Press.
Shakespeare, W. (1963/1600). The tragedv of Hamlet. In E. Hubler (Ed.), The signet classic Shakespeare. New York: Signet Books.
Shor, I. (1980). Critical teaching and evervdav life. Boston: South End Press.
Shor, I., Freire, P. (1987). A pedagogv for liberation: Dialogues on transforming education. South Hadley, MA. Bergin & Garvey.
Showalter, E. (1999). A literature of their own: British women novelists from Bronte to Lessing. Princeton: Princeton University Press.
Showalter, E. (1971). Women and the literary curriculum. College English 32 855-62.
Soter, A. (1997). Reading literature of other cultures: Some issues in critical interpretation. In T. Rogers & A. Soter (Eds.), Reading across cultures: Teaching literature in a diverse societv (pp.213-29). New York: Teachers College Press.
Soter, A. Soter, A.O. (1999). Young adult literature and the new literarv theories. New York: Columbia University Press.
Spivak, G. (1974). Translator’s preface. In Jacques Derrida, Gayatri Spivak (Trans.). Of Grammatologv (p. ix-xc). Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press.
Stake, Robert E. (1994). Case studies. In N. Denzin and Y. Lincoln (Eds.), Handbook of Oualitative Research (pp. 236-46). London: Sage.
Stein, G. (1990). The gentle Lena. In Three Lives (pp. 171-200). New York: Penguin Books.
Tannen, D. (1990). You just don’t understand: Women and men in conversation. New York: Ballantine Books.
Taylor, S. (1993). Transforming the texts: Towards a fem inist classroom practice. In L. K. Christian-Smith (Ed.), Texts of desire: Essavs on fiction, femininity and schooling. Washington, DC: The Falmer Press.
435
Tiemey, R. and Pearson, P. (1983). Toward a composing model of reading. Language Arts. 60.568-580.
Tierney, R. and Enciso, P. (1991). The relationships between readers’ involvement in and comprehension o f a fictional short story. American Educational Research Association. Chicago. April 2-7.
Tompkins, J. (1994). Reader-response criticism: From formalism to poststructuralism. Baltimore: The Johns Hopkins University Press.
U.S. Committee on Pay Equity. (1998). Wage Gap, www.feminist.com/ fairplay/.
U.S. Spousal M urder Spousal Rape and Sexual Assault Fact Sheets www.wildlife.com /worth/stats 1 html
Van Maanen, J. (1988). Tales of the field: On writing ethnographv. Chicago: University of Chicago Press.
Vygotsky, L. (1978). Mind in Societv. Cambridge, MA: Harvard UniversityPress.
Walkerdine, V. (1984). Some day my prince will come. In A. McRobbie and M. Nava (Eds.) Gender and generation. London: Macmillan.
Wagenknecht, Edward. (1983). The novels o f Henrv Jam es. New York: Frederick Ungar Publishing Co.
Weedon, C. (1987). Feminist practice and poststructuralist theorv. Cambridge, MA: Basil Blackwell.
Wells, G. (1996). The zone of proximal development and its implications for learning and teaching. Paper presented at the Vygotsky/Piaget Centenniel Conference. Geneva: September, 1996.
W haley, L& Dodge, E. (1993). Weaving in the women. Portsmouth: Heinemann.
Wharton, E. (1970) The Age of Innocence. New York: Charles Scribner.
Wilhelm, J.and Edmiston, B. (1998). Imagining to learn: Inquiry, ethics, and integration through drama. Portsmouth, NH: Heinemann.
Willet, J. and Jeannot, M. (1993). and Jeannot. Resistance to taking a critical stance. Tesol Quarterly. 23: (3) 477-95.
Williams, T. (1974L A Streetcar Named Desire. New York: Penguin.
Wirtenburg, J., Murez, R. and Alspector, R. A. Characters in textbooks: A review of the literature Washington: Commission on Civil Rights, 1980.
Wolf, N. (19911. The beauty myth: How images o f beautv are used against women. New York: Anchor Books.
436